10590 lines
533 KiB
Plaintext
10590 lines
533 KiB
Plaintext
Please take a look at the important information in this header.
|
|
We encourage you to keep this file on your own disk, keeping an
|
|
electronic path open for the next readers. Do not remove this.
|
|
|
|
|
|
**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
|
|
|
|
**Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
|
|
|
|
*These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and Donations*
|
|
|
|
Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get Etexts, and
|
|
further information is included below. We need your donations.
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE SON OF TARZAN by Edgar Rice Burroughs
|
|
|
|
November, 1993 [Etext #90]
|
|
|
|
|
|
******The Project Gutenberg Etext of The Son of Tarzan********
|
|
*****This file should be named tarz510.txt or tarz510.zip*****
|
|
|
|
Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, tarz511.txt
|
|
VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, tarz510a.txt
|
|
|
|
The official release date of all Project Gutenberg Etexts is at
|
|
Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
|
|
preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
|
|
and editing by those who wish to do so. To be sure you have an
|
|
up to date first edition [xxxxx10x.xxx] please check file sizes
|
|
in the first week of the next month. Since our ftp program has
|
|
a bug in it that scrambles the date [tried to fix and failed] a
|
|
look at the file size will have to do, but we will try to see a
|
|
new copy has at least one byte more or less.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
|
|
|
|
We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
|
|
fifty hours is one conservative estimate for how long it we take
|
|
to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
|
|
searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. This
|
|
projected audience is one hundred million readers. If our value
|
|
per text is nominally estimated at one dollar, then we produce 2
|
|
million dollars per hour this year we, will have to do four text
|
|
files per month: thus upping our productivity from one million.
|
|
The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
|
|
Files by the December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion]
|
|
This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
|
|
which is 10% of the expected number of computer users by the end
|
|
of the year 2001.
|
|
|
|
We need your donations more than ever!
|
|
|
|
All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/IBC", and are
|
|
tax deductible to the extent allowable by law ("IBC" is Illinois
|
|
Benedictine College). (Subscriptions to our paper newsletter go
|
|
to IBC, too)
|
|
|
|
For these and other matters, please mail to:
|
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg
|
|
P. O. Box 2782
|
|
Champaign, IL 61825
|
|
|
|
When all other email fails try our Michael S. Hart, Executive Director:
|
|
hart@vmd.cso.uiuc.edu (internet) hart@uiucvmd (bitnet)
|
|
|
|
We would prefer to send you this information by email
|
|
(Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
|
|
|
|
******
|
|
If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please
|
|
FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives:
|
|
[Mac users, do NOT point and click. . .type]
|
|
|
|
ftp mrcnext.cso.uiuc.edu
|
|
login: anonymous
|
|
password: your@login
|
|
cd etext/etext91
|
|
or cd etext92
|
|
or cd etext93 [for new books] [now also in cd etext/etext93]
|
|
or cd etext/articles [get suggest gut for more information]
|
|
dir [to see files]
|
|
get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
|
|
GET 0INDEX.GUT
|
|
for a list of books
|
|
and
|
|
GET NEW GUT for general information
|
|
and
|
|
MGET GUT* for newsletters.
|
|
|
|
**Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**
|
|
(Three Pages)
|
|
|
|
|
|
***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
|
|
Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
|
|
They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
|
|
your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
|
|
someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
|
|
fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
|
|
disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
|
|
you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
|
|
|
|
*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
|
|
By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
|
|
etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
|
|
this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
|
|
a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
|
|
sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
|
|
you got it from. If you received this etext on a physical
|
|
medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
|
|
|
|
ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
|
|
This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-
|
|
tm etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
|
|
Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association at
|
|
Illinois Benedictine College (the "Project"). Among other
|
|
things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
|
|
on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
|
|
distribute it in the United States without permission and
|
|
without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
|
|
below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
|
|
under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
|
|
|
|
To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
|
|
efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
|
|
works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
|
|
medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
|
|
things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
|
|
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
|
|
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
|
|
disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
|
|
codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
|
|
|
|
LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
|
|
But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
|
|
[1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this
|
|
etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all
|
|
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
|
|
legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
|
|
UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
|
|
INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
|
|
OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
|
|
POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
|
|
|
|
If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
|
|
receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
|
|
you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
|
|
time to the person you received it from. If you received it
|
|
on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
|
|
such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
|
|
copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
|
|
choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
|
|
receive it electronically.
|
|
|
|
THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
|
|
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
|
|
TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
|
|
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
|
|
PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
|
|
|
|
Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
|
|
the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
|
|
above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
|
|
may have other legal rights.
|
|
|
|
INDEMNITY
|
|
You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
|
|
officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
|
|
and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or
|
|
indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause:
|
|
[1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration, modification,
|
|
or addition to the etext, or [3] any Defect.
|
|
|
|
DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
|
|
You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
|
|
disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
|
|
"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
|
|
or:
|
|
|
|
[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
|
|
requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
|
|
etext or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
|
|
if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
|
|
binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
|
|
including any form resulting from conversion by word pro-
|
|
cessing or hypertext software, but only so long as
|
|
*EITHER*:
|
|
|
|
[*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
|
|
does *not* contain characters other than those
|
|
intended by the author of the work, although tilde
|
|
(~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
|
|
be used to convey punctuation intended by the
|
|
author, and additional characters may be used to
|
|
indicate hypertext links; OR
|
|
|
|
[*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
|
|
no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
|
|
form by the program that displays the etext (as is
|
|
the case, for instance, with most word processors);
|
|
OR
|
|
|
|
[*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
|
|
no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
|
|
etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
|
|
or other equivalent proprietary form).
|
|
|
|
[2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
|
|
"Small Print!" statement.
|
|
|
|
[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of the
|
|
net profits you derive calculated using the method you
|
|
already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
|
|
don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
|
|
payable to "Project Gutenberg Association / Illinois
|
|
Benedictine College" within the 60 days following each
|
|
date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare)
|
|
your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return.
|
|
|
|
WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
|
|
The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
|
|
scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
|
|
free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
|
|
you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
|
|
Association / Illinois Benedictine College".
|
|
|
|
This "Small Print!" by Charles B. Kramer, Attorney
|
|
Internet (72600.2026@compuserve.com); TEL: (212-254-5093)
|
|
*END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE SON OF TARZAN
|
|
by
|
|
Edgar Rice Burroughs
|
|
|
|
TO HULBERT BURROUGHS
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 1
|
|
|
|
The long boat of the Marjorie W. was floating down the
|
|
broad Ugambi with ebb tide and current. Her crew were
|
|
lazily enjoying this respite from the arduous labor of rowing
|
|
up stream. Three miles below them lay the Marjorie W.
|
|
herself, quite ready to sail so soon as they should have clambered
|
|
aboard and swung the long boat to its davits. Presently the
|
|
attention of every man was drawn from his dreaming or his
|
|
gossiping to the northern bank of the river. There, screaming
|
|
at them in a cracked falsetto and with skinny arms outstretched,
|
|
stood a strange apparition of a man.
|
|
|
|
"Wot the 'ell?" ejaculated one of the crew.
|
|
|
|
"A white man!" muttered the mate, and then: "Man the
|
|
oars, boys, and we'll just pull over an' see what he wants."
|
|
|
|
When they came close to the shore they saw an emaciated
|
|
creature with scant white locks tangled and matted. The thin,
|
|
bent body was naked but for a loin cloth. Tears were rolling
|
|
down the sunken pock-marked cheeks. The man jabbered at
|
|
them in a strange tongue.
|
|
|
|
"Rooshun," hazarded the mate. "Savvy English?" he called
|
|
to the man.
|
|
|
|
He did, and in that tongue, brokenly and haltingly, as though
|
|
it had been many years since he had used it, he begged them to
|
|
take him with them away from this awful country. Once on
|
|
board the Marjorie W. the stranger told his rescuers a pitiful
|
|
tale of privation, hardships, and torture, extending over a period
|
|
of ten years. How he happened to have come to Africa he did not
|
|
tell them, leaving them to assume he had forgotten the incidents
|
|
of his life prior to the frightful ordeals that had wrecked him
|
|
mentally and physically. He did not even tell them his true name,
|
|
and so they knew him only as Michael Sabrov, nor was there any
|
|
resemblance between this sorry wreck and the virile, though
|
|
unprincipled, Alexis Paulvitch of old.
|
|
|
|
It had been ten years since the Russian had escaped the fate
|
|
of his friend, the arch-fiend Rokoff, and not once, but many
|
|
times during those ten years had Paulvitch cursed the fate that
|
|
had given to Nicholas Rokoff death and immunity from suffering
|
|
while it had meted to him the hideous terrors of an existence
|
|
infinitely worse than the death that persistently refused to
|
|
claim him.
|
|
|
|
Paulvitch had taken to the jungle when he had seen the beasts
|
|
of Tarzan and their savage lord swarm the deck of the Kincaid,
|
|
and in his terror lest Tarzan pursue and capture him he had
|
|
stumbled on deep into the jungle, only to fall at last into the
|
|
hands of one of the savage cannibal tribes that had felt the weight
|
|
of Rokoff's evil temper and cruel brutality. Some strange whim
|
|
of the chief of this tribe saved Paulvitch from death only to
|
|
plunge him into a life of misery and torture. For ten years he
|
|
had been the butt of the village, beaten and stoned by the women
|
|
and children, cut and slashed and disfigured by the warriors;
|
|
a victim of often recurring fevers of the most malignant variety.
|
|
Yet he did not die. Smallpox laid its hideous clutches upon him;
|
|
leaving him unspeakably branded with its repulsive marks.
|
|
Between it and the attentions of the tribe the countenance of
|
|
Alexis Paulvitch was so altered that his own mother could not
|
|
have recognized in the pitiful mask he called his face a single
|
|
familiar feature. A few scraggly, yellow-white locks had supplanted
|
|
the thick, dark hair that had covered his head. His limbs were bent
|
|
and twisted, he walked with a shuffling, unsteady gait, his body
|
|
doubled forward. His teeth were gone--knocked out by his savage masters.
|
|
Even his mentality was but a sorry mockery of what it once had been.
|
|
|
|
They took him aboard the Marjorie W., and there they fed
|
|
and nursed him. He gained a little in strength; but his
|
|
appearance never altered for the better--a human derelict,
|
|
battered and wrecked, they had found him; a human derelict,
|
|
battered and wrecked, he would remain until death claimed him.
|
|
Though still in his thirties, Alexis Paulvitch could easily
|
|
have passed for eighty. Inscrutable Nature had demanded of
|
|
the accomplice a greater penalty than his principal had paid.
|
|
|
|
In the mind of Alexis Paulvitch there lingered no thoughts of
|
|
revenge--only a dull hatred of the man whom he and Rokoff
|
|
had tried to break, and failed. There was hatred, too, of the
|
|
memory of Rokoff, for Rokoff had led him into the horrors he
|
|
had undergone. There was hatred of the police of a score of
|
|
cities from which he had had to flee. There was hatred of law,
|
|
hatred of order, hatred of everything. Every moment of the man's
|
|
waking life was filled with morbid thought of hatred--he had
|
|
become mentally as he was physically in outward appearance,
|
|
the personification of the blighting emotion of Hate. He had
|
|
little or nothing to do with the men who had rescued him.
|
|
He was too weak to work and too morose for company, and so
|
|
they quickly left him alone to his own devices.
|
|
|
|
The Marjorie W. had been chartered by a syndicate of wealthy
|
|
manufacturers, equipped with a laboratory and a staff of scientists,
|
|
and sent out to search for some natural product which the
|
|
manufacturers who footed the bills had been importing from
|
|
South America at an enormous cost. What the product was none
|
|
on board the Marjorie W. knew except the scientists, nor is
|
|
it of any moment to us, other than that it led the ship to a
|
|
certain island off the coast of Africa after Alexis Paulvitch
|
|
had been taken aboard.
|
|
|
|
The ship lay at anchor off the coast for several weeks.
|
|
The monotony of life aboard her became trying for the crew.
|
|
They went often ashore, and finally Paulvitch asked to accompany
|
|
them--he too was tiring of the blighting sameness of existence
|
|
upon the ship.
|
|
|
|
The island was heavily timbered. Dense jungle ran down almost
|
|
to the beach. The scientists were far inland, prosecuting
|
|
their search for the valuable commodity that native rumor upon
|
|
the mainland had led them to believe might be found here in
|
|
marketable quantity. The ship's company fished, hunted,
|
|
and explored. Paulvitch shuffled up and down the beach, or lay
|
|
in the shade of the great trees that skirted it. One day, as the
|
|
men were gathered at a little distance inspecting the body of a
|
|
panther that had fallen to the gun of one of them who had been
|
|
hunting inland, Paulvitch lay sleeping beneath his tree. He was
|
|
awakened by the touch of a hand upon his shoulder. With a start
|
|
he sat up to see a huge, anthropoid ape squatting at his side,
|
|
inspecting him intently. The Russian was thoroughly frightened.
|
|
He glanced toward the sailors--they were a couple of hundred
|
|
yards away. Again the ape plucked at his shoulder, jabbering
|
|
plaintively. Paulvitch saw no menace in the inquiring gaze, or
|
|
in the attitude of the beast. He got slowly to his feet. The ape
|
|
rose at his side.
|
|
|
|
Half doubled, the man shuffled cautiously away toward the sailors.
|
|
The ape moved with him, taking one of his arms. They had come
|
|
almost to the little knot of men before they were seen, and
|
|
by this time Paulvitch had become assured that the beast
|
|
meant no harm. The animal evidently was accustomed to the
|
|
association of human beings. It occurred to the Russian that the
|
|
ape represented a certain considerable money value, and before
|
|
they reached the sailors he had decided he should be the one to
|
|
profit by it.
|
|
|
|
When the men looked up and saw the oddly paired couple
|
|
shuffling toward them they were filled with amazement, and
|
|
started on a run toward the two. The ape showed no sign of fear.
|
|
Instead he grasped each sailor by the shoulder and peered long
|
|
and earnestly into his face. Having inspected them all he
|
|
returned to Paulvitch's side, disappointment written strongly
|
|
upon his countenance and in his carriage.
|
|
|
|
The men were delighted with him. They gathered about,
|
|
asking Paulvitch many questions, and examining his companion.
|
|
The Russian told them that the ape was his--nothing further
|
|
would he offer--but kept harping continually upon the same
|
|
theme, "The ape is mine. The ape is mine." Tiring of Paulvitch,
|
|
one of the men essayed a pleasantry. Circling about behind the
|
|
ape he prodded the anthropoid in the back with a pin. Like a
|
|
flash the beast wheeled upon its tormentor, and, in the briefest
|
|
instant of turning, the placid, friendly animal was metamorphosed
|
|
to a frenzied demon of rage. The broad grin that had sat upon
|
|
the sailor's face as he perpetrated his little joke froze to an
|
|
expression of terror. He attempted to dodge the long arms
|
|
that reached for him; but, failing, drew a long knife that hung
|
|
at his belt. With a single wrench the ape tore the weapon from
|
|
the man's grasp and flung it to one side, then his yellow fangs
|
|
were buried in the sailor's shoulder.
|
|
|
|
With sticks and knives the man's companions fell upon the
|
|
beast, while Paulvitch danced around the cursing snarling pack
|
|
mumbling and screaming pleas and threats. He saw his visions
|
|
of wealth rapidly dissipating before the weapons of the sailors.
|
|
|
|
The ape, however, proved no easy victim to the superior numbers
|
|
that seemed fated to overwhelm him. Rising from the sailor
|
|
who had precipitated the battle he shook his giant shoulders,
|
|
freeing himself from two of the men that were clinging to his
|
|
back, and with mighty blows of his open palms felled one after
|
|
another of his attackers, leaping hither and thither with the
|
|
agility of a small monkey.
|
|
|
|
The fight had been witnessed by the captain and mate who
|
|
were just landing from the Marjorie W., and Paulvitch saw
|
|
these two now running forward with drawn revolvers while the
|
|
two sailors who had brought them ashore trailed at their heels.
|
|
The ape stood looking about him at the havoc he had wrought, but
|
|
whether he was awaiting a renewal of the attack or was
|
|
deliberating which of his foes he should exterminate first
|
|
Paulvitch could not guess. What he could guess, however,
|
|
was that the moment the two officers came within firing distance
|
|
of the beast they would put an end to him in short order unless
|
|
something were done and done quickly to prevent. The ape had
|
|
made no move to attack the Russian but even so the man was none
|
|
too sure of what might happen were he to interfere with the savage
|
|
beast, now thoroughly aroused to bestial rage, and with the
|
|
smell of new spilled blood fresh in its nostrils. For an instant he
|
|
hesitated, and then again there rose before him the dreams of
|
|
affluence which this great anthropoid would doubtless turn to
|
|
realities once Paulvitch had landed him safely in some great
|
|
metropolis like London.
|
|
|
|
The captain was shouting to him now to stand aside that he
|
|
might have a shot at the animal; but instead Paulvitch shuffled
|
|
to the ape's side, and though the man's hair quivered at its roots
|
|
he mastered his fear and laid hold of the ape's arm.
|
|
|
|
"Come!" he commanded, and tugged to pull the beast from
|
|
among the sailors, many of whom were now sitting up in wide
|
|
eyed fright or crawling away from their conqueror upon hands
|
|
and knees.
|
|
|
|
Slowly the ape permitted itself to be led to one side, nor did
|
|
it show the slightest indication of a desire to harm the Russian.
|
|
The captain came to a halt a few paces from the odd pair.
|
|
|
|
"Get aside, Sabrov!" he commanded. "I'll put that brute
|
|
where he won't chew up any more able seamen."
|
|
|
|
"It wasn't his fault, captain," pleaded Paulvitch. "Please don't
|
|
shoot him. The men started it--they attacked him first. You see,
|
|
he's perfectly gentle--and he's mine--he's mine--he's mine!
|
|
I won't let you kill him," he concluded, as his half-wrecked
|
|
mentality pictured anew the pleasure that money would buy in
|
|
London--money that he could not hope to possess without some
|
|
such windfall as the ape represented.
|
|
|
|
The captain lowered his weapon. "The men started it, did
|
|
they?" he repeated. "How about that?" and he turned toward
|
|
the sailors who had by this time picked themselves from the
|
|
ground, none of them much the worse for his experience except
|
|
the fellow who had been the cause of it, and who would
|
|
doubtless nurse a sore shoulder for a week or so.
|
|
|
|
"Simpson done it," said one of the men. "He stuck a pin
|
|
into the monk from behind, and the monk got him--which
|
|
served him bloomin' well right--an' he got the rest of us, too,
|
|
for which I can't blame him, since we all jumped him to once."
|
|
|
|
The captain looked at Simpson, who sheepishly admitted the
|
|
truth of the allegation, then he stepped over to the ape as though
|
|
to discover for himself the sort of temper the beast possessed,
|
|
but it was noticeable that he kept his revolver cocked and leveled
|
|
as he did so. However, he spoke soothingly to the animal who
|
|
squatted at the Russian's side looking first at one and then
|
|
another of the sailors. As the captain approached him the ape
|
|
half rose and waddled forward to meet him. Upon his countenance
|
|
was the same strange, searching expression that had marked his
|
|
scrutiny of each of the sailors he had first encountered. He came
|
|
quite close to the officer and laid a paw upon one of the man's
|
|
shoulders, studying his face intently for a long moment, then
|
|
came the expression of disappointment accompanied by what
|
|
was almost a human sigh, as he turned away to peer in the same
|
|
curious fashion into the faces of the mate and the two sailors
|
|
who had arrived with the officers. In each instance he sighed
|
|
and passed on, returning at length to Paulvitch's side, where he
|
|
squatted down once more; thereafter evincing little or no
|
|
interest in any of the other men, and apparently forgetful
|
|
of his recent battle with them.
|
|
|
|
When the party returned aboard the Marjorie W., Paulvitch
|
|
was accompanied by the ape, who seemed anxious to follow him.
|
|
The captain interposed no obstacles to the arrangement,
|
|
and so the great anthropoid was tacitly admitted to membership
|
|
in the ship's company. Once aboard he examined each new face
|
|
minutely, evincing the same disappointment in each instance
|
|
that had marked his scrutiny of the others. The officers and
|
|
scientists aboard often discussed the beast, but they were unable
|
|
to account satisfactorily for the strange ceremony with which he
|
|
greeted each new face. Had he been discovered upon the mainland,
|
|
or any other place than the almost unknown island that
|
|
had been his home, they would have concluded that he had
|
|
formerly been a pet of man; but that theory was not tenable in
|
|
the face of the isolation of his uninhabited island. He seemed
|
|
continually to be searching for someone, and during the first
|
|
days of the return voyage from the island he was often discovered
|
|
nosing about in various parts of the ship; but after he had seen
|
|
and examined each face of the ship's company, and explored
|
|
every corner of the vessel he lapsed into utter indifference of all
|
|
about him. Even the Russian elicited only casual interest when
|
|
he brought him food. At other times the ape appeared merely
|
|
to tolerate him. He never showed affection for him, or for anyone
|
|
else upon the Marjorie W., nor did he at any time evince any
|
|
indication of the savage temper that had marked his resentment
|
|
of the attack of the sailors upon him at the time that he had come
|
|
among them.
|
|
|
|
Most of his time was spent in the eye of the ship scanning the
|
|
horizon ahead, as though he were endowed with sufficient reason
|
|
to know that the vessel was bound for some port where there
|
|
would be other human beings to undergo his searching scrutiny.
|
|
All in all, Ajax, as he had been dubbed, was considered the
|
|
most remarkable and intelligent ape that any one aboard the
|
|
Marjorie W. ever had seen. Nor was his intelligence the only
|
|
remarkable attribute he owned. His stature and physique were,
|
|
for an ape, awe inspiring. That he was old was quite evident,
|
|
but if his age had impaired his physical or mental powers in the
|
|
slightest it was not apparent.
|
|
|
|
And so at length the Marjorie W. came to England, and there
|
|
the officers and the scientists, filled with compassion for the
|
|
pitiful wreck of a man they had rescued from the jungles,
|
|
furnished Paulvitch with funds and bid him and his Ajax Godspeed.
|
|
|
|
Upon the dock and all through the journey to London the
|
|
Russian had his hands full with Ajax. Each new face of the
|
|
thousands that came within the anthropoid's ken must be
|
|
carefully scrutinized, much to the horror of many of his
|
|
victims; but at last, failing, apparently, to discover whom
|
|
he sought, the great ape relapsed into morbid indifference,
|
|
only occasionally evincing interest in a passing face.
|
|
|
|
In London, Paulvitch went directly with his prize to a certain
|
|
famous animal trainer. This man was much impressed with Ajax
|
|
with the result that he agreed to train him for a lion's share of
|
|
the profits of exhibiting him, and in the meantime to provide for
|
|
the keep of both the ape and his owner.
|
|
|
|
And so came Ajax to London, and there was forged another link
|
|
in the chain of strange circumstances that were to affect the
|
|
lives of many people.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 2
|
|
|
|
Mr. Harold Moore was a bilious-countenanced, studious
|
|
young man. He took himself very seriously, and life, and
|
|
his work, which latter was the tutoring of the young son of a
|
|
British nobleman. He felt that his charge was not making the
|
|
progress that his parents had a right to expect, and he was now
|
|
conscientiously explaining this fact to the boy's mother.
|
|
|
|
"It's not that he isn't bright," he was saying; "if that were
|
|
true I should have hopes of succeeding, for then I might bring
|
|
to bear all my energies in overcoming his obtuseness; but the
|
|
trouble is that he is exceptionally intelligent, and learns so
|
|
quickly that I can find no fault in the matter of the preparation
|
|
of his lessons. What concerns me, however, is that fact that he
|
|
evidently takes no interest whatever in the subjects we are studying.
|
|
He merely accomplishes each lesson as a task to be rid of
|
|
as quickly as possible and I am sure that no lesson ever again
|
|
enters his mind until the hours of study and recitation once
|
|
more arrive. His sole interests seem to be feats of physical
|
|
prowess and the reading of everything that he can get hold of
|
|
relative to savage beasts and the lives and customs of uncivilized
|
|
peoples; but particularly do stories of animals appeal to him.
|
|
He will sit for hours together poring over the work of some
|
|
African explorer, and upon two occasions I have found him setting
|
|
up in bed at night reading Carl Hagenbeck's book on men and beasts."
|
|
|
|
The boy's mother tapped her foot nervously upon the hearth rug.
|
|
|
|
"You discourage this, of course?" she ventured.
|
|
|
|
Mr. Moore shuffled embarrassedly.
|
|
|
|
"I--ah--essayed to take the book from him," he replied, a
|
|
slight flush mounting his sallow cheek; "but--ah--your son is
|
|
quite muscular for one so young."
|
|
|
|
"He wouldn't let you take it?" asked the mother.
|
|
|
|
"He would not," confessed the tutor. "He was perfectly good
|
|
natured about it; but he insisted upon pretending that he was a
|
|
gorilla and that I was a chimpanzee attempting to steal food
|
|
from him. He leaped upon me with the most savage growls I
|
|
ever heard, lifted me completely above his head, hurled me
|
|
upon his bed, and after going through a pantomime indicative
|
|
of choking me to death he stood upon my prostrate form and
|
|
gave voice to a most fearsome shriek, which he explained was
|
|
the victory cry of a bull ape. Then he carried me to the door,
|
|
shoved me out into the hall and locked me from his room."
|
|
|
|
For several minutes neither spoke again. It was the boy's
|
|
mother who finally broke the silence.
|
|
|
|
"It is very necessary, Mr. Moore," she said, "that you do
|
|
everything in your power to discourage this tendency in Jack,
|
|
he--"; but she got no further. A loud "Whoop!" from the
|
|
direction of the window brought them both to their feet.
|
|
The room was upon the second floor of the house, and opposite
|
|
the window to which their attention had been attracted was a
|
|
large tree, a branch of which spread to within a few feet of
|
|
the sill. Upon this branch now they both discovered the subject
|
|
of their recent conversation, a tall, well-built boy, balancing
|
|
with ease upon the bending limb and uttering loud shouts of glee
|
|
as he noted the terrified expressions upon the faces of his audience.
|
|
|
|
The mother and tutor both rushed toward the window but before
|
|
they had crossed half the room the boy had leaped nimbly to the
|
|
sill and entered the apartment with them.
|
|
|
|
"`The wild man from Borneo has just come to town,'" he sang,
|
|
dancing a species of war dance about his terrified mother
|
|
and scandalized tutor, and ending up by throwing his arms about
|
|
the former's neck and kissing her upon either cheek.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, Mother," he cried, "there's a wonderful, educated ape
|
|
being shown at one of the music halls. Willie Grimsby saw it
|
|
last night. He says it can do everything but talk. It rides
|
|
a bicycle, eats with knife and fork, counts up to ten, and ever
|
|
so many other wonderful things, and can I go and see it too?
|
|
Oh, please, Mother--please let me."
|
|
|
|
Patting the boy's cheek affectionately, the mother shook her
|
|
head negatively. "No, Jack," she said; "you know I do not
|
|
approve of such exhibitions."
|
|
|
|
"I don't see why not, Mother," replied the boy. "All the
|
|
other fellows go and they go to the Zoo, too, and you'll never
|
|
let me do even that. Anybody'd think I was a girl--or
|
|
a mollycoddle. Oh, Father," he exclaimed, as the door opened
|
|
to admit a tall gray-eyed man. "Oh, Father, can't I go?"
|
|
|
|
"Go where, my son?" asked the newcomer.
|
|
|
|
"He wants to go to a music hall to see a trained ape," said
|
|
the mother, looking warningly at her husband.
|
|
|
|
"Who, Ajax?" questioned the man.
|
|
|
|
The boy nodded.
|
|
|
|
"Well, I don't know that I blame you, my son," said the father,
|
|
"I wouldn't mind seeing him myself. They say he is very
|
|
wonderful, and that for an anthropoid he is unusually large.
|
|
Let's all go, Jane--what do you say?" And he turned toward his
|
|
wife, but that lady only shook her head in a most positive
|
|
manner, and turning to Mr. Moore asked him if it was not time
|
|
that he and Jack were in the study for the morning recitations.
|
|
When the two had left she turned toward her husband.
|
|
|
|
"John," she said, "something must be done to discourage Jack's
|
|
tendency toward anything that may excite the cravings for the
|
|
savage life which I fear he has inherited from you. You know
|
|
from your own experience how strong is the call of the wild
|
|
at times. You know that often it has necessitated a stern
|
|
struggle on your part to resist the almost insane desire which
|
|
occasionally overwhelms you to plunge once again into the jungle
|
|
life that claimed you for so many years, and at the same time you
|
|
know, better than any other, how frightful a fate it would be for
|
|
Jack, were the trail to the savage jungle made either alluring or
|
|
easy to him."
|
|
|
|
"I doubt if there is any danger of his inheriting a taste for
|
|
jungle life from me," replied the man, "for I cannot conceive
|
|
that such a thing may be transmitted from father to son.
|
|
And sometimes, Jane, I think that in your solicitude for his
|
|
future you go a bit too far in your restrictive measures.
|
|
His love for animals--his desire, for example, to see this
|
|
trained ape--is only natural in a healthy, normal boy of his age.
|
|
Just because he wants to see Ajax is no indication that he would
|
|
wish to marry an ape, and even should he, far be it from you Jane
|
|
to have the right to cry `shame!'" and John Clayton, Lord
|
|
Greystoke, put an arm about his wife, laughing good-naturedly
|
|
down into her upturned face before he bent his head and kissed her.
|
|
Then, more seriously, he continued: "You have never told Jack
|
|
anything concerning my early life, nor have you permitted me to,
|
|
and in this I think that you have made a mistake. Had I been
|
|
able to tell him of the experiences of Tarzan of the Apes I could
|
|
doubtless have taken much of the glamour and romance from
|
|
jungle life that naturally surrounds it in the minds of those who
|
|
have had no experience of it. He might then have profited by my
|
|
experience, but now, should the jungle lust ever claim him, he
|
|
will have nothing to guide him but his own impulses, and I know
|
|
how powerful these may be in the wrong direction at times."
|
|
|
|
But Lady Greystoke only shook her head as she had a hundred
|
|
other times when the subject had claimed her attention in the past.
|
|
|
|
"No, John," she insisted, "I shall never give my consent to
|
|
the implanting in Jack's mind of any suggestion of the savage
|
|
life which we both wish to preserve him from."
|
|
|
|
It was evening before the subject was again referred to and
|
|
then it was raised by Jack himself. He had been sitting, curled
|
|
in a large chair, reading, when he suddenly looked up and
|
|
addressed his father.
|
|
|
|
"Why," he asked, coming directly to the point, "can't I go
|
|
and see Ajax?"
|
|
|
|
"Your mother does not approve," replied his father.
|
|
|
|
"Do you?"
|
|
|
|
"That is not the question," evaded Lord Greystoke. "It is
|
|
enough that your mother objects."
|
|
|
|
"I am going to see him," announced the boy, after a few
|
|
moments of thoughtful silence. "I am not different from Willie
|
|
Grimsby, or any other of the fellows who have been to see him.
|
|
It did not harm them and it will not harm me. I could go without
|
|
telling you; but I would not do that. So I tell you now,
|
|
beforehand, that I am going to see Ajax."
|
|
|
|
There was nothing disrespectful or defiant in the boy's tone
|
|
or manner. His was merely a dispassionate statement of facts.
|
|
His father could scarce repress either a smile or a show of the
|
|
admiration he felt for the manly course his son had pursued.
|
|
|
|
"I admire your candor, Jack," he said. "Permit me to be candid,
|
|
as well. If you go to see Ajax without permission, I shall
|
|
punish you. I have never inflicted corporal punishment upon
|
|
you, but I warn you that should you disobey your mother's wishes
|
|
in this instance, I shall."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, sir," replied the boy; and then: "I shall tell you, sir,
|
|
when I have been to see Ajax."
|
|
|
|
Mr. Moore's room was next to that of his youthful charge,
|
|
and it was the tutor's custom to have a look into the boy's each
|
|
evening as the former was about to retire. This evening he was
|
|
particularly careful not to neglect his duty, for he had just come
|
|
from a conference with the boy's father and mother in which it
|
|
had been impressed upon him that he must exercise the greatest
|
|
care to prevent Jack visiting the music hall where Ajax was
|
|
being shown. So, when he opened the boy's door at about half
|
|
after nine, he was greatly excited, though not entirely surprised
|
|
to find the future Lord Greystoke fully dressed for the street and
|
|
about to crawl from his open bed room window.
|
|
|
|
Mr. Moore made a rapid spring across the apartment; but the
|
|
waste of energy was unnecessary, for when the boy heard him
|
|
within the chamber and realized that he had been discovered he
|
|
turned back as though to relinquish his planned adventure.
|
|
|
|
"Where were you going?" panted the excited Mr. Moore.
|
|
|
|
"I am going to see Ajax," replied the boy, quietly.
|
|
|
|
"I am astonished," cried Mr. Moore; but a moment later he
|
|
was infinitely more astonished, for the boy, approaching close
|
|
to him, suddenly seized him about the waist, lifted him from
|
|
his feet and threw him face downward upon the bed, shoving
|
|
his face deep into a soft pillow.
|
|
|
|
"Be quiet," admonished the victor, "or I'll choke you."
|
|
|
|
Mr. Moore struggled; but his efforts were in vain. Whatever else
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes may or may not have handed down to his son
|
|
he had at least bequeathed him almost as marvelous a physique
|
|
as he himself had possessed at the same age. The tutor was as
|
|
putty in the boy's hands. Kneeling upon him, Jack tore strips
|
|
from a sheet and bound the man's hands behind his back. Then he
|
|
rolled him over and stuffed a gag of the same material between
|
|
his teeth, securing it with a strip wound about the back of his
|
|
victim's head. All the while he talked in a low, conversational tone.
|
|
|
|
"I am Waja, chief of the Waji," he explained, "and you are
|
|
Mohammed Dubn, the Arab sheik, who would murder my people and
|
|
steal my ivory," and he dexterously trussed Mr. Moore's hobbled
|
|
ankles up behind to meet his hobbled wrists. "Ah--ha! Villain!
|
|
I have you in me power at last. I go; but I shall return!"
|
|
And the son of Tarzan skipped across the room, slipped through
|
|
the open window, and slid to liberty by way of the down spout
|
|
from an eaves trough.
|
|
|
|
Mr. Moore wriggled and struggled about the bed. He was
|
|
sure that he should suffocate unless aid came quickly. In his
|
|
frenzy of terror he managed to roll off the bed. The pain and
|
|
shock of the fall jolted him back to something like sane
|
|
consideration of his plight. Where before he had been unable
|
|
to think intelligently because of the hysterical fear that had
|
|
claimed him he now lay quietly searching for some means of escape
|
|
from his dilemma. It finally occurred to him that the room in
|
|
which Lord and Lady Greystoke had been sitting when he left them
|
|
was directly beneath that in which he lay upon the floor. He knew
|
|
that some time had elapsed since he had come up stairs and that
|
|
they might be gone by this time, for it seemed to him that he
|
|
had struggled about the bed, in his efforts to free himself, for
|
|
an eternity. But the best that he could do was to attempt to attract
|
|
attention from below, and so, after many failures, he managed
|
|
to work himself into a position in which he could tap the toe of
|
|
his boot against the floor. This he proceeded to do at short
|
|
intervals, until, after what seemed a very long time, he was
|
|
rewarded by hearing footsteps ascending the stairs, and presently
|
|
a knock upon the door. Mr. Moore tapped vigorously with
|
|
his toe--he could not reply in any other way. The knock was
|
|
repeated after a moment's silence. Again Mr. Moore tapped.
|
|
Would they never open the door! Laboriously he rolled in the
|
|
direction of succor. If he could get his back against the door
|
|
he could then tap upon its base, when surely he must be heard.
|
|
The knocking was repeated a little louder, and finally a voice
|
|
called: "Mr. Jack!"
|
|
|
|
It was one of the house men--Mr. Moore recognized the
|
|
fellow's voice. He came near to bursting a blood vessel in an
|
|
endeavor to scream "come in" through the stifling gag. After a
|
|
moment the man knocked again, quite loudly and again called
|
|
the boy's name. Receiving no reply he turned the knob, and at
|
|
the same instant a sudden recollection filled the tutor anew with
|
|
numbing terror--he had, himself, locked the door behind him
|
|
when he had entered the room.
|
|
|
|
He heard the servant try the door several times and then depart.
|
|
Upon which Mr. Moore swooned.
|
|
|
|
In the meantime Jack was enjoying to the full the stolen
|
|
pleasures of the music hall. He had reached the temple of mirth
|
|
just as Ajax's act was commencing, and having purchased a box seat
|
|
was now leaning breathlessly over the rail watching every move
|
|
of the great ape, his eyes wide in wonder. The trainer was not
|
|
slow to note the boy's handsome, eager face, and as one of
|
|
Ajax's biggest hits consisted in an entry to one or more boxes
|
|
during his performance, ostensibly in search of a long-lost
|
|
relative, as the trainer explained, the man realized the
|
|
effectiveness of sending him into the box with the handsome
|
|
boy, who, doubtless, would be terror stricken by proximity
|
|
to the shaggy, powerful beast.
|
|
|
|
When the time came, therefore, for the ape to return from the
|
|
wings in reply to an encore the trainer directed its attention to
|
|
the boy who chanced to be the sole occupant of the box in which
|
|
he sat. With a spring the huge anthropoid leaped from the stage
|
|
to the boy's side; but if the trainer had looked for a laughable
|
|
scene of fright he was mistaken. A broad smile lighted the boy's
|
|
features as he laid his hand upon the shaggy arm of his visitor.
|
|
The ape, grasping the boy by either shoulder, peered long and
|
|
earnestly into his face, while the latter stroked his head and
|
|
talked to him in a low voice.
|
|
|
|
Never had Ajax devoted so long a time to an examination of
|
|
another as he did in this instance. He seemed troubled and not
|
|
a little excited, jabbering and mumbling to the boy, and now
|
|
caressing him, as the trainer had never seen him caress a human
|
|
being before. Presently he clambered over into the box with him
|
|
and snuggled down close to the boy's side. The audience was
|
|
delighted; but they were still more delighted when the trainer,
|
|
the period of his act having elapsed, attempted to persuade Ajax
|
|
to leave the box. The ape would not budge. The manager,
|
|
becoming excited at the delay, urged the trainer to greater haste,
|
|
but when the latter entered the box to drag away the reluctant
|
|
Ajax he was met by bared fangs and menacing growls.
|
|
|
|
The audience was delirious with joy. They cheered the ape.
|
|
They cheered the boy, and they hooted and jeered at the trainer
|
|
and the manager, which luckless individual had inadvertently
|
|
shown himself and attempted to assist the trainer.
|
|
|
|
Finally, reduced to desperation and realizing that this show
|
|
of mutiny upon the part of his valuable possession might render
|
|
the animal worthless for exhibition purposes in the future if not
|
|
immediately subdued, the trainer had hastened to his dressing
|
|
room and procured a heavy whip. With this he now returned to
|
|
the box; but when he had threatened Ajax with it but once he
|
|
found himself facing two infuriated enemies instead of one, for
|
|
the boy had leaped to his feet, and seizing a chair was standing
|
|
ready at the ape's side to defend his new found friend. There was
|
|
no longer a smile upon his handsome face. In his gray eyes was
|
|
an expression which gave the trainer pause, and beside him stood
|
|
the giant anthropoid growling and ready.
|
|
|
|
What might have happened, but for a timely interruption, may
|
|
only be surmised; but that the trainer would have received a
|
|
severe mauling, if nothing more, was clearly indicated by the
|
|
attitudes of the two who faced him.
|
|
|
|
* * *
|
|
|
|
It was a pale-faced man who rushed into the Greystoke library
|
|
to announce that he had found Jack's door locked and had been
|
|
able to obtain no response to his repeated knocking and calling
|
|
other than a strange tapping and the sound of what might have
|
|
been a body moving about upon the floor.
|
|
|
|
Four steps at a time John Clayton took the stairs that led to
|
|
the floor above. His wife and the servant hurried after him.
|
|
Once he called his son's name in a loud voice; but receiving no
|
|
reply he launched his great weight, backed by all the undiminished
|
|
power of his giant muscles, against the heavy door. With a snapping
|
|
of iron butts and a splintering of wood the obstacle burst inward.
|
|
|
|
At its foot lay the body of the unconscious Mr. Moore, across
|
|
whom it fell with a resounding thud. Through the opening leaped
|
|
Tarzan, and a moment later the room was flooded with light
|
|
from a dozen electric bulbs.
|
|
|
|
It was several minutes before the tutor was discovered, so
|
|
completely had the door covered him; but finally he was dragged
|
|
forth, his gag and bonds cut away, and a liberal application of
|
|
cold water had hastened returning consciousness.
|
|
|
|
"Where is Jack?" was John Clayton's first question, and then;
|
|
"Who did this?" as the memory of Rokoff and the fear of a
|
|
second abduction seized him.
|
|
|
|
Slowly Mr. Moore staggered to his feet. His gaze wandered
|
|
about the room. Gradually he collected his scattered wits.
|
|
The details of his recent harrowing experience returned to him.
|
|
|
|
"I tender my resignation, sir, to take effect at once," were
|
|
his first words. "You do not need a tutor for your son--what he
|
|
needs is a wild animal trainer."
|
|
|
|
"But where is he?" cried Lady Greystoke.
|
|
|
|
"He has gone to see Ajax."
|
|
|
|
It was with difficulty that Tarzan restrained a smile, and after
|
|
satisfying himself that the tutor was more scared than injured,
|
|
he ordered his closed car around and departed in the direction
|
|
of a certain well-known music hall.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 3
|
|
|
|
As the trainer, with raised lash, hesitated an instant at the
|
|
entrance to the box where the boy and the ape confronted
|
|
him, a tall broad-shouldered man pushed past him and entered.
|
|
As his eyes fell upon the newcomer a slight flush mounted the
|
|
boy's cheeks.
|
|
|
|
"Father!" he exclaimed.
|
|
|
|
The ape gave one look at the English lord, and then leaped
|
|
toward him, calling out in excited jabbering. The man, his eyes
|
|
going wide in astonishment, stopped as though turned to stone.
|
|
|
|
"Akut!" he cried.
|
|
|
|
The boy looked, bewildered, from the ape to his father, and
|
|
from his father to the ape. The trainer's jaw dropped as he
|
|
listened to what followed, for from the lips of the Englishman
|
|
flowed the gutturals of an ape that were answered in kind by the
|
|
huge anthropoid that now clung to him.
|
|
|
|
And from the wings a hideously bent and disfigured old man
|
|
watched the tableau in the box, his pock-marked features working
|
|
spasmodically in varying expressions that might have marked
|
|
every sensation in the gamut from pleasure to terror.
|
|
|
|
"Long have I looked for you, Tarzan," said Akut. "Now that I
|
|
have found you I shall come to your jungle and live there always."
|
|
|
|
The man stroked the beast's head. Through his mind there
|
|
was running rapidly a train of recollection that carried him
|
|
far into the depths of the primeval African forest where this
|
|
huge, man-like beast had fought shoulder to shoulder with him
|
|
years before. He saw the black Mugambi wielding his deadly knob-
|
|
stick, and beside them, with bared fangs and bristling whiskers,
|
|
Sheeta the terrible; and pressing close behind the savage and
|
|
the savage panther, the hideous apes of Akut. The man sighed.
|
|
Strong within him surged the jungle lust that he had thought dead.
|
|
Ah! if he could go back even for a brief month of it, to feel
|
|
again the brush of leafy branches against his naked hide; to
|
|
smell the musty rot of dead vegetation--frankincense and myrrh
|
|
to the jungle born; to sense the noiseless coming of the great
|
|
carnivora upon his trail; to hunt and to be hunted; to kill!
|
|
The picture was alluring. And then came another picture--a sweet-
|
|
faced woman, still young and beautiful; friends; a home; a son.
|
|
He shrugged his giant shoulders.
|
|
|
|
"It cannot be, Akut," he said; "but if you would return, I
|
|
shall see that it is done. You could not be happy here--I may
|
|
not be happy there."
|
|
|
|
The trainer stepped forward. The ape bared his fangs, growling.
|
|
|
|
"Go with him, Akut," said Tarzan of the Apes. "I will come
|
|
and see you tomorrow."
|
|
|
|
The beast moved sullenly to the trainer's side. The latter,
|
|
at John Clayton's request, told where they might be found.
|
|
Tarzan turned toward his son.
|
|
|
|
"Come!" he said, and the two left the theater. Neither spoke
|
|
for several minutes after they had entered the limousine. It was
|
|
the boy who broke the silence.
|
|
|
|
"The ape knew you," he said, "and you spoke together in
|
|
the ape's tongue. How did the ape know you, and how did you
|
|
learn his language?"
|
|
|
|
And then, briefly and for the first time, Tarzan of the Apes
|
|
told his son of his early life--of the birth in the jungle, of
|
|
the death of his parents, and of how Kala, the great she ape had
|
|
suckled and raised him from infancy almost to manhood. He told
|
|
him, too, of the dangers and the horrors of the jungle; of
|
|
the great beasts that stalked one by day and by night; of the
|
|
periods of drought, and of the cataclysmic rains; of hunger; of
|
|
cold; of intense heat; of nakedness and fear and suffering.
|
|
He told him of all those things that seem most horrible to the
|
|
creature of civilization in the hope that the knowledge of them
|
|
might expunge from the lad's mind any inherent desire for the jungle.
|
|
Yet they were the very things that made the memory of the jungle
|
|
what it was to Tarzan--that made up the composite jungle life
|
|
he loved. And in the telling he forgot one thing--the principal
|
|
thing--that the boy at his side, listening with eager ears, was
|
|
the son of Tarzan of the Apes.
|
|
|
|
After the boy had been tucked away in bed--and without the
|
|
threatened punishment--John Clayton told his wife of the events
|
|
of the evening, and that he had at last acquainted the boy with
|
|
the facts of his jungle life. The mother, who had long foreseen
|
|
that her son must some time know of those frightful years during
|
|
which his father had roamed the jungle, a naked, savage beast
|
|
of prey, only shook her head, hoping against hope that the lure
|
|
she knew was still strong in the father's breast had not been
|
|
transmitted to his son.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan visited Akut the following day, but though Jack begged
|
|
to be allowed to accompany him he was refused. This time
|
|
Tarzan saw the pock-marked old owner of the ape, whom he
|
|
did not recognize as the wily Paulvitch of former days.
|
|
Tarzan, influenced by Akut's pleadings, broached the question
|
|
of the ape's purchase; but Paulvitch would not name any price,
|
|
saying that he would consider the matter.
|
|
|
|
When Tarzan returned home Jack was all excitement to hear the
|
|
details of his visit, and finally suggested that his father
|
|
buy the ape and bring it home. Lady Greystoke was horrified at
|
|
the suggestion. The boy was insistent. Tarzan explained that he
|
|
had wished to purchase Akut and return him to his jungle home, and
|
|
to this the mother assented. Jack asked to be allowed to visit the
|
|
ape, but again he was met with flat refusal. He had the address,
|
|
however, which the trainer had given his father, and two days
|
|
later he found the opportunity to elude his new tutor--who had
|
|
replaced the terrified Mr. Moore--and after a considerable
|
|
search through a section of London which he had never before
|
|
visited, he found the smelly little quarters of the pock-marked
|
|
old man. The old fellow himself replied to his knocking, and
|
|
when he stated that he had come to see Ajax, opened the door
|
|
and admitted him to the little room which he and the great
|
|
ape occupied. In former years Paulvitch had been a fastidious
|
|
scoundrel; but ten years of hideous life among the cannibals of
|
|
Africa had eradicated the last vestige of niceness from his habits.
|
|
His apparel was wrinkled and soiled. His hands were unwashed,
|
|
his few straggling locks uncombed. His room was a jumble of
|
|
filthy disorder. As the boy entered he saw the great ape squatting
|
|
upon the bed, the coverlets of which were a tangled wad of filthy
|
|
blankets and ill-smelling quilts. At sight of the youth the ape
|
|
leaped to the floor and shuffled forward. The man, not recognizing
|
|
his visitor and fearing that the ape meant mischief, stepped
|
|
between them, ordering the ape back to the bed.
|
|
|
|
"He will not hurt me," cried the boy. "We are friends, and before,
|
|
he was my father's friend. They knew one another in the jungle.
|
|
My father is Lord Greystoke. He does not know that I have
|
|
come here. My mother forbid my coming; but I wished to see Ajax,
|
|
and I will pay you if you will let me come here often and see him."
|
|
|
|
At the mention of the boy's identity Paulvitch's eyes narrowed.
|
|
Since he had first seen Tarzan again from the wings of
|
|
the theater there had been forming in his deadened brain the
|
|
beginnings of a desire for revenge. It is a characteristic of the
|
|
weak and criminal to attribute to others the misfortunes that are
|
|
the result of their own wickedness, and so now it was that Alexis
|
|
Paulvitch was slowly recalling the events of his past life and as
|
|
he did so laying at the door of the man whom he and Rokoff had
|
|
so assiduously attempted to ruin and murder all the misfortunes
|
|
that had befallen him in the failure of their various schemes
|
|
against their intended victim.
|
|
|
|
He saw at first no way in which he could, with safety to
|
|
himself, wreak vengeance upon Tarzan through the medium of
|
|
Tarzan's son; but that great possibilities for revenge lay in the
|
|
boy was apparent to him, and so he determined to cultivate the
|
|
lad in the hope that fate would play into his hands in some way
|
|
in the future. He told the boy all that he knew of his father's
|
|
past life in the jungle and when he found that the boy had been kept
|
|
in ignorance of all these things for so many years, and that he
|
|
had been forbidden visiting the zoological gardens; that he had
|
|
had to bind and gag his tutor to find an opportunity to come to
|
|
the music hall and see Ajax, he guessed immediately the nature
|
|
of the great fear that lay in the hearts of the boy's parents--
|
|
that he might crave the jungle as his father had craved it.
|
|
|
|
And so Paulvitch encouraged the boy to come and see him often,
|
|
and always he played upon the lad's craving for tales of the
|
|
savage world with which Paulvitch was all too familiar. He left
|
|
him alone with Akut much, and it was not long until he was
|
|
surprised to learn that the boy could make the great beast
|
|
understand him--that he had actually learned many of the words
|
|
of the primitive language of the anthropoids.
|
|
|
|
During this period Tarzan came several times to visit Paulvitch.
|
|
He seemed anxious to purchase Ajax, and at last he told
|
|
the man frankly that he was prompted not only by a desire upon
|
|
his part to return the beast to the liberty of his native jungle;
|
|
but also because his wife feared that in some way her son might
|
|
learn the whereabouts of the ape and through his attachment for
|
|
the beast become imbued with the roving instinct which, as
|
|
Tarzan explained to Paulvitch, had so influenced his own life.
|
|
|
|
The Russian could scarce repress a smile as he listened to
|
|
Lord Greystoke's words, since scarce a half hour had passed
|
|
since the time the future Lord Greystoke had been sitting upon
|
|
the disordered bed jabbering away to Ajax with all the fluency
|
|
of a born ape.
|
|
|
|
It was during this interview that a plan occurred to Paulvitch,
|
|
and as a result of it he agreed to accept a certain fabulous sum
|
|
for the ape, and upon receipt of the money to deliver the beast
|
|
to a vessel that was sailing south from Dover for Africa two
|
|
days later. He had a double purpose in accepting Clayton's offer.
|
|
Primarily, the money consideration influenced him strongly, as
|
|
the ape was no longer a source of revenue to him, having
|
|
consistently refused to perform upon the stage after having
|
|
discovered Tarzan. It was as though the beast had suffered himself
|
|
to be brought from his jungle home and exhibited before thousands
|
|
of curious spectators for the sole purpose of searching out his
|
|
long lost friend and master, and, having found him, considered
|
|
further mingling with the common herd of humans unnecessary.
|
|
However that may be, the fact remained that no amount of persuasion
|
|
could influence him even to show himself upon the music hall stage,
|
|
and upon the single occasion that the trainer attempted force the
|
|
results were such that the unfortunate man considered himself
|
|
lucky to have escaped with his life. All that saved him was the
|
|
accidental presence of Jack Clayton, who had been permitted to
|
|
visit the animal in the dressing room reserved for him at the
|
|
music hall, and had immediately interfered when he saw that the
|
|
savage beast meant serious mischief.
|
|
|
|
And after the money consideration, strong in the heart of the
|
|
Russian was the desire for revenge, which had been growing with
|
|
constant brooding over the failures and miseries of his life,
|
|
which he attributed to Tarzan; the latest, and by no means the
|
|
least, of which was Ajax's refusal to longer earn money for him.
|
|
The ape's refusal he traced directly to Tarzan, finally convincing
|
|
himself that the ape man had instructed the great anthropoid to
|
|
refuse to go upon the stage.
|
|
|
|
Paulvitch's naturally malign disposition was aggravated by the
|
|
weakening and warping of his mental and physical faculties
|
|
through torture and privation. From cold, calculating, highly
|
|
intelligent perversity it had deteriorated into the
|
|
indiscriminating, dangerous menace of the mentally defective.
|
|
His plan, however, was sufficiently cunning to at least cast
|
|
a doubt upon the assertion that his mentality was wandering.
|
|
It assured him first of the competence which Lord Greystoke
|
|
had promised to pay him for the deportation of the ape, and
|
|
then of revenge upon his benefactor through the son he idolized.
|
|
That part of his scheme was crude and brutal--it lacked the
|
|
refinement of torture that had marked the master strokes of the
|
|
Paulvitch of old, when he had worked with that virtuoso of
|
|
villainy, Nikolas Rokoff--but it at least assured Paulvitch of
|
|
immunity from responsibility, placing that upon the ape, who
|
|
would thus also be punished for his refusal longer to support
|
|
the Russian.
|
|
|
|
Everything played with fiendish unanimity into Paulvitch's hands.
|
|
As chance would have it, Tarzan's son overheard his father
|
|
relating to the boy's mother the steps he was taking to return
|
|
Akut safely to his jungle home, and having overheard he begged
|
|
them to bring the ape home that he might have him for a
|
|
play-fellow. Tarzan would not have been averse to this plan;
|
|
but Lady Greystoke was horrified at the very thought of it.
|
|
Jack pleaded with his mother; but all unavailingly. She was
|
|
obdurate, and at last the lad appeared to acquiesce in his
|
|
mother's decision that the ape must be returned to Africa and
|
|
the boy to school, from which he had been absent on vacation.
|
|
|
|
He did not attempt to visit Paulvitch's room again that day,
|
|
but instead busied himself in other ways. He had always been
|
|
well supplied with money, so that when necessity demanded he
|
|
had no difficulty in collecting several hundred pounds. Some of
|
|
this money he invested in various strange purchases which he
|
|
managed to smuggle into the house, undetected, when he returned
|
|
late in the afternoon.
|
|
|
|
The next morning, after giving his father time to precede him
|
|
and conclude his business with Paulvitch, the lad hastened to
|
|
the Russian's room. Knowing nothing of the man's true character
|
|
the boy dared not take him fully into his confidence for
|
|
fear that the old fellow would not only refuse to aid him, but
|
|
would report the whole affair to his father. Instead, he simply
|
|
asked permission to take Ajax to Dover. He explained that it
|
|
would relieve the old man of a tiresome journey, as well as
|
|
placing a number of pounds in his pocket, for the lad purposed
|
|
paying the Russian well.
|
|
|
|
"You see," he went on, "there will be no danger of detection
|
|
since I am supposed to be leaving on an afternoon train for school.
|
|
Instead I will come here after they have left me on board
|
|
the train. Then I can take Ajax to Dover, you see, and arrive at
|
|
school only a day late. No one will be the wiser, no harm will
|
|
be done, and I shall have had an extra day with Ajax before I
|
|
lose him forever."
|
|
|
|
The plan fitted perfectly with that which Paulvitch had in mind.
|
|
Had he known what further the boy contemplated he would doubtless
|
|
have entirely abandoned his own scheme of revenge and aided the
|
|
boy whole heartedly in the consummation of the lad's, which would
|
|
have been better for Paulvitch, could he have but read the future
|
|
but a few short hours ahead.
|
|
|
|
That afternoon Lord and Lady Greystoke bid their son good-
|
|
bye and saw him safely settled in a first-class compartment of
|
|
the railway carriage that would set him down at school in a
|
|
few hours. No sooner had they left him, however, than he
|
|
gathered his bags together, descended from the compartment and
|
|
sought a cab stand outside the station. Here he engaged a cabby
|
|
to take him to the Russian's address. It was dusk when he arrived.
|
|
He found Paulvitch awaiting him. The man was pacing the floor
|
|
nervously. The ape was tied with a stout cord to the bed. It was
|
|
the first time that Jack had ever seen Ajax thus secured. He looked
|
|
questioningly at Paulvitch. The man, mumbling, explained that he
|
|
believed the animal had guessed that he was to be sent away and he
|
|
feared he would attempt to escape.
|
|
|
|
Paulvitch carried another piece of cord in his hand. There was
|
|
a noose in one end of it which he was continually playing with.
|
|
He walked back and forth, up and down the room. His pock-marked
|
|
features were working horribly as he talked silent to himself.
|
|
The boy had never seen him thus--it made him uneasy. At last
|
|
Paulvitch stopped on the opposite side of the room, far from the ape.
|
|
|
|
"Come here," he said to the lad. "I will show you how to secure
|
|
the ape should he show signs of rebellion during the trip."
|
|
|
|
The lad laughed. "It will not be necessary," he replied.
|
|
"Ajax will do whatever I tell him to do."
|
|
|
|
The old man stamped his foot angrily. "Come here, as I tell you,"
|
|
he repeated. "If you do not do as I say you shall not accompany
|
|
the ape to Dover--I will take no chances upon his escaping."
|
|
|
|
Still smiling, the lad crossed the room and stood before the Russ.
|
|
|
|
"Turn around, with your back toward me," directed the latter,
|
|
"that I may show you how to bind him quickly."
|
|
|
|
The boy did as he was bid, placing his hands behind him when
|
|
Paulvitch told him to do so. Instantly the old man slipped
|
|
the running noose over one of the lad's wrists, took a couple of
|
|
half hitches about his other wrist, and knotted the cord.
|
|
|
|
The moment that the boy was secured the attitude of the
|
|
man changed. With an angry oath he wheeled his prisoner about,
|
|
tripped him and hurled him violently to the floor, leaping upon
|
|
his breast as he fell. From the bed the ape growled and struggled
|
|
with his bonds. The boy did not cry out--a trait inherited from
|
|
his savage sire whom long years in the jungle following the death
|
|
of his foster mother, Kala the great ape, had taught that there
|
|
was none to come to the succor of the fallen.
|
|
|
|
Paulvitch's fingers sought the lad's throat. He grinned down
|
|
horribly into the face of his victim.
|
|
|
|
"Your father ruined me," he mumbled. "This will pay him. He will
|
|
think that the ape did it. I will tell him that the ape did it.
|
|
That I left him alone for a few minutes, and that you sneaked
|
|
in and the ape killed you. I will throw your body upon the bed
|
|
after I have choked the life from you, and when I bring your
|
|
father he will see the ape squatting over it," and the twisted
|
|
fiend cackled in gloating laughter. His fingers closed upon the
|
|
boy's throat.
|
|
|
|
Behind them the growling of the maddened beast reverberated
|
|
against the walls of the little room. The boy paled, but no other
|
|
sign of fear or panic showed upon his countenance. He was the
|
|
son of Tarzan. The fingers tightened their grip upon his throat.
|
|
It was with difficulty that he breathed, gaspingly. The ape lunged
|
|
against the stout cord that held him. Turning, he wrapped the
|
|
cord about his hands, as a man might have done, and surged
|
|
heavily backward. The great muscles stood out beneath his
|
|
shaggy hide. There was a rending as of splintered wood--the
|
|
cord held, but a portion of the footboard of the bed came away.
|
|
|
|
At the sound Paulvitch looked up. His hideous face went
|
|
white with terror--the ape was free.
|
|
|
|
With a single bound the creature was upon him. The man shrieked.
|
|
The brute wrenched him from the body of the boy. Great fingers
|
|
sunk into the man's flesh. Yellow fangs gaped close to his
|
|
throat--he struggled, futilely--and when they closed, the soul
|
|
of Alexis Paulvitch passed into the keeping of the demons who
|
|
had long been awaiting it.
|
|
|
|
The boy struggled to his feet, assisted by Akut. For two hours
|
|
under the instructions of the former the ape worked upon the
|
|
knots that secured his friend's wrists. Finally they gave up
|
|
their secret, and the boy was free. Then he opened one of his
|
|
bags and drew forth some garments. His plans had been well made.
|
|
He did not consult the beast, which did all that he directed.
|
|
Together they slunk from the house, but no casual observer might
|
|
have noted that one of them was an ape.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 4
|
|
|
|
The killing of the friendless old Russian, Michael Sabrov,
|
|
by his great trained ape, was a matter for newspaper comment
|
|
for a few days. Lord Greystoke read of it, and while taking
|
|
special precautions not to permit his name to become connected
|
|
with the affair, kept himself well posted as to the police search
|
|
for the anthropoid.
|
|
|
|
As was true of the general public, his chief interest in the
|
|
matter centered about the mysterious disappearance of the slayer.
|
|
Or at least this was true until he learned, several days subsequent
|
|
to the tragedy, that his son Jack had not reported at the public
|
|
school en route for which they had seen him safely ensconced
|
|
in a railway carriage. Even then the father did not connect the
|
|
disappearance of his son with the mystery surrounding the
|
|
whereabouts of the ape. Nor was it until a month later that
|
|
careful investigation revealed the fact that the boy had left the
|
|
train before it pulled out of the station at London, and the cab
|
|
driver had been found who had driven him to the address of the
|
|
old Russian, that Tarzan of the Apes realized that Akut had in
|
|
some way been connected with the disappearance of the boy.
|
|
|
|
Beyond the moment that the cab driver had deposited his fare
|
|
beside the curb in front of the house in which the Russian had
|
|
been quartered there was no clue. No one had seen either the
|
|
boy or the ape from that instant--at least no one who still lived.
|
|
The proprietor of the house identified the picture of the lad as
|
|
that of one who had been a frequent visitor in the room of the
|
|
old man. Aside from this he knew nothing. And there, at the
|
|
door of a grimy, old building in the slums of London, the
|
|
searchers came to a blank wall--baffled.
|
|
|
|
The day following the death of Alexis Paulvitch a youth
|
|
accompanying his invalid grandmother, boarded a steamer at Dover.
|
|
The old lady was heavily veiled, and so weakened by age and
|
|
sickness that she had to be wheeled aboard the vessel in an
|
|
invalid chair.
|
|
|
|
The boy would permit none but himself to wheel her, and
|
|
with his own hands assisted her from the chair to the interior of
|
|
their stateroom--and that was the last that was seen of the old
|
|
lady by the ship's company until the pair disembarked. The boy
|
|
even insisted upon doing the work of their cabin steward, since,
|
|
as he explained, his grandmother was suffering from a nervous
|
|
disposition that made the presence of strangers extremely
|
|
distasteful to her.
|
|
|
|
Outside the cabin--and none there was aboard who knew what he
|
|
did in the cabin--the lad was just as any other healthy, normal
|
|
English boy might have been. He mingled with his fellow passengers,
|
|
became a prime favorite with the officers, and struck up numerous
|
|
friendships among the common sailors. He was generous and
|
|
unaffected, yet carried an air of dignity and strength of
|
|
character that inspired his many new friends with admiration
|
|
as well as affection for him.
|
|
|
|
Among the passengers there was an American named Condon, a noted
|
|
blackleg and crook who was "wanted" in a half dozen of the larger
|
|
cities of the United States. He had paid little attention to the
|
|
boy until on one occasion he had seen him accidentally display
|
|
a roll of bank notes. From then on Condon cultivated the
|
|
youthful Briton. He learned, easily, that the boy was traveling
|
|
alone with his invalid grandmother, and that their destination
|
|
was a small port on the west coast of Africa, a little below the
|
|
equator; that their name was Billings, and that they had no
|
|
friends in the little settlement for which they were bound.
|
|
Upon the point of their purpose in visiting the place Condon
|
|
found the boy reticent, and so he did not push the matter--he
|
|
had learned all that he cared to know as it was.
|
|
|
|
Several times Condon attempted to draw the lad into a card
|
|
game; but his victim was not interested, and the black looks
|
|
of several of the other men passengers decided the American to
|
|
find other means of transferring the boy's bank roll to his
|
|
own pocket.
|
|
|
|
At last came the day that the steamer dropped anchor in the
|
|
lee of a wooded promontory where a score or more of sheet-
|
|
iron shacks making an unsightly blot upon the fair face of
|
|
nature proclaimed the fact that civilization had set its heel.
|
|
Straggling upon the outskirts were the thatched huts of natives,
|
|
picturesque in their primeval savagery, harmonizing with the
|
|
background of tropical jungle and accentuating the squalid
|
|
hideousness of the white man's pioneer architecture.
|
|
|
|
The boy, leaning over the rail, was looking far beyond the
|
|
man-made town deep into the God-made jungle. A little shiver
|
|
of anticipation tingled his spine, and then, quite without
|
|
volition, he found himself gazing into the loving eyes of his
|
|
mother and the strong face of the father which mirrored, beneath
|
|
its masculine strength, a love no less than the mother's
|
|
eyes proclaimed. He felt himself weakening in his resolve.
|
|
Nearby one of the ship's officers was shouting orders to a
|
|
flotilla of native boats that was approaching to lighter the
|
|
consignment of the steamer's cargo destined for this tiny post.
|
|
|
|
"When does the next steamer for England touch here?" the
|
|
boy asked.
|
|
|
|
"The Emanuel ought to be along most any time now,"
|
|
replied the officer. "I figgered we'd find her here,"
|
|
and he went on with his bellowing remarks to the dusty
|
|
horde drawing close to the steamer's side.
|
|
|
|
The task of lowering the boy's grandmother over the side to
|
|
a waiting canoe was rather difficult. The lad insisted on being
|
|
always at her side, and when at last she was safely ensconced in
|
|
the bottom of the craft that was to bear them shoreward her
|
|
grandson dropped catlike after her. So interested was he in seeing
|
|
her comfortably disposed that he failed to notice the little
|
|
package that had worked from his pocket as he assisted in lowering
|
|
the sling that contained the old woman over the steamer's side,
|
|
nor did he notice it even as it slipped out entirely and dropped
|
|
into the sea.
|
|
|
|
Scarcely had the boat containing the boy and the old woman
|
|
started for the shore than Condon hailed a canoe upon the other
|
|
side of the ship, and after bargaining with its owner finally
|
|
lowered his baggage and himself aboard. Once ashore he kept out
|
|
of sight of the two-story atrocity that bore the legend "Hotel"
|
|
to lure unsuspecting wayfarers to its multitudinous discomforts.
|
|
It was quite dark before he ventured to enter and arrange for
|
|
accommodations.
|
|
|
|
In a back room upon the second floor the lad was explaining,
|
|
not without considerable difficulty, to his grandmother that he
|
|
had decided to return to England upon the next steamer. He was
|
|
endeavoring to make it plain to the old lady that she might remain
|
|
in Africa if she wished but that for his part his conscience
|
|
demanded that he return to his father and mother, who doubtless
|
|
were even now suffering untold sorrow because of his absence;
|
|
from which it may be assumed that his parents had not been
|
|
acquainted with the plans that he and the old lady had made for
|
|
their adventure into African wilds.
|
|
|
|
Having come to a decision the lad felt a sense of relief from
|
|
the worry that had haunted him for many sleepless nights. When he
|
|
closed his eyes in sleep it was to dream of a happy reunion with
|
|
those at home. And as he dreamed, Fate, cruel and inexorable,
|
|
crept stealthily upon him through the dark corridor of the squalid
|
|
building in which he slept--Fate in the form of the American
|
|
crook, Condon.
|
|
|
|
Cautiously the man approached the door of the lad's room.
|
|
There he crouched listening until assured by the regular
|
|
breathing of those within that both slept. Quietly he
|
|
inserted a slim, skeleton key in the lock of the door.
|
|
With deft fingers, long accustomed to the silent manipulation
|
|
of the bars and bolts that guarded other men's property, Condon
|
|
turned the key and the knob simultaneously. Gentle pressure
|
|
upon the door swung it slowly inward upon its hinges. The man
|
|
entered the room, closing the door behind him. The moon was
|
|
temporarily overcast by heavy clouds. The interior of the
|
|
apartment was shrouded in gloom. Condon groped his way toward
|
|
the bed. In the far corner of the room something moved--moved
|
|
with a silent stealthiness which transcended even the trained
|
|
silence of the burglar. Condon heard nothing. His attention
|
|
was riveted upon the bed in which he thought to find a young
|
|
boy and his helpless, invalid grandmother.
|
|
|
|
The American sought only the bank roll. If he could possess
|
|
himself of this without detection, well and good; but were he to
|
|
meet resistance he was prepared for that too. The lad's clothes
|
|
lay across a chair beside the bed. The American's fingers felt
|
|
swiftly through them--the pockets contained no roll of crisp,
|
|
new notes. Doubtless they were beneath the pillows of the bed.
|
|
He stepped closer toward the sleeper; his hand was already half
|
|
way beneath the pillow when the thick cloud that had obscured
|
|
the moon rolled aside and the room was flooded with light.
|
|
At the same instant the boy opened his eyes and looked straight
|
|
into those of Condon. The man was suddenly conscious that the
|
|
boy was alone in the bed. Then he clutched for his victim's throat.
|
|
As the lad rose to meet him Condon heard a low growl at his back,
|
|
then he felt his wrists seized by the boy, and realized that
|
|
beneath those tapering, white fingers played muscles of steel.
|
|
|
|
He felt other hands at his throat, rough hairy hands that reached
|
|
over his shoulders from behind. He cast a terrified glance
|
|
backward, and the hairs of his head stiffened at the sight his eyes
|
|
revealed, for grasping him from the rear was a huge, man-like ape.
|
|
The bared fighting fangs of the anthropoid were close to his throat.
|
|
The lad pinioned his wrists. Neither uttered a sound. Where was
|
|
the grandmother? Condon's eyes swept the room in a single
|
|
all-inclusive glance. His eyes bulged in horror at the
|
|
realization of the truth which that glance revealed. In the power
|
|
of what creatures of hideous mystery had he placed himself!
|
|
Frantically he fought to beat off the lad that he might turn upon
|
|
the fearsome thing at his back. Freeing one hand he struck a
|
|
savage blow at the lad's face. His act seemed to unloose a
|
|
thousand devils in the hairy creature clinging to his throat.
|
|
Condon heard a low and savage snarl. It was the last thing that
|
|
the American ever heard in this life. Then he was dragged backward
|
|
upon the floor, a heavy body fell upon him, powerful teeth fastened
|
|
themselves in his jugular, his head whirled in the sudden blackness
|
|
which rims eternity--a moment later the ape rose from his prostrate
|
|
form; but Condon did not know--he was quite dead.
|
|
|
|
The lad, horrified, sprang from the bed to lean over the body
|
|
of the man. He knew that Akut had killed in his defense, as he
|
|
had killed Michael Sabrov; but here, in savage Africa, far from
|
|
home and friends what would they do to him and his faithful ape?
|
|
The lad knew that the penalty of murder was death. He even knew
|
|
that an accomplice might suffer the death penalty with the principal.
|
|
Who was there who would plead for them? All would be against them.
|
|
It was little more than a half-civilized community, and the chances
|
|
were that they would drag Akut and him forth in the morning and hang
|
|
them both to the nearest tree--he had read of such things being
|
|
done in America, and Africa was worse even and wilder than the
|
|
great West of his mother's native land. Yes, they would both be
|
|
hanged in the morning!
|
|
|
|
Was there no escape? He thought in silence for a few moments,
|
|
and then, with an exclamation of relief, he struck his
|
|
palms together and turned toward his clothing upon the chair.
|
|
Money would do anything! Money would save him and Akut!
|
|
He felt for the bank roll in the pocket in which he had been
|
|
accustomed to carry it. It was not there! Slowly at first and
|
|
at last frantically he searched through the remaining pockets of
|
|
his clothing. Then he dropped upon his hands and knees and
|
|
examined the floor. Lighting the lamp he moved the bed to one
|
|
side and, inch by inch, he felt over the entire floor. Beside the
|
|
body of Condon he hesitated, but at last he nerved himself to
|
|
touch it. Rolling it over he sought beneath it for the money.
|
|
Nor was it there. He guessed that Condon had entered their room
|
|
to rob; but he did not believe that the man had had time to possess
|
|
himself of the money; however, as it was nowhere else, it must
|
|
be upon the body of the dead man. Again and again he went
|
|
over the room, only to return each time to the corpse; but no
|
|
where could he find the money.
|
|
|
|
He was half-frantic with despair. What were they to do?
|
|
In the morning they would be discovered and killed. For all his
|
|
inherited size and strength he was, after all, only a little boy--
|
|
a frightened, homesick little boy--reasoning faultily from the
|
|
meager experience of childhood. He could think of but a single
|
|
glaring fact--they had killed a fellow man, and they were among
|
|
savage strangers, thirsting for the blood of the first victim whom
|
|
fate cast into their clutches. This much he had gleaned from
|
|
penny-dreadfuls.
|
|
|
|
And they must have money!
|
|
|
|
Again he approached the corpse. This time resolutely. The ape
|
|
squatted in a corner watching his young companion. The youth
|
|
commenced to remove the American's clothing piece by piece,
|
|
and, piece by piece, he examined each garment minutely. Even to
|
|
the shoes he searched with painstaking care, and when the last
|
|
article had been removed and scrutinized he dropped back upon
|
|
the bed with dilated eyes that saw nothing in the present--
|
|
only a grim tableau of the future in which two forms swung
|
|
silently from the limb of a great tree.
|
|
|
|
How long he sat thus he did not know; but finally he was aroused
|
|
by a noise coming from the floor below. Springing quickly to his
|
|
feet he blew out the lamp, and crossing the floor silently locked
|
|
the door. Then he turned toward the ape, his mind made up.
|
|
|
|
Last evening he had been determined to start for home at the
|
|
first opportunity, to beg the forgiveness of his parents for this
|
|
mad adventure. Now he knew that he might never return to them.
|
|
The blood of a fellow man was upon his hands--in his morbid
|
|
reflections he had long since ceased to attribute the death
|
|
of Condon to the ape. The hysteria of panic had fastened the
|
|
guilt upon himself. With money he might have bought justice;
|
|
but penniless!--ah, what hope could there be for strangers
|
|
without money here?
|
|
|
|
But what had become of the money? He tried to recall when
|
|
last he had seen it. He could not, nor, could he, would he have
|
|
been able to account for its disappearance, for he had been
|
|
entirely unconscious of the falling of the little package from his
|
|
pocket into the sea as he clambered over the ship's side into the
|
|
waiting canoe that bore him to shore.
|
|
|
|
Now he turned toward Akut. "Come!" he said, in the language of
|
|
the great apes.
|
|
|
|
Forgetful of the fact that he wore only a thin pajama suit he
|
|
led the way to the open window. Thrusting his head out he
|
|
listened attentively. A single tree grew a few feet from
|
|
the window. Nimbly the lad sprang to its bole, clinging
|
|
cat-like for an instant before he clambered quietly to the
|
|
ground below. Close behind him came the great ape. Two hundred
|
|
yards away a spur of the jungle ran close to the straggling town.
|
|
Toward this the lad led the way. None saw them, and a moment
|
|
later the jungle swallowed them, and John Clayton, future Lord
|
|
Greystoke, passed from the eyes and the knowledge of men.
|
|
|
|
It was late the following morning that a native houseman
|
|
knocked upon the door of the room that had been assigned to
|
|
Mrs. Billings and her grandson. Receiving no response he
|
|
inserted his pass key in the lock, only to discover that another
|
|
key was already there, but from the inside. He reported the fact
|
|
to Herr Skopf, the proprietor, who at once made his way to the
|
|
second floor where he, too, pounded vigorously upon the door.
|
|
Receiving no reply he bent to the key hole in an attempt to look
|
|
through into the room beyond. In so doing, being portly, he lost
|
|
his balance, which necessitated putting a palm to the floor to
|
|
maintain his equilibrium. As he did so he felt something soft
|
|
and thick and wet beneath his fingers. He raised his open palm
|
|
before his eyes in the dim light of the corridor and peered at it.
|
|
Then he gave a little shudder, for even in the semi-darkness he
|
|
saw a dark red stain upon his hand. Leaping to his feet he hurled
|
|
his shoulder against the door. Herr Skopf is a heavy man--or at
|
|
least he was then--I have not seen him for several years. The frail
|
|
door collapsed beneath his weight, and Herr Skopf stumbled
|
|
precipitately into the room beyond.
|
|
|
|
Before him lay the greatest mystery of his life. Upon the floor
|
|
at his feet was the dead body of a strange man. The neck was
|
|
broken and the jugular severed as by the fangs of a wild beast.
|
|
The body was entirely naked, the clothing being strewn about
|
|
the corpse. The old lady and her grandson were gone. The window
|
|
was open. They must have disappeared through the window for the
|
|
door had been locked from the inside.
|
|
|
|
But how could the boy have carried his invalid grandmother
|
|
from a second story window to the ground? It was preposterous.
|
|
Again Herr Skopf searched the small room. He noticed that the
|
|
bed was pulled well away from the wall--why? He looked beneath
|
|
it again for the third or fourth time. The two were gone,
|
|
and yet his judgment told him that the old lady could not have
|
|
gone without porters to carry her down as they had carried her
|
|
up the previous day.
|
|
|
|
Further search deepened the mystery. All the clothing of the
|
|
two was still in the room--if they had gone then they must have
|
|
gone naked or in their night clothes. Herr Skopf shook his head;
|
|
then he scratched it. He was baffled. He had never heard of
|
|
Sherlock Holmes or he would have lost no time in invoking the
|
|
aid of that celebrated sleuth, for here was a real mystery:
|
|
An old woman--an invalid who had to be carried from the ship to
|
|
her room in the hotel--and a handsome lad, her grandson, had
|
|
entered a room on the second floor of his hostelry the day before.
|
|
They had had their evening meal served in their room--that was
|
|
the last that had been seen of them. At nine the following morning
|
|
the corpse of a strange man had been the sole occupant of that room.
|
|
No boat had left the harbor in the meantime--there was not a
|
|
railroad within hundreds of miles--there was no other white
|
|
settlement that the two could reach under several days of arduous
|
|
marching accompanied by a well-equipped safari. They had
|
|
simply vanished into thin air, for the native he had sent to
|
|
inspect the ground beneath the open window had just returned
|
|
to report that there was no sign of a footstep there, and what
|
|
sort of creatures were they who could have dropped that distance
|
|
to the soft turf without leaving spoor? Herr Skopf shuddered.
|
|
Yes, it was a great mystery--there was something uncanny about
|
|
the whole thing--he hated to think about it, and he dreaded the
|
|
coming of night.
|
|
|
|
It was a great mystery to Herr Skopf--and, doubtless, still is.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 5
|
|
|
|
Captain Armand Jacot of the Foreign Legion sat upon an
|
|
outspread saddle blanket at the foot of a stunted palm tree.
|
|
His broad shoulders and his close-cropped head rested in
|
|
luxurious ease against the rough bole of the palm. His long
|
|
legs were stretched straight before him overlapping the meager
|
|
blanket, his spurs buried in the sandy soil of the little
|
|
desert oasis. The captain was taking his ease after a long
|
|
day of weary riding across the shifting sands of the desert.
|
|
|
|
Lazily he puffed upon his cigarette and watched his orderly
|
|
who was preparing his evening meal. Captain Armand Jacot was
|
|
well satisfied with himself and the world. A little to his right
|
|
rose the noisy activity of his troop of sun-tanned veterans,
|
|
released for the time from the irksome trammels of discipline,
|
|
relaxing tired muscles, laughing, joking, and smoking as they,
|
|
too, prepared to eat after a twelve-hour fast. Among them, silent
|
|
and taciturn, squatted five white-robed Arabs, securely bound
|
|
and under heavy guard.
|
|
|
|
It was the sight of these that filled Captain Armand Jacot with
|
|
the pleasurable satisfaction of a duty well-performed. For a
|
|
long, hot, gaunt month he and his little troop had scoured the
|
|
places of the desert waste in search of a band of marauders to
|
|
the sin-stained account of which were charged innumerable thefts
|
|
of camels, horses, and goats, as well as murders enough to have
|
|
sent the whole unsavory gang to the guillotine several times over.
|
|
|
|
A week before, he had come upon them. In the ensuing battle
|
|
he had lost two of his own men, but the punishment inflicted
|
|
upon the marauders had been severe almost to extinction. A half
|
|
dozen, perhaps, had escaped; but the balance, with the exception
|
|
of the five prisoners, had expiated their crimes before the nickel
|
|
jacketed bullets of the legionaries. And, best of all, the ring
|
|
leader, Achmet ben Houdin, was among the prisoners.
|
|
|
|
From the prisoners Captain Jacot permitted his mind to traverse
|
|
the remaining miles of sand to the little garrison post where,
|
|
upon the morrow, he should find awaiting him with eager welcome
|
|
his wife and little daughter. His eyes softened to the memory
|
|
of them, as they always did. Even now he could see the beauty
|
|
of the mother reflected in the childish lines of little Jeanne's
|
|
face, and both those faces would be smiling up into his as he
|
|
swung from his tired mount late the following afternoon.
|
|
Already he could feel a soft cheek pressed close to each of
|
|
his--velvet against leather.
|
|
|
|
His reverie was broken in upon by the voice of a sentry summoning
|
|
a non-commissioned officer. Captain Jacot raised his eyes.
|
|
The sun had not yet set; but the shadows of the few trees
|
|
huddled about the water hole and of his men and their horses
|
|
stretched far away into the east across the now golden sand.
|
|
The sentry was pointing in this direction, and the corporal,
|
|
through narrowed lids, was searching the distance. Captain Jacot
|
|
rose to his feet. He was not a man content to see through the eyes
|
|
of others. He must see for himself. Usually he saw things long
|
|
before others were aware that there was anything to see--a trait
|
|
that had won for him the sobriquet of Hawk. Now he saw, just
|
|
beyond the long shadows, a dozen specks rising and falling
|
|
among the sands. They disappeared and reappeared, but always
|
|
they grew larger. Jacot recognized them immediately. They were
|
|
horsemen--horsemen of the desert. Already a sergeant was running
|
|
toward him. The entire camp was straining its eyes into the distance.
|
|
Jacot gave a few terse orders to the sergeant who saluted, turned
|
|
upon his heel and returned to the men. Here he gathered a dozen
|
|
who saddled their horses, mounted and rode out to meet the strangers.
|
|
The remaining men disposed themselves in readiness for instant action.
|
|
It was not entirely beyond the range of possibilities that the
|
|
horsemen riding thus swiftly toward the camp might be friends of
|
|
the prisoners bent upon the release of their kinsmen by a
|
|
sudden attack. Jacot doubted this, however, since the strangers
|
|
were evidently making no attempt to conceal their presence.
|
|
They were galloping rapidly toward the camp in plain view
|
|
of all. There might be treachery lurking beneath their fair
|
|
appearance; but none who knew The Hawk would be so gullible as
|
|
to hope to trap him thus.
|
|
|
|
The sergeant with his detail met the Arabs two hundred yards
|
|
from the camp. Jacot could see him in conversation with a
|
|
tall, white-robed figure--evidently the leader of the band.
|
|
Presently the sergeant and this Arab rode side by side toward camp.
|
|
Jacot awaited them. The two reined in and dismounted before him.
|
|
|
|
"Sheik Amor ben Khatour," announced the sergeant by way
|
|
of introduction.
|
|
|
|
Captain Jacot eyed the newcomer. He was acquainted with nearly
|
|
every principal Arab within a radius of several hundred miles.
|
|
This man he never had seen. He was a tall, weather beaten, sour
|
|
looking man of sixty or more. His eyes were narrow and evil.
|
|
Captain Jacot did not relish his appearance.
|
|
|
|
"Well?" he asked, tentatively.
|
|
|
|
The Arab came directly to the point.
|
|
|
|
"Achmet ben Houdin is my sister's son," he said. "If you
|
|
will give him into my keeping I will see that he sins no more
|
|
against the laws of the French."
|
|
|
|
Jacot shook his head. "That cannot be," he replied. "I must
|
|
take him back with me. He will be properly and fairly tried by
|
|
a civil court. If he is innocent he will be released."
|
|
|
|
"And if he is not innocent?" asked the Arab.
|
|
|
|
"He is charged with many murders. For any one of these, if
|
|
he is proved guilty, he will have to die."
|
|
|
|
The Arab's left hand was hidden beneath his burnous. Now he
|
|
withdrew it disclosing a large goatskin purse, bulging and
|
|
heavy with coins. He opened the mouth of the purse and let a
|
|
handful of the contents trickle into the palm of his right hand--
|
|
all were pieces of good French gold. From the size of the purse
|
|
and its bulging proportions Captain Jacot concluded that it must
|
|
contain a small fortune. Sheik Amor ben Khatour dropped the
|
|
spilled gold pieces one by one back into the purse. Jacot was
|
|
eyeing him narrowly. They were alone. The sergeant, having
|
|
introduced the visitor, had withdrawn to some little distance--
|
|
his back was toward them. Now the sheik, having returned all
|
|
the gold pieces, held the bulging purse outward upon his open
|
|
palm toward Captain Jacot.
|
|
|
|
"Achmet ben Houdin, my sister's son, MIGHT escape tonight,"
|
|
he said. "Eh?"
|
|
|
|
Captain Armand Jacot flushed to the roots of his close-cropped hair.
|
|
Then he went very white and took a half-step toward the Arab.
|
|
His fists were clenched. Suddenly he thought better of whatever
|
|
impulse was moving him.
|
|
|
|
"Sergeant!" he called. The non-commissioned officer hurried toward
|
|
him, saluting as his heels clicked together before his superior.
|
|
|
|
"Take this black dog back to his people," he ordered. "See that
|
|
they leave at once. Shoot the first man who comes within range
|
|
of camp tonight."
|
|
|
|
Sheik Amor ben Khatour drew himself up to his full height.
|
|
His evil eyes narrowed. He raised the bag of gold level with the
|
|
eyes of the French officer.
|
|
|
|
"You will pay more than this for the life of Achmet ben Houdin,
|
|
my sister's son," he said. "And as much again for the name that
|
|
you have called me and a hundred fold in sorrow in the bargain."
|
|
|
|
"Get out of here!" growled Captain Armand Jacot, "before
|
|
I kick you out."
|
|
|
|
All of this happened some three years before the opening of this tale.
|
|
The trail of Achmet ben Houdin and his accomplices is a matter of
|
|
record--you may verify it if you care to. He met the death he
|
|
deserved, and he met it with the stoicism of the Arab.
|
|
|
|
A month later little Jeanne Jacot, the seven-year-old daughter
|
|
of Captain Armand Jacot, mysteriously disappeared. Neither the
|
|
wealth of her father and mother, or all the powerful resources
|
|
of the great republic were able to wrest the secret of her
|
|
whereabouts from the inscrutable desert that had swallowed her
|
|
and her abductor.
|
|
|
|
A reward of such enormous proportions was offered that many
|
|
adventurers were attracted to the hunt. This was no case for the
|
|
modern detective of civilization, yet several of these threw
|
|
themselves into the search--the bones of some are already
|
|
bleaching beneath the African sun upon the silent sands of
|
|
the Sahara.
|
|
|
|
Two Swedes, Carl Jenssen and Sven Malbihn, after three years of
|
|
following false leads at last gave up the search far to the south
|
|
of the Sahara to turn their attention to the more profitable
|
|
business of ivory poaching. In a great district they were already
|
|
known for their relentless cruelty and their greed for ivory.
|
|
The natives feared and hated them. The European governments in
|
|
whose possessions they worked had long sought them; but,
|
|
working their way slowly out of the north they had learned many
|
|
things in the no-man's-land south of the Sahara which gave them
|
|
immunity from capture through easy avenues of escape that were
|
|
unknown to those who pursued them. Their raids were sudden
|
|
and swift. They seized ivory and retreated into the trackless
|
|
wastes of the north before the guardians of the territory they
|
|
raped could be made aware of their presence. Relentlessly they
|
|
slaughtered elephants themselves as well as stealing ivory from
|
|
the natives. Their following consisted of a hundred or more
|
|
renegade Arabs and Negro slaves--a fierce, relentless band of
|
|
cut-throats. Remember them--Carl Jenssen and Sven Malbihn,
|
|
yellow-bearded, Swedish giants--for you will meet them later.
|
|
|
|
|
|
In the heart of the jungle, hidden away upon the banks of a
|
|
small unexplored tributary of a large river that empties into the
|
|
Atlantic not so far from the equator, lay a small, heavily
|
|
palisaded village. Twenty palm-thatched, beehive huts sheltered
|
|
its black population, while a half-dozen goat skin tents in the
|
|
center of the clearing housed the score of Arabs who found shelter
|
|
here while, by trading and raiding, they collected the cargoes which
|
|
their ships of the desert bore northward twice each year to the
|
|
market of Timbuktu.
|
|
|
|
Playing before one of the Arab tents was a little girl of ten--a
|
|
black-haired, black-eyed little girl who, with her nut-brown skin
|
|
and graceful carriage looked every inch a daughter of the desert.
|
|
Her little fingers were busily engaged in fashioning a skirt of
|
|
grasses for a much-disheveled doll which a kindly disposed slave
|
|
had made for her a year or two before. The head of the doll was
|
|
rudely chipped from ivory, while the body was a rat skin stuffed
|
|
with grass. The arms and legs were bits of wood, perforated at
|
|
one end and sewn to the rat skin torso. The doll was quite
|
|
hideous and altogether disreputable and soiled, but Meriem
|
|
thought it the most beautiful and adorable thing in the whole
|
|
world, which is not so strange in view of the fact that it was
|
|
the only object within that world upon which she might bestow
|
|
her confidence and her love.
|
|
|
|
Everyone else with whom Meriem came in contact was, almost
|
|
without exception, either indifferent to her or cruel. There was,
|
|
for example, the old black hag who looked after her, Mabunu--
|
|
toothless, filthy and ill tempered. She lost no opportunity
|
|
to cuff the little girl, or even inflict minor tortures upon her,
|
|
such as pinching, or, as she had twice done, searing the tender
|
|
flesh with hot coals. And there was The Sheik, her father.
|
|
She feared him more than she did Mabunu. He often scolded her
|
|
for nothing, quite habitually terminating his tirades by cruelly
|
|
beating her, until her little body was black and blue.
|
|
|
|
But when she was alone she was happy, playing with Geeka, or
|
|
decking her hair with wild flowers, or making ropes of grasses.
|
|
She was always busy and always singing--when they left her alone.
|
|
No amount of cruelty appeared sufficient to crush the innate
|
|
happiness and sweetness from her full little heart. Only when
|
|
The Sheik was near was she quiet and subdued. Him she feared
|
|
with a fear that was at times almost hysterical terror. She feared
|
|
the gloomy jungle too--the cruel jungle that surrounded the little
|
|
village with chattering monkeys and screaming birds by day and the
|
|
roaring and coughing and moaning of the carnivora by night.
|
|
Yes, she feared the jungle; but so much more did she fear The Sheik
|
|
that many times it was in her childish head to run away, out into
|
|
the terrible jungle forever rather than longer to face the ever
|
|
present terror of her father.
|
|
|
|
As she sat there this day before The Sheik's goatskin tent,
|
|
fashioning a skirt of grasses for Geeka, The Sheik appeared
|
|
suddenly approaching. Instantly the look of happiness faded
|
|
from the child's face. She shrunk aside in an attempt to scramble
|
|
from the path of the leathern-faced old Arab; but she was not
|
|
quick enough. With a brutal kick the man sent her sprawling
|
|
upon her face, where she lay quite still, tearless but trembling.
|
|
Then, with an oath at her, the man passed into the tent. The old,
|
|
black hag shook with appreciative laughter, disclosing an occasional
|
|
and lonesome yellow fang.
|
|
|
|
When she was sure The Sheik had gone, the little girl crawled
|
|
to the shady side of the tent, where she lay quite still, hugging
|
|
Geeka close to her breast, her little form racked at long intervals
|
|
with choking sobs. She dared not cry aloud, since that would
|
|
have brought The Sheik upon her again. The anguish in her little
|
|
heart was not alone the anguish of physical pain; but that
|
|
infinitely more pathetic anguish--of love denied a childish heart
|
|
that yearns for love.
|
|
|
|
Little Meriem could scarce recall any other existence than that
|
|
of the stern cruelty of The Sheik and Mabunu. Dimly, in the
|
|
back of her childish memory there lurked a blurred recollection
|
|
of a gentle mother; but Meriem was not sure but that even this
|
|
was but a dream picture induced by her own desire for the caresses
|
|
she never received, but which she lavished upon the much loved Geeka.
|
|
Never was such a spoiled child as Geeka. Its little mother,
|
|
far from fashioning her own conduct after the example set her by
|
|
her father and nurse, went to the extreme of indulgence. Geeka was
|
|
kissed a thousand times a day. There was play in which Geeka was
|
|
naughty; but the little mother never punished. Instead, she
|
|
caressed and fondled; her attitude influenced solely by her own
|
|
pathetic desire for love.
|
|
|
|
Now, as she pressed Geeka close to her, her sobs lessened
|
|
gradually, until she was able to control her voice, and pour
|
|
out her misery into the ivory ear of her only confidante.
|
|
|
|
"Geeka loves Meriem," she whispered. "Why does The Sheik,
|
|
my father, not love me, too? Am I so naughty? I try to
|
|
be good; but I never know why he strikes me, so I cannot tell
|
|
what I have done which displeases him. Just now he kicked me
|
|
and hurt me so, Geeka; but I was only sitting before the tent
|
|
making a skirt for you. That must be wicked, or he would not
|
|
have kicked me for it. But why is it wicked, Geeka? Oh dear!
|
|
I do not know, I do not know. I wish, Geeka, that I were dead.
|
|
Yesterday the hunters brought in the body of El Adrea.
|
|
El Adrea was quite dead. No more will he slink silently
|
|
upon his unsuspecting prey. No more will his great head and
|
|
his maned shoulders strike terror to the hearts of the grass
|
|
eaters at the drinking ford by night. No more will his
|
|
thundering roar shake the ground. El Adrea is dead.
|
|
They beat his body terribly when it was brought into the village;
|
|
but El Adrea did not mind. He did not feel the blows, for he
|
|
was dead. When I am dead, Geeka, neither shall I feel the blows
|
|
of Mabunu, or the kicks of The Sheik, my father. Then shall I
|
|
be happy. Oh, Geeka, how I wish that I were dead!"
|
|
|
|
If Geeka contemplated a remonstrance it was cut short by sounds
|
|
of altercation beyond the village gates. Meriem listened.
|
|
With the curiosity of childhood she would have liked to have run
|
|
down there and learn what it was that caused the men to talk
|
|
so loudly. Others of the village were already trooping in the
|
|
direction of the noise. But Meriem did not dare. The Sheik would
|
|
be there, doubtless, and if he saw her it would be but another
|
|
opportunity to abuse her, so Meriem lay still and listened.
|
|
|
|
Presently she heard the crowd moving up the street toward
|
|
The Sheik's tent. Cautiously she stuck her little head around
|
|
the edge of the tent. She could not resist the temptation,
|
|
for the sameness of the village life was monotonous, and she
|
|
craved diversion. What she saw was two strangers--white men.
|
|
They were alone, but as they approached she learned from the
|
|
talk of the natives that surrounded them that they possessed a
|
|
considerable following that was camped outside the village.
|
|
They were coming to palaver with The Sheik.
|
|
|
|
The old Arab met them at the entrance to his tent. His eyes
|
|
narrowed wickedly when they had appraised the newcomers.
|
|
They stopped before him, exchanging greetings. They had come
|
|
to trade for ivory they said. The Sheik grunted. He had no ivory.
|
|
Meriem gasped. She knew that in a near-by hut the great tusks
|
|
were piled almost to the roof. She poked her little head further
|
|
forward to get a better view of the strangers. How white their skins!
|
|
How yellow their great beards!
|
|
|
|
Suddenly one of them turned his eyes in her direction. She tried
|
|
to dodge back out of sight, for she feared all men; but he saw her.
|
|
Meriem noticed the look of almost shocked surprise that crossed
|
|
his face. The Sheik saw it too, and guessed the cause of it.
|
|
|
|
"I have no ivory," he repeated. "I do not wish to trade. Go away.
|
|
Go now."
|
|
|
|
He stepped from his tent and almost pushed the strangers
|
|
about in the direction of the gates. They demurred, and then
|
|
The Sheik threatened. It would have been suicide to have
|
|
disobeyed, so the two men turned and left the village, making
|
|
their way immediately to their own camp.
|
|
|
|
The Sheik returned to his tent; but he did not enter it. Instead he
|
|
walked to the side where little Meriem lay close to the goat skin
|
|
wall, very frightened. The Sheik stooped and clutched her by
|
|
the arm. Viciously he jerked her to her feet, dragged her to
|
|
the entrance of the tent, and shoved her viciously within.
|
|
Following her he again seized her, beating her ruthlessly.
|
|
|
|
"Stay within!" he growled. "Never let the strangers see thy face.
|
|
Next time you show yourself to strangers I shall kill you!"
|
|
|
|
With a final vicious cuff he knocked the child into a far corner
|
|
of the tent, where she lay stifling her moans, while The Sheik
|
|
paced to and fro muttering to himself. At the entrance sat Mabunu,
|
|
muttering and chuckling.
|
|
|
|
In the camp of the strangers one was speaking rapidly to the other.
|
|
|
|
"There is no doubt of it, Malbihn," he was saying. "Not the
|
|
slightest; but why the old scoundrel hasn't claimed the reward
|
|
long since is what puzzles me."
|
|
|
|
"There are some things dearer to an Arab, Jenssen, than
|
|
money," returned the first speaker--"revenge is one of them."
|
|
|
|
"Anyhow it will not harm to try the power of gold," replied Jenssen.
|
|
|
|
Malbihn shrugged.
|
|
|
|
"Not on The Sheik," he said. "We might try it on one of his
|
|
people; but The Sheik will not part with his revenge for gold.
|
|
To offer it to him would only confirm his suspicions that we must
|
|
have awakened when we were talking to him before his tent. If we
|
|
got away with our lives, then, we should be fortunate."
|
|
|
|
"Well, try bribery, then," assented Jenssen.
|
|
|
|
But bribery failed--grewsomely. The tool they selected after
|
|
a stay of several days in their camp outside the village was a
|
|
tall, old headman of The Sheik's native contingent. He fell to
|
|
the lure of the shining metal, for he had lived upon the coast
|
|
and knew the power of gold. He promised to bring them what they
|
|
craved, late that night.
|
|
|
|
Immediately after dark the two white men commenced to make
|
|
arrangements to break camp. By midnight all was prepared.
|
|
The porters lay beside their loads, ready to swing them
|
|
aloft at a moment's notice. The armed askaris loitered
|
|
between the balance of the safari and the Arab village,
|
|
ready to form a rear guard for the retreat that was to begin
|
|
the moment that the head man brought that which the white
|
|
masters awaited.
|
|
|
|
Presently there came the sound of footsteps along the path from
|
|
the village. Instantly the askaris and the whites were on
|
|
the alert. More than a single man was approaching. Jenssen stepped
|
|
forward and challenged the newcomers in a low whisper.
|
|
|
|
"Who comes?" he queried.
|
|
|
|
"Mbeeda," came the reply.
|
|
|
|
Mbeeda was the name of the traitorous head man. Jenssen was
|
|
satisfied, though he wondered why Mbeeda had brought others
|
|
with him. Presently he understood. The thing they fetched
|
|
lay upon a litter borne by two men. Jenssen cursed beneath
|
|
his breath. Could the fool be bringing them a corpse?
|
|
They had paid for a living prize!
|
|
|
|
The bearers came to a halt before the white men.
|
|
|
|
"This has your gold purchased," said one of the two. They set
|
|
the litter down, turned and vanished into the darkness toward
|
|
the village. Malbihn looked at Jenssen, a crooked smile twisting
|
|
his lips. The thing upon the litter was covered with a piece of cloth.
|
|
|
|
"Well?" queried the latter. "Raise the covering and see what
|
|
you have bought. Much money shall we realize on a corpse--
|
|
especially after the six months beneath the burning sun that will
|
|
be consumed in carrying it to its destination!"
|
|
|
|
"The fool should have known that we desired her alive,"
|
|
grumbled Malbihn, grasping a corner of the cloth and jerking
|
|
the cover from the thing that lay upon the litter.
|
|
|
|
At sight of what lay beneath both men stepped back--
|
|
involuntary oaths upon their lips--for there before them
|
|
lay the dead body of Mbeeda, the faithless head man.
|
|
|
|
Five minutes later the safari of Jenssen and Malbihn
|
|
was forcing its way rapidly toward the west, nervous askaris
|
|
guarding the rear from the attack they momentarily expected.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 6
|
|
|
|
His first night in the jungle was one which the son of
|
|
Tarzan held longest in his memory. No savage carnivora
|
|
menaced him. There was never a sign of hideous barbarian.
|
|
Or, if there were, the boy's troubled mind took no cognizance
|
|
of them. His conscience was harassed by the thought of his
|
|
mother's suffering. Self-blame plunged him into the depths
|
|
of misery. The killing of the American caused him little or
|
|
no remorse. The fellow had earned his fate. Jack's regret
|
|
on this score was due mainly to the effect which the death of
|
|
Condon had had upon his own plans. Now he could not return
|
|
directly to his parents as he had planned. Fear of the primitive,
|
|
borderland law, of which he had read highly colored, imaginary tales,
|
|
had thrust him into the jungle a fugitive. He dared not return to
|
|
the coast at this point--not that he was so greatly influenced
|
|
through personal fear as from a desire to shield his father and
|
|
mother from further sorrow and from the shame of having their
|
|
honored name dragged through the sordid degradation of a murder trial.
|
|
|
|
With returning day the boy's spirits rose. With the rising sun
|
|
rose new hope within his breast. He would return to civilization
|
|
by another way. None would guess that he had been connected
|
|
with the killing of the stranger in the little out-of-the-way
|
|
trading post upon a remote shore.
|
|
|
|
Crouched close to the great ape in the crotch of a tree the boy
|
|
had shivered through an almost sleepless night. His light pajamas
|
|
had been but little protection from the chill dampness of
|
|
the jungle, and only that side of him which was pressed against
|
|
the warm body of his shaggy companion approximated to comfort.
|
|
And so he welcomed the rising sun with its promise of warmth as well
|
|
as light--the blessed sun, dispeller of physical and mental ills.
|
|
|
|
He shook Akut into wakefulness.
|
|
|
|
"Come," he said. "I am cold and hungry. We will search for
|
|
food, out there in the sunlight," and he pointed to an open
|
|
plain, dotted with stunted trees and strewn with jagged rock.
|
|
|
|
The boy slid to the ground as he spoke, but the ape first looked
|
|
carefully about, sniffing the morning air. Then, satisfied that
|
|
no danger lurked near, he descended slowly to the ground beside
|
|
the boy."
|
|
|
|
"Numa, and Sabor his mate, feast upon those who descend
|
|
first and look afterward, while those who look first and descend
|
|
afterward live to feast themselves." Thus the old ape imparted
|
|
to the son of Tarzan the boy's first lesson in jungle lore. Side by
|
|
side they set off across the rough plain, for the boy wished first
|
|
to be warm. The ape showed him the best places to dig for
|
|
rodents and worms; but the lad only gagged at the thought of
|
|
devouring the repulsive things. Some eggs they found, and these
|
|
he sucked raw, as also he ate roots and tubers which Akut unearthed.
|
|
Beyond the plain and across a low bluff they came upon water--
|
|
brackish, ill-smelling stuff in a shallow water hole, the sides
|
|
and bottom of which were trampled by the feet of many beasts.
|
|
A herd of zebra galloped away as they approached.
|
|
|
|
The lad was too thirsty by now to cavil at anything even remotely
|
|
resembling water, so he drank his fill while Akut stood with
|
|
raised head, alert for any danger. Before the ape drank he
|
|
cautioned the boy to be watchful; but as he drank he raised his
|
|
head from time to time to cast a quick glance toward a clump
|
|
of bushes a hundred yards away upon the opposite side of the
|
|
water hole. When he had done he rose and spoke to the boy, in
|
|
the language that was their common heritage--the tongue of the
|
|
great apes.
|
|
|
|
"There is no danger near?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"None," replied the boy. "I saw nothing move while you drank."
|
|
|
|
"Your eyes will help you but little in the jungle," said the ape.
|
|
|
|
"Here, if you would live, you must depend upon your ears
|
|
and your nose but most upon your nose. When we came down
|
|
to drink I knew that no danger lurked near upon this side of the
|
|
water hole, for else the zebras would have discovered it and fled
|
|
before we came; but upon the other side toward which the wind
|
|
blows danger might lie concealed. We could not smell it for its
|
|
scent is being blown in the other direction, and so I bent my
|
|
ears and eyes down wind where my nose cannot travel."
|
|
|
|
"And you found--nothing?" asked the lad, with a laugh.
|
|
|
|
"I found Numa crouching in that clump of bushes where the
|
|
tall grasses grow," and Akut pointed.
|
|
|
|
"A lion?" exclaimed the boy. "How do you know? I can see nothing."
|
|
|
|
"Numa is there, though," replied the great ape. "First I heard
|
|
him sigh. To you the sigh of Numa may sound no different from
|
|
the other noises which the wind makes among the grasses and
|
|
the trees; but later you must learn to know the sigh of Numa.
|
|
Then I watched and at last I saw the tall grasses moving at one
|
|
point to a force other than the force of the wind. See, they are
|
|
spread there upon either side of Numa's great body, and as he
|
|
breathes--you see? You see the little motion at either side that
|
|
is not caused by the wind--the motion that none of the other
|
|
grasses have?"
|
|
|
|
The boy strained his eyes--better eyes than the ordinary boy
|
|
inherits--and at last he gave a little exclamation of discovery.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," he said, "I see. He lies there," and he pointed.
|
|
"His head is toward us. Is he watching us?"
|
|
|
|
"Numa is watching us," replied Akut, "but we are in little
|
|
danger, unless we approach too close, for he is lying upon
|
|
his kill. His belly is almost full, or we should hear him
|
|
crunching the bones. He is watching us in silence merely
|
|
from curiosity. Presently he will resume his feeding or he
|
|
will rise and come down to the water for a drink. As he
|
|
neither fears or desires us he will not try to hide his
|
|
presence from us; but now is an excellent time to learn to
|
|
know Numa, for you must learn to know him well if you would
|
|
live long in the jungle. Where the great apes are many Numa
|
|
leaves us alone. Our fangs are long and strong, and we can
|
|
fight; but when we are alone and he is hungry we are no match
|
|
for him. Come, we will circle him and catch his scent.
|
|
The sooner you learn to know it the better; but keep close to
|
|
the trees, as we go around him, for Numa often does that which
|
|
he is least expected to do. And keep your ears and your eyes
|
|
and your nose open. Remember always that there may be an enemy
|
|
behind every bush, in every tree and amongst every clump of
|
|
jungle grass. While you are avoiding Numa do not run into the
|
|
jaws of Sabor, his mate. Follow me," and Akut set off in a wide
|
|
circle about the water hole and the crouching lion.
|
|
|
|
The boy followed close upon his heels, his every sense upon
|
|
the alert, his nerves keyed to the highest pitch of excitement.
|
|
This was life! For the instant he forgot his resolutions of a few
|
|
minutes past to hasten to the coast at some other point than that
|
|
at which he had landed and make his way immediately back to London.
|
|
He thought now only of the savage joy of living, and of pitting
|
|
one's wits and prowess against the wiles and might of the savage
|
|
jungle brood which haunted the broad plains and the gloomy forest
|
|
aisles of the great, untamed continent. He knew no fear.
|
|
His father had had none to transmit to him; but honor and
|
|
conscience he did have and these were to trouble him many
|
|
times as they battled with his inherent love of freedom for
|
|
possession of his soul.
|
|
|
|
They had passed but a short distance to the rear of Numa when
|
|
the boy caught the unpleasant odor of the carnivore. His face
|
|
lighted with a smile. Something told him that he would have
|
|
known that scent among a myriad of others even if Akut had not
|
|
told him that a lion lay near. There was a strange familiarity--
|
|
a weird familiarity in it that made the short hairs rise at the
|
|
nape of his neck, and brought his upper lip into an involuntary
|
|
snarl that bared his fighting fangs. There was a sense of
|
|
stretching of the skin about his ears, for all the world as though
|
|
those members were flattening back against his skull in preparation
|
|
for deadly combat. His skin tingled. He was aglow with a
|
|
pleasurable sensation that he never before had known. He was,
|
|
upon the instant, another creature--wary, alert, ready. Thus did
|
|
the scent of Numa, the lion, transform the boy into a beast.
|
|
|
|
He had never seen a lion--his mother had gone to great pains
|
|
to prevent it. But he had devoured countless pictures of them,
|
|
and now he was ravenous to feast his eyes upon the king of
|
|
beasts in the flesh. As he trailed Akut he kept an eye cocked
|
|
over one shoulder, rearward, in the hope that Numa might rise
|
|
from his kill and reveal himself. Thus it happened that he
|
|
dropped some little way behind Akut, and the next he knew he
|
|
was recalled suddenly to a contemplation of other matters than
|
|
the hidden Numa by a shrill scream of warning from the Ape.
|
|
Turning his eyes quickly in the direction of his companion, the
|
|
boy saw that, standing in the path directly before him, which
|
|
sent tremors of excitement racing along every nerve of his body.
|
|
With body half-merging from a clump of bushes in which she
|
|
must have lain hidden stood a sleek and beautiful lioness.
|
|
Her yellow-green eyes were round and staring, boring straight into
|
|
the eyes of the boy. Not ten paces separated them. Twenty paces
|
|
behind the lioness stood the great ape, bellowing instructions to
|
|
the boy and hurling taunts at the lioness in an evident effort to
|
|
attract her attention from the lad while he gained the shelter of
|
|
a near-by tree.
|
|
|
|
But Sabor was not to be diverted. She had her eyes upon the lad.
|
|
He stood between her and her mate, between her and the kill.
|
|
It was suspicious. Probably he had ulterior designs upon her
|
|
lord and master or upon the fruits of their hunting. A lioness
|
|
is short tempered. Akut's bellowing annoyed her. She uttered a
|
|
little rumbling growl, taking a step toward the boy.
|
|
|
|
"The tree!" screamed Akut.
|
|
|
|
The boy turned and fled, and at the same instant the lioness charged.
|
|
The tree was but a few paces away. A limb hung ten feet from the
|
|
ground, and as the boy leaped for it the lioness leaped for him.
|
|
Like a monkey he pulled himself up and to one side. A great
|
|
forepaw caught him a glancing blow at the hips--just grazing him.
|
|
One curved talon hooked itself into the waist band of his pajama
|
|
trousers, ripping them from him as the lioness sped by. Half-naked
|
|
the lad drew himself to safety as the beast turned and leaped for
|
|
him once more.
|
|
|
|
Akut, from a near-by tree, jabbered and scolded, calling the
|
|
lioness all manner of foul names. The boy, patterning his
|
|
conduct after that of his preceptor, unstoppered the vials of his
|
|
invective upon the head of the enemy, until in realization of the
|
|
futility of words as weapons he bethought himself of something
|
|
heavier to hurl. There was nothing but dead twigs and branches
|
|
at hand, but these he flung at the upturned, snarling face of
|
|
Sabor just as his father had before him twenty years ago, when
|
|
as a boy he too had taunted and tantalized the great cats of
|
|
the jungle.
|
|
|
|
The lioness fretted about the bole of the tree for a short time;
|
|
but finally, either realizing the uselessness of her vigil, or
|
|
prompted by the pangs of hunger, she stalked majestically away
|
|
and disappeared in the brush that hid her lord, who had not once
|
|
shown himself during the altercation.
|
|
|
|
Freed from their retreats Akut and the boy came to the ground,
|
|
to take up their interrupted journey once more. The old ape
|
|
scolded the lad for his carelessness.
|
|
|
|
"Had you not been so intent upon the lion behind you you
|
|
might have discovered the lioness much sooner than you did,"
|
|
|
|
"But you passed right by her without seeing her," retorted
|
|
the boy.
|
|
|
|
Akut was chagrined.
|
|
|
|
"It is thus," he said, "that jungle folk die. We go cautiously
|
|
for a lifetime, and then, just for an instant, we forget, and--"
|
|
he ground his teeth in mimicry of the crunching of great jaws
|
|
in flesh. "It is a lesson," he resumed. "You have learned that
|
|
you may not for too long keep your eyes and your ears and your
|
|
nose all bent in the same direction."
|
|
|
|
That night the son of Tarzan was colder than he ever had been
|
|
in all his life. The pajama trousers had not been heavy; but they
|
|
had been much heavier than nothing. And the next day he roasted
|
|
in the hot sun, for again their way led much across wide and
|
|
treeless plains.
|
|
|
|
It was still in the boy's mind to travel to the south, and circle
|
|
back to the coast in search of another outpost of civilization.
|
|
He had said nothing of this plan to Akut, for he knew that the old
|
|
ape would look with displeasure upon any suggestion that savored
|
|
of separation.
|
|
|
|
For a month the two wandered on, the boy learning rapidly
|
|
the laws of the jungle; his muscles adapting themselves to the
|
|
new mode of life that had been thrust upon them. The thews of
|
|
the sire had been transmitted to the son--it needed only the
|
|
hardening of use to develop them. The lad found that it came
|
|
quite naturally to him to swing through the trees. Even at great
|
|
heights he never felt the slightest dizziness, and when he had
|
|
caught the knack of the swing and the release, he could hurl
|
|
himself through space from branch to branch with even greater
|
|
agility than the heavier Akut.
|
|
|
|
And with exposure came a toughening and hardening of his
|
|
smooth, white skin, browning now beneath the sun and wind.
|
|
He had removed his pajama jacket one day to bathe in a little
|
|
stream that was too small to harbor crocodiles, and while he
|
|
and Akut had been disporting themselves in the cool waters a
|
|
monkey had dropped down from the over hanging trees, snatched
|
|
up the boy's single remaining article of civilized garmenture,
|
|
and scampered away with it.
|
|
|
|
For a time Jack was angry; but when he had been without the
|
|
jacket for a short while he began to realize that being half-
|
|
clothed is infinitely more uncomfortable than being entirely naked.
|
|
Soon he did not miss his clothing in the least, and from that he
|
|
came to revel in the freedom of his unhampered state.
|
|
Occasionally a smile would cross his face as he tried to imagine
|
|
the surprise of his schoolmates could they but see him now.
|
|
They would envy him. Yes, how they would envy him. He felt
|
|
sorry for them at such times, and again as he thought of them
|
|
amid luxuries and comforts of their English homes, happy with
|
|
their fathers and mothers, a most uncomfortable lump would arise
|
|
into the boy's throat, and he would see a vision of his mother's
|
|
face through a blur of mist that came unbidden to his eyes.
|
|
Then it was that he urged Akut onward, for now they were headed
|
|
westward toward the coast. The old ape thought that they were
|
|
searching for a tribe of his own kind, nor did the boy disabuse
|
|
his mind of this belief. It would do to tell Akut of his real
|
|
plans when they had come within sight of civilization.
|
|
|
|
One day as they were moving slowly along beside a river they
|
|
came unexpectedly upon a native village. Some children were
|
|
playing beside the water. The boy's heart leaped within his breast
|
|
at sight of them--for over a month he had seen no human being.
|
|
What if these were naked savages? What if their skins were black?
|
|
Were they not creatures fashioned in the mold of their Maker,
|
|
as was he? They were his brothers and sisters! He started
|
|
toward them. With a low warning Akut laid a hand upon his
|
|
arm to hold him back. The boy shook himself free, and with a
|
|
shout of greeting ran forward toward the ebon players.
|
|
|
|
The sound of his voice brought every head erect. Wide eyes
|
|
viewed him for an instant, and then, with screams of terror, the
|
|
children turned and fled toward the village. At their heels ran
|
|
their mothers, and from the village gate, in response to the
|
|
alarm, came a score of warriors, hastily snatched spears and
|
|
shields ready in their hands.
|
|
|
|
At sight of the consternation he had wrought the boy halted.
|
|
The glad smile faded from his face as with wild shouts and
|
|
menacing gestures the warriors ran toward him. Akut was calling
|
|
to him from behind to turn and flee, telling him that the
|
|
blacks would kill him. For a moment he stood watching them
|
|
coming, then he raised his hand with the palm toward them in
|
|
signal for them to halt, calling out at the same time that he came
|
|
as a friend--that he had only wanted to play with their children.
|
|
Of course they did not understand a word that he addressed to
|
|
them, and their answer was what any naked creature who had
|
|
run suddenly out of the jungle upon their women and children
|
|
might have expected--a shower of spears. The missiles struck
|
|
all about the boy, but none touched him. Again his spine tingled
|
|
and the short hairs lifted at the nape of his neck and along the
|
|
top of his scalp. His eyes narrowed. Sudden hatred flared in
|
|
them to wither the expression of glad friendliness that had lighted
|
|
them but an instant before. With a low snarl, quite similar to
|
|
that of a baffled beast, he turned and ran into the jungle.
|
|
There was Akut awaiting him in a tree. The ape urged him to hasten
|
|
in flight, for the wise old anthropoid knew that they two, naked
|
|
and unarmed, were no match for the sinewy black warriors who would
|
|
doubtless make some sort of search for them through the jungle.
|
|
|
|
But a new power moved the son of Tarzan. He had come with a
|
|
boy's glad and open heart to offer his friendship to these people
|
|
who were human beings like himself. He had been met with
|
|
suspicion and spears. They had not even listened to him.
|
|
Rage and hatred consumed him. When Akut urged speed he held back.
|
|
He wanted to fight, yet his reason made it all too plain that it
|
|
would be but a foolish sacrifice of his life to meet these
|
|
armed men with his naked hands and his teeth--already the boy
|
|
thought of his teeth, of his fighting fangs, when possibility of
|
|
combat loomed close.
|
|
|
|
Moving slowly through the trees he kept his eyes over his shoulder,
|
|
though he no longer neglected the possibilities of other dangers
|
|
which might lurk on either hand or ahead--his experience with the
|
|
lioness did not need a repetition to insure the permanency of the
|
|
lesson it had taught. Behind he could hear the savages advancing
|
|
with shouts and cries. He lagged further behind until the pursuers
|
|
were in sight. They did not see him, for they were not looking
|
|
among the branches of the trees for human quarry. The lad kept
|
|
just ahead of them. For a mile perhaps they continued the search,
|
|
and then they turned back toward the village. Here was the boy's
|
|
opportunity, that for which he had been waiting, while the hot
|
|
blood of revenge coursed through his veins until he saw his
|
|
pursuers through a scarlet haze.
|
|
|
|
When they turned back he turned and followed them. Akut was
|
|
no longer in sight. Thinking that the boy followed he had
|
|
gone on further ahead. He had no wish to tempt fate within range
|
|
of those deadly spears. Slinking silently from tree to tree the
|
|
boy dogged the footsteps of the returning warriors. At last one
|
|
dropped behind his fellows as they followed a narrow path toward
|
|
the village. A grim smile lit the lad's face. Swiftly he
|
|
hurried forward until he moved almost above the unconscious
|
|
black--stalking him as Sheeta, the panther, stalked his prey, as
|
|
the boy had seen Sheeta do on many occasions.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly and silently he leaped forward and downward upon
|
|
the broad shoulders of his prey. In the instant of contact his
|
|
fingers sought and found the man's throat. The weight of the
|
|
boy's body hurled the black heavily to the ground, the knees in
|
|
his back knocking the breath from him as he struck. Then a set
|
|
of strong, white teeth fastened themselves in his neck, and muscular
|
|
fingers closed tighter upon his wind-pipe. For a time the
|
|
warrior struggled frantically, throwing himself about in an effort
|
|
to dislodge his antagonist; but all the while he was weakening
|
|
and all the while the grim and silent thing he could not see clung
|
|
tenaciously to him, and dragged him slowly into the bush to one
|
|
side of the trail.
|
|
|
|
Hidden there at last, safe from the prying eyes of searchers,
|
|
should they miss their fellow and return for him, the lad choked
|
|
the life from the body of his victim. At last he knew by the
|
|
sudden struggle, followed by limp relaxation, that the warrior
|
|
was dead. Then a strange desire seized him. His whole being
|
|
quivered and thrilled. Involuntarily he leaped to his feet and
|
|
placed one foot upon the body of his kill. His chest expanded.
|
|
He raised his face toward the heavens and opened his mouth to
|
|
voice a strange, weird cry that seemed screaming within him for
|
|
outward expression, but no sound passed his lips--he just stood
|
|
there for a full minute, his face turned toward the sky, his breast
|
|
heaving to the pent emotion, like an animate statue of vengeance.
|
|
|
|
The silence which marked the first great kill of the son of
|
|
Tarzan was to typify all his future kills, just as the hideous
|
|
victory cry of the bull ape had marked the kills of his mighty sire.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 7
|
|
|
|
Akut, discovering that the boy was not close behind him,
|
|
turned back to search for him. He had gone but a short
|
|
distance in return when he was brought to a sudden and startled
|
|
halt by sight of a strange figure moving through the trees
|
|
toward him. It was the boy, yet could it be? In his hand was
|
|
a long spear, down his back hung an oblong shield such as the
|
|
black warriors who had attacked them had worn, and upon ankle and
|
|
arm were bands of iron and brass, while a loin cloth was twisted
|
|
about the youth's middle. A knife was thrust through its folds.
|
|
|
|
When the boy saw the ape he hastened forward to exhibit
|
|
his trophies. Proudly he called attention to each of his
|
|
newly won possessions. Boastfully he recounted the details
|
|
of his exploit.
|
|
|
|
"With my bare hands and my teeth I killed him," he said.
|
|
"I would have made friends with them but they chose to be
|
|
my enemies. And now that I have a spear I shall show Numa, too,
|
|
what it means to have me for a foe. Only the white men and the
|
|
great apes, Akut, are our friends. Them we shall seek, all others
|
|
must we avoid or kill. This have I learned of the jungle."
|
|
|
|
They made a detour about the hostile village, and resumed
|
|
their journey toward the coast. The boy took much pride in his
|
|
new weapons and ornaments. He practiced continually with the
|
|
spear, throwing it at some object ahead hour by hour as they
|
|
traveled their loitering way, until he gained a proficiency such
|
|
as only youthful muscles may attain to speedily. All the while
|
|
his training went on under the guidance of Akut. No longer was
|
|
there a single jungle spoor but was an open book to the keen
|
|
eyes of the lad, and those other indefinite spoor that elude the
|
|
senses of civilized man and are only partially appreciable to his
|
|
savage cousin came to be familiar friends of the eager boy.
|
|
He could differentiate the innumerable species of the herbivora
|
|
by scent, and he could tell, too, whether an animal was approaching
|
|
or departing merely by the waxing or waning strength of its effluvium.
|
|
Nor did he need the evidence of his eyes to tell him whether there
|
|
were two lions or four up wind,--a hundred yards away or half a mile.
|
|
|
|
Much of this had Akut taught him, but far more was instinctive
|
|
knowledge--a species of strange intuition inherited from
|
|
his father. He had come to love the jungle life. The constant
|
|
battle of wits and senses against the many deadly foes that lurked
|
|
by day and by night along the pathway of the wary and the unwary
|
|
appealed to the spirit of adventure which breathes strong in the
|
|
heart of every red-blooded son of primordial Adam. Yet, though
|
|
he loved it, he had not let his selfish desires outweigh the
|
|
sense of duty that had brought him to a realization of the
|
|
moral wrong which lay beneath the adventurous escapade that
|
|
had brought him to Africa. His love of father and mother was
|
|
strong within him, too strong to permit unalloyed happiness
|
|
which was undoubtedly causing them days of sorrow. And so
|
|
he held tight to his determination to find a port upon the coast
|
|
where he might communicate with them and receive funds for
|
|
his return to London. There he felt sure that he could now
|
|
persuade his parents to let him spend at least a portion of his
|
|
time upon those African estates which from little careless remarks
|
|
dropped at home he knew his father possessed. That would be
|
|
something, better at least than a lifetime of the cramped and
|
|
cloying restrictions of civilization.
|
|
|
|
And so he was rather contented than otherwise as he made
|
|
his way in the direction of the coast, for while he enjoyed the
|
|
liberty and the savage pleasures of the wild his conscience was at
|
|
the same time clear, for he knew that he was doing all that lay
|
|
in his power to return to his parents. He rather looked forward,
|
|
too, to meeting white men again--creatures of his own kind--
|
|
for there had been many occasions upon which he had longed
|
|
for other companionship than that of the old ape. The affair with
|
|
the blacks still rankled in his heart. He had approached them in
|
|
such innocent good fellowship and with such childlike assurance
|
|
of a hospitable welcome that the reception which had been accorded
|
|
him had proved a shock to his boyish ideals. He no longer looked
|
|
upon the black man as his brother; but rather as only another of
|
|
the innumerable foes of the bloodthirsty jungle--a beast of prey
|
|
which walked upon two feet instead of four.
|
|
|
|
But if the blacks were his enemies there were those in the
|
|
world who were not. There were those who always would welcome
|
|
him with open arms; who would accept him as a friend and brother,
|
|
and with whom he might find sanctuary from every enemy.
|
|
Yes, there were always white men. Somewhere along the coast
|
|
or even in the depths of the jungle itself there were white men.
|
|
To them he would be a welcome visitor. They would befriend him.
|
|
And there were also the great apes--the friends of his father
|
|
and of Akut. How glad they would be to receive the son of
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes! He hoped that he could come upon them before
|
|
he found a trading post upon the coast. He wanted to be able to
|
|
tell his father that he had known his old friends of the jungle,
|
|
that he had hunted with them, that he had joined with them in
|
|
their savage life, and their fierce, primeval ceremonies--the
|
|
strange ceremonies of which Akut had tried to tell him. It cheered
|
|
him immensely to dwell upon these happy meetings. Often he
|
|
rehearsed the long speech which he would make to the apes, in
|
|
which he would tell them of the life of their former king since
|
|
he had left them.
|
|
|
|
At other times he would play at meeting with white men. Then he
|
|
would enjoy their consternation at sight of a naked white boy
|
|
trapped in the war togs of a black warrior and roaming the jungle
|
|
with only a great ape as his companion.
|
|
|
|
And so the days passed, and with the traveling and the hunting
|
|
and the climbing the boy's muscles developed and his agility
|
|
increased until even phlegmatic Akut marvelled at the prowess
|
|
of his pupil. And the boy, realizing his great strength and
|
|
revelling in it, became careless. He strode through the jungle,
|
|
his proud head erect, defying danger. Where Akut took to the trees
|
|
at the first scent of Numa, the lad laughed in the face of the king
|
|
of beasts and walked boldly past him. Good fortune was with
|
|
him for a long time. The lions he met were well-fed, perhaps,
|
|
or the very boldness of the strange creature which invaded their
|
|
domain so filled them with surprise that thoughts of attack were
|
|
banished from their minds as they stood, round-eyed, watching
|
|
his approach and his departure. Whatever the cause, however,
|
|
the fact remains that on many occasions the boy passed within
|
|
a few paces of some great lion without arousing more than a
|
|
warning growl.
|
|
|
|
But no two lions are necessarily alike in character or temper.
|
|
They differ as greatly as do individuals of the human family.
|
|
Because ten lions act similarly under similar conditions one
|
|
cannot say that the eleventh lion will do likewise--the
|
|
chances are that he will not. The lion is a creature of high
|
|
nervous development. He thinks, therefore he reasons. Having a
|
|
nervous system and brains he is the possessor of temperament,
|
|
which is affected variously by extraneous causes. One day the
|
|
boy met the eleventh lion. The former was walking across a small
|
|
plain upon which grew little clumps of bushes. Akut was a few yards
|
|
to the left of the lad who was the first to discover the presence
|
|
of Numa.
|
|
|
|
"Run, Akut," called the boy, laughing. "Numa lies hid in the
|
|
bushes to my right. Take to the trees. Akut! I, the son of
|
|
Tarzan, will protect you," and the boy, laughing, kept straight
|
|
along his way which led close beside the brush in which Numa
|
|
lay concealed.
|
|
|
|
The ape shouted to him to come away, but the lad only flourished
|
|
his spear and executed an improvised war dance to show his
|
|
contempt for the king of beasts. Closer and closer to the
|
|
dread destroyer he came, until, with a sudden, angry growl, the
|
|
lion rose from his bed not ten paces from the youth. A huge
|
|
fellow he was, this lord of the jungle and the desert. A shaggy
|
|
mane clothed his shoulders. Cruel fangs armed his great jaws.
|
|
His yellow-green eyes blazed with hatred and challenge.
|
|
|
|
The boy, with his pitifully inadequate spear ready in his hand,
|
|
realized quickly that this lion was different from the others he
|
|
had met; but he had gone too far now to retreat. The nearest
|
|
tree lay several yards to his left--the lion could be upon him
|
|
before he had covered half the distance, and that the beast
|
|
intended to charge none could doubt who looked upon him now.
|
|
Beyond the lion was a thorn tree--only a few feet beyond him.
|
|
It was the nearest sanctuary but Numa stood between it and his prey.
|
|
|
|
The feel of the long spear shaft in his hand and the sight of
|
|
the tree beyond the lion gave the lad an idea--a preposterous
|
|
idea--a ridiculous, forlorn hope of an idea; but there was no
|
|
time now to weigh chances--there was but a single chance, and
|
|
that was the thorn tree. If the lion charged it would be too late--
|
|
the lad must charge first, and to the astonishment of Akut and
|
|
none the less of Numa, the boy leaped swiftly toward the beast.
|
|
Just for a second was the lion motionless with surprise and in
|
|
that second Jack Clayton put to the crucial test an accomplishment
|
|
which he had practiced at school.
|
|
|
|
Straight for the savage brute he ran, his spear held butt
|
|
foremost across his body. Akut shrieked in terror and amazement.
|
|
The lion stood with wide, round eyes awaiting the attack, ready
|
|
to rear upon his hind feet and receive this rash creature with
|
|
blows that could crush the skull of a buffalo.
|
|
|
|
Just in front of the lion the boy placed the butt of his spear
|
|
upon the ground, gave a mighty spring, and, before the bewildered
|
|
beast could guess the trick that had been played upon him,
|
|
sailed over the lion's head into the rending embrace of the thorn
|
|
tree--safe but lacerated.
|
|
|
|
Akut had never before seen a pole-vault. Now he leaped up
|
|
and down within the safety of his own tree, screaming taunts
|
|
and boasts at the discomfited Numa, while the boy, torn and
|
|
bleeding, sought some position in his thorny retreat in which he
|
|
might find the least agony. He had saved his life; but at
|
|
considerable cost in suffering. It seemed to him that the lion
|
|
would never leave, and it was a full hour before the angry brute
|
|
gave up his vigil and strode majestically away across the plain.
|
|
When he was at a safe distance the boy extricated himself from the
|
|
thorn tree; but not without inflicting new wounds upon his already
|
|
tortured flesh.
|
|
|
|
It was many days before the outward evidence of the lesson
|
|
he had learned had left him; while the impression upon his mind
|
|
was one that was to remain with him for life. Never again did
|
|
he uselessly tempt fate.
|
|
|
|
He took long chances often in his after life; but only when the
|
|
taking of chances might further the attainment of some cherished
|
|
end--and, always thereafter, he practiced pole-vaulting.
|
|
|
|
For several days the boy and the ape lay up while the former
|
|
recovered from the painful wounds inflicted by the sharp thorns.
|
|
The great anthropoid licked the wounds of his human friend,
|
|
nor, aside from this, did they receive other treatment, but they
|
|
soon healed, for healthy flesh quickly replaces itself.
|
|
|
|
When the lad felt fit again the two continued their journey
|
|
toward the coast, and once more the boy's mind was filled with
|
|
pleasurable anticipation.
|
|
|
|
And at last the much dreamed of moment came. They were
|
|
passing through a tangled forest when the boy's sharp eyes
|
|
discovered from the lower branches through which he was
|
|
traveling an old but well-marked spoor--a spoor that set his
|
|
heart to leaping--the spoor of man, of white men, for among
|
|
the prints of naked feet were the well defined outlines of
|
|
European made boots. The trail, which marked the passage of
|
|
a good-sized company, pointed north at right angles to the
|
|
course the boy and the ape were taking toward the coast.
|
|
|
|
Doubtless these white men knew the nearest coast settlement.
|
|
They might even be headed for it now. At any rate it would be
|
|
worth while overtaking them if even only for the pleasure of
|
|
meeting again creatures of his own kind. The lad was all excitement; palpitant with eagerness to be
|
|
off in pursuit. Akut demurred.
|
|
He wanted nothing of men. To him the lad was a fellow ape,
|
|
for he was the son of the king of apes. He tried to dissuade
|
|
the boy, telling him that soon they should come upon a tribe of
|
|
their own folk where some day when he was older the boy should
|
|
be king as his father had before him. But Jack was obdurate.
|
|
He insisted that he wanted to see white men again. He wanted to
|
|
send a message to his parents. Akut listened and as he listened
|
|
the intuition of the beast suggested the truth to him--the boy
|
|
was planning to return to his own kind.
|
|
|
|
The thought filled the old ape with sorrow. He loved the boy
|
|
as he had loved the father, with the loyalty and faithfulness of
|
|
a hound for its master. In his ape brain and his ape heart he had
|
|
nursed the hope that he and the lad would never be separated.
|
|
He saw all his fondly cherished plans fading away, and yet he
|
|
remained loyal to the lad and to his wishes. Though disconsolate
|
|
he gave in to the boy's determination to pursue the safari of
|
|
the white men, accompanying him upon what he believed would be
|
|
their last journey together.
|
|
|
|
The spoor was but a couple of days old when the two discovered it,
|
|
which meant that the slow-moving caravan was but a few hours
|
|
distant from them whose trained and agile muscles could carry
|
|
their bodies swiftly through the branches above the tangled
|
|
undergrowth which had impeded the progress of the laden carriers
|
|
of the white men.
|
|
|
|
The boy was in the lead, excitement and anticipation carrying
|
|
him ahead of his companion to whom the attainment of their
|
|
goal meant only sorrow. And it was the boy who first saw the
|
|
rear guard of the caravan and the white men he had been so
|
|
anxious to overtake.
|
|
|
|
Stumbling along the tangled trail of those ahead a dozen
|
|
heavily laden blacks who, from fatigue or sickness, had dropped
|
|
behind were being prodded by the black soldiers of the rear
|
|
guard, kicked when they fell, and then roughly jerked to their
|
|
feet and hustled onward. On either side walked a giant white
|
|
man, heavy blonde beards almost obliterating their countenances.
|
|
The boy's lips formed a glad cry of salutation as his eyes first
|
|
discovered the whites--a cry that was never uttered, for almost
|
|
immediately he witnessed that which turned his happiness to anger
|
|
as he saw that both the white men were wielding heavy whips
|
|
brutally upon the naked backs of the poor devils staggering along
|
|
beneath loads that would have overtaxed the strength and endurance
|
|
of strong men at the beginning of a new day.
|
|
|
|
Every now and then the rear guard and the white men cast
|
|
apprehensive glances rearward as though momentarily expecting the
|
|
materialization of some long expected danger from that quarter.
|
|
The boy had paused after his first sight of the caravan, and now
|
|
was following slowly in the wake of the sordid, brutal spectacle.
|
|
Presently Akut came up with him. To the beast there was less of
|
|
horror in the sight than to the lad, yet even the great ape growled
|
|
beneath his breath at useless torture being inflicted upon the
|
|
helpless slaves. He looked at the boy. Now that he had caught
|
|
up with the creatures of his own kind, why was it that he did not
|
|
rush forward and greet them? He put the question to his companion.
|
|
|
|
"They are fiends," muttered the boy. "I would not travel
|
|
with such as they, for if I did I should set upon them and kill
|
|
them the first time they beat their people as they are beating
|
|
them now; but," he added, after a moment's thought, "I can
|
|
ask them the whereabouts of the nearest port, and then, Akut,
|
|
we can leave them."
|
|
|
|
The ape made no reply, and the boy swung to the ground and
|
|
started at a brisk walk toward the safari. He was a hundred
|
|
yards away, perhaps, when one of the whites caught sight of him.
|
|
The man gave a shout of alarm, instantly levelling his rifle upon
|
|
the boy and firing. The bullet struck just in front of its mark,
|
|
scattering turf and fallen leaves against the lad's legs. A second
|
|
later the other white and the black soldiers of the rear guard were
|
|
firing hysterically at the boy.
|
|
|
|
Jack leaped behind a tree, unhit. Days of panic ridden flight
|
|
through the jungle had filled Carl Jenssen and Sven Malbihn with
|
|
jangling nerves and their native boys with unreasoning terror.
|
|
Every new note from behind sounded to their frightened ears the
|
|
coming of The Sheik and his bloodthirsty entourage. They were
|
|
in a blue funk, and the sight of the naked white warrior stepping
|
|
silently out of the jungle through which they had just passed had
|
|
been sufficient shock to let loose in action all the pent nerve energy
|
|
of Malbihn, who had been the first to see the strange apparition.
|
|
And Malbihn's shout and shot had set the others going.
|
|
|
|
When their nervous energy had spent itself and they came to
|
|
take stock of what they had been fighting it developed that
|
|
Malbihn alone had seen anything clearly. Several of the blacks
|
|
averred that they too had obtained a good view of the creature
|
|
but their descriptions of it varied so greatly that Jenssen, who
|
|
had seen nothing himself, was inclined to be a trifle skeptical.
|
|
One of the blacks insisted that the thing had been eleven feet
|
|
tall, with a man's body and the head of an elephant. Another had
|
|
seen THREE immense Arabs with huge, black beards; but when,
|
|
after conquering their nervousness, the rear guard advanced upon
|
|
the enemy's position to investigate they found nothing, for Akut
|
|
and the boy had retreated out of range of the unfriendly guns.
|
|
|
|
Jack was disheartened and sad. He had not entirely recovered
|
|
from the depressing effect of the unfriendly reception he had
|
|
received at the hands of the blacks, and now he had found an
|
|
even more hostile one accorded him by men of his own color.
|
|
|
|
"The lesser beasts flee from me in terror," he murmured, half to
|
|
himself, "the greater beasts are ready to tear me to pieces
|
|
at sight. Black men would kill me with their spears or arrows.
|
|
And now white men, men of my own kind, have fired upon me
|
|
and driven me away. Are all the creatures of the world
|
|
my enemies? Has the son of Tarzan no friend other than Akut?"
|
|
|
|
The old ape drew closer to the boy.
|
|
|
|
"There are the great apes," he said. "They only will be the
|
|
friends of Akut's friend. Only the great apes will welcome the
|
|
son of Tarzan. You have seen that men want nothing of you. Let us
|
|
go now and continue our search for the great apes--our people."
|
|
|
|
The language of the great apes is a combination of monosyllabic
|
|
gutturals, amplified by gestures and signs. It may not be
|
|
literally translated into human speech; but as near as may be
|
|
this is what Akut said to the boy.
|
|
|
|
The two proceeded in silence for some time after Akut had spoken.
|
|
The boy was immersed in deep thought--bitter thoughts in which
|
|
hatred and revenge predominated. Finally he spoke: "Very well,
|
|
Akut," he said, "we will find our friends, the great apes."
|
|
|
|
The anthropoid was overjoyed; but he gave no outward demonstration
|
|
of his pleasure. A low grunt was his only response, and a moment
|
|
later he had leaped nimbly upon a small and unwary rodent that had
|
|
been surprised at a fatal distance from its burrow. Tearing the
|
|
unhappy creature in two Akut handed the lion's share to the lad.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 8
|
|
|
|
A year had passed since the two Swedes had been driven in terror
|
|
from the savage country where The Sheik held sway. Little Meriem
|
|
still played with Geeka, lavishing all her childish love upon the
|
|
now almost hopeless ruin of what had never, even in its palmiest
|
|
days, possessed even a slight degree of loveliness. But to Meriem,
|
|
Geeka was all that was sweet and adorable. She carried to the deaf
|
|
ears of the battered ivory head all her sorrows all her hopes and
|
|
all her ambitions, for even in the face of hopelessness, in the
|
|
clutches of the dread authority from which there was no escape,
|
|
little Meriem yet cherished hopes and ambitions. It is true that
|
|
her ambitions were rather nebulous in form, consisting chiefly of
|
|
a desire to escape with Geeka to some remote and unknown spot where
|
|
there were no Sheiks, no Mabunus--where El Adrea could find no
|
|
entrance, and where she might play all day surrounded only by flowers
|
|
and birds and the harmless little monkeys playing in the tree tops.
|
|
|
|
The Sheik had been away for a long time, conducting a caravan
|
|
of ivory, skins, and rubber far into the north. The interim
|
|
had been one of great peace for Meriem. It is true that Mabunu
|
|
had still been with her, to pinch or beat her as the mood seized
|
|
the villainous old hag; but Mabunu was only one. When The
|
|
Sheik was there also there were two of them, and The Sheik was
|
|
stronger and more brutal even than Mabunu. Little Meriem often
|
|
wondered why the grim old man hated her so. It is true that he was
|
|
cruel and unjust to all with whom he came in contact, but to Meriem
|
|
he reserved his greatest cruelties, his most studied injustices.
|
|
|
|
Today Meriem was squatting at the foot of a large tree which grew
|
|
inside the palisade close to the edge of the village. She was
|
|
fashioning a tent of leaves for Geeka. Before the tent were
|
|
some pieces of wood and small leaves and a few stones. These were
|
|
the household utensils. Geeka was cooking dinner. As the
|
|
little girl played she prattled continuously to her companion,
|
|
propped in a sitting position with a couple of twigs. She was
|
|
totally absorbed in the domestic duties of Geeka--so much so
|
|
that she did not note the gentle swaying of the branches of the
|
|
tree above her as they bent to the body of the creature that had
|
|
entered them stealthily from the jungle.
|
|
|
|
In happy ignorance the little girl played on, while from above
|
|
two steady eyes looked down upon her--unblinking, unwavering.
|
|
There was none other than the little girl in this part of the
|
|
village, which had been almost deserted since The Sheik had
|
|
left long months before upon his journey toward the north.
|
|
|
|
And out in the jungle, an hour's march from the village, The
|
|
Sheik was leading his returning caravan homeward.
|
|
|
|
|
|
A year had passed since the white men had fired upon the lad and
|
|
driven him back into the jungle to take up his search for the only
|
|
remaining creatures to whom he might look for companionship--the
|
|
great apes. For months the two had wandered eastward, deeper and
|
|
deeper into the jungle. The year had done much for the boy--turning
|
|
his already mighty muscles to thews of steel, developing his
|
|
woodcraft to a point where it verged upon the uncanny, perfecting
|
|
his arboreal instincts, and training him in the use of both natural
|
|
and artificial weapons.
|
|
|
|
He had become at last a creature of marvelous physical powers
|
|
and mental cunning. He was still but a boy, yet so great was
|
|
his strength that the powerful anthropoid with which he often
|
|
engaged in mimic battle was no match for him. Akut had taught
|
|
him to fight as the bull ape fights, nor ever was there a teacher
|
|
better fitted to instruct in the savage warfare of primordial man,
|
|
or a pupil better equipped to profit by the lessons of a master.
|
|
|
|
As the two searched for a band of the almost extinct species
|
|
of ape to which Akut belonged they lived upon the best the
|
|
jungle afforded. Antelope and zebra fell to the boy's spear,
|
|
or were dragged down by the two powerful beasts of prey who
|
|
leaped upon them from some overhanging limb or from the ambush
|
|
of the undergrowth beside the trail to the water hole or the ford.
|
|
|
|
The pelt of a leopard covered the nakedness of the youth; but the
|
|
wearing of it had not been dictated by any prompting of modesty.
|
|
With the rifle shots of the white men showering about him he had
|
|
reverted to the savagery of the beast that is inherent in each of
|
|
us, but that flamed more strongly in this boy whose father had been
|
|
raised a beast of prey. He wore his leopard skin at first in
|
|
response to a desire to parade a trophy of his prowess, for he
|
|
had slain the leopard with his knife in a hand-to-hand combat.
|
|
He saw that the skin was beautiful, which appealed to his barbaric
|
|
sense of ornamentation, and when it stiffened and later commenced
|
|
to decompose because of his having no knowledge of how to cure or
|
|
tan it was with sorrow and regret that he discarded it. Later, when
|
|
he chanced upon a lone, black warrior wearing the counterpart of it,
|
|
soft and clinging and beautiful from proper curing, it required but
|
|
an instant to leap from above upon the shoulders of the unsuspecting
|
|
black, sink a keen blade into his heart and possess the rightly
|
|
preserved hide.
|
|
|
|
There were no after-qualms of conscience. In the jungle might
|
|
is right, nor does it take long to inculcate this axiom in the mind
|
|
of a jungle dweller, regardless of what his past training may
|
|
have been. That the black would have killed him had he had the
|
|
chance the boy knew full well. Neither he nor the black were
|
|
any more sacred than the lion, or the buffalo, the zebra or the
|
|
deer, or any other of the countless creatures who roamed, or
|
|
slunk, or flew, or wriggled through the dark mazes of the forest.
|
|
Each had but a single life, which was sought by many. The greater
|
|
number of enemies slain the better chance to prolong that life.
|
|
So the boy smiled and donned the finery of the vanquished, and
|
|
went his way with Akut, searching, always searching for the
|
|
elusive anthropoids who were to welcome them with open arms.
|
|
And at last they found them. Deep in the jungle, buried far from
|
|
sight of man, they came upon such another little natural arena
|
|
as had witnessed the wild ceremony of the Dum-Dum in which the
|
|
boy's father had taken part long years before.
|
|
|
|
First, at a great distance, they heard the beating of the drum
|
|
of the great apes. They were sleeping in the safety of a huge
|
|
tree when the booming sound smote upon their ears. Both awoke
|
|
at once. Akut was the first to interpret the strange cadence.
|
|
|
|
"The great apes!" he growled. "They dance the Dum-Dum.
|
|
Come, Korak, son of Tarzan, let us go to our people."
|
|
|
|
Months before Akut had given the boy a name of his own choosing,
|
|
since he could not master the man given name of Jack. Korak is
|
|
as near as it may be interpreted into human speech. In the
|
|
language of the apes it means Killer. Now the Killer rose
|
|
upon the branch of the great tree where he had been sleeping
|
|
with his back braced against the stem. He stretched his lithe
|
|
young muscles, the moonlight filtering through the foliage from
|
|
above dappling his brown skin with little patches of light.
|
|
|
|
The ape, too, stood up, half squatting after the manner of
|
|
his kind. Low growls rumbled from the bottom of his deep chest--
|
|
growls of excited anticipation. The boy growled in harmony
|
|
with the ape. Then the anthropoid slid softly to the ground.
|
|
Close by, in the direction of the booming drum, lay a clearing
|
|
which they must cross. The moon flooded it with silvery light.
|
|
Half-erect, the great ape shuffled into the full glare of the moon.
|
|
At his side, swinging gracefully along in marked contrast to the
|
|
awkwardness of his companion, strode the boy, the dark, shaggy
|
|
coat of the one brushing against the smooth, clear hide of
|
|
the other. The lad was humming now, a music hall air that had
|
|
found its way to the forms of the great English public school
|
|
that was to see him no more. He was happy and expectant.
|
|
The moment he had looked forward to for so long was about to
|
|
be realized. He was coming into his own. He was coming home.
|
|
As the months had dragged or flown along, retarded or spurred
|
|
on as privation or adventure predominated, thoughts of his own
|
|
home, while oft recurring, had become less vivid. The old life
|
|
had grown to seem more like a dream than a reality, and the
|
|
balking of his determination to reach the coast and return to
|
|
London had finally thrown the hope of realization so remotely
|
|
into the future that it too now seemed little more than a
|
|
pleasant but hopeless dream.
|
|
|
|
Now all thoughts of London and civilization were crowded so far
|
|
into the background of his brain that they might as well have
|
|
been non-existent. Except for form and mental development he
|
|
was as much an ape as the great, fierce creature at his side.
|
|
|
|
In the exuberance of his joy he slapped his companion roughly on
|
|
the side of the head. Half in anger, half in play the anthropoid
|
|
turned upon him, his fangs bared and glistening. Long, hairy
|
|
arms reached out to seize him, and, as they had done a thousand
|
|
times before, the two clinched in mimic battle, rolling upon the
|
|
sward, striking, growling and biting, though never closing their
|
|
teeth in more than a rough pinch. It was wondrous practice for
|
|
them both. The boy brought into play wrestling tricks that he
|
|
had learned at school, and many of these Akut learned to use
|
|
and to foil. And from the ape the boy learned the methods that
|
|
had been handed down to Akut from some common ancestor of
|
|
them both, who had roamed the teeming earth when ferns were
|
|
trees and crocodiles were birds.
|
|
|
|
But there was one art the boy possessed which Akut could not
|
|
master, though he did achieve fair proficiency in it for an
|
|
ape--boxing. To have his bull-like charges stopped and crumpled
|
|
with a suddenly planted fist upon the end of his snout, or a
|
|
painful jolt in the short ribs, always surprised Akut. It angered
|
|
him too, and at such times his mighty jaws came nearer to closing
|
|
in the soft flesh of his friend than at any other, for he was still
|
|
an ape, with an ape's short temper and brutal instincts; but the
|
|
difficulty was in catching his tormentor while his rage lasted, for
|
|
when he lost his head and rushed madly into close quarters with
|
|
the boy he discovered that the stinging hail of blows released
|
|
upon him always found their mark and effectually stopped
|
|
him--effectually and painfully. Then he would withdraw growling
|
|
viciously, backing away with grinning jaws distended, to sulk for
|
|
an hour or so.
|
|
|
|
Tonight they did not box. Just for a moment or two they wrestled
|
|
playfully, until the scent of Sheeta, the panther, brought them
|
|
to their feet, alert and wary. The great cat was passing through
|
|
the jungle in front of them. For a moment it paused, listening.
|
|
The boy and the ape growled menacingly in chorus and the carnivore
|
|
moved on.
|
|
|
|
Then the two took up their journey toward the sound of the Dum-Dum.
|
|
Louder and louder came the beating of the drum. Now, at last,
|
|
they could hear the growling of the dancing apes, and strong to
|
|
their nostrils came the scent of their kind. The lad trembled
|
|
with excitement. The hair down Akut's spine stiffened--the
|
|
symptoms of happiness and anger are often similar.
|
|
|
|
Silently they crept through the jungle as they neared the meeting
|
|
place of the apes. Now they were in the trees, worming their way
|
|
forward, alert for sentinels. Presently through a break in the
|
|
foliage the scene burst upon the eager eyes of the boy. To Akut
|
|
it was a familiar one; but to Korak it was all new. His nerves
|
|
tingled at the savage sight. The great bulls were dancing in the
|
|
moonlight, leaping in an irregular circle about the flat-topped
|
|
earthen drum about which three old females sat beating its
|
|
resounding top with sticks worn smooth by long years of use.
|
|
|
|
Akut, knowing the temper and customs of his kind, was too wise
|
|
to make their presence known until the frenzy of the dance
|
|
had passed. After the drum was quiet and the bellies of the tribe
|
|
well-filled he would hail them. Then would come a parley, after
|
|
which he and Korak would be accepted into membership by the community.
|
|
There might be those who would object; but such could be overcome by
|
|
brute force, of which he and the lad had an ample surplus. For weeks,
|
|
possibly months, their presence might cause ever decreasing suspicion
|
|
among others of the tribe; but eventually they would become as born
|
|
brothers to these strange apes.
|
|
|
|
He hoped that they had been among those who had known Tarzan,
|
|
for that would help in the introduction of the lad and in the
|
|
consummation of Akut's dearest wish, that Korak should become
|
|
king of the apes. It was with difficulty, however, that Akut
|
|
kept the boy from rushing into the midst of the dancing
|
|
anthropoids--an act that would have meant the instant extermination
|
|
of them both, since the hysterical frenzy into which the great
|
|
apes work themselves during the performance of their strange
|
|
rites is of such a nature that even the most ferocious of the
|
|
carnivora give them a wide berth at such times.
|
|
|
|
As the moon declined slowly toward the lofty, foliaged horizon
|
|
of the amphitheater the booming of the drum decreased and
|
|
lessened were the exertions of the dancers, until, at last, the
|
|
final note was struck and the huge beasts turned to fall upon the
|
|
feast they had dragged hither for the orgy.
|
|
|
|
From what he had seen and heard Akut was able to explain
|
|
to Korak that the rites proclaimed the choosing of a new king,
|
|
and he pointed out to the boy the massive figure of the shaggy
|
|
monarch, come into his kingship, no doubt, as many human
|
|
rulers have come into theirs--by the murder of his predecessor.
|
|
|
|
When the apes had filled their bellies and many of them had
|
|
sought the bases of the trees to curl up in sleep Akut plucked
|
|
Korak by the arm.
|
|
|
|
"Come," he whispered. "Come slowly. Follow me. Do as Akut does."
|
|
|
|
Then he advanced slowly through the trees until he stood upon
|
|
a bough overhanging one side of the amphitheater. Here he
|
|
stood in silence for a moment. Then he uttered a low growl.
|
|
Instantly a score of apes leaped to their feet. There savage
|
|
little eyes sped quickly around the periphery of the clearing.
|
|
The king ape was the first to see the two figures upon the branch.
|
|
He gave voice to an ominous growl. Then he took a few lumbering
|
|
steps in the direction of the intruders. His hair was bristling.
|
|
His legs were stiff, imparting a halting, jerky motion to his gait.
|
|
Behind him pressed a number of bulls.
|
|
|
|
He stopped just a little before he came beneath the two--just
|
|
far enough to be beyond their spring. Wary king! Here he stood
|
|
rocking himself to and fro upon his short legs, baring his fangs
|
|
in hideous grinnings, rumbling out an ever increasing volume of
|
|
growls, which were slowly but steadily increasing to the proportions
|
|
of roars. Akut knew that he was planning an attack upon them.
|
|
The old ape did not wish to fight. He had come with the boy to
|
|
cast his lot with the tribe.
|
|
|
|
"I am Akut," he said. "This is Korak. Korak is the son of
|
|
Tarzan who was king of the apes. I, too, was king of the apes
|
|
who dwelt in the midst of the great waters. We have come to
|
|
hunt with you, to fight with you. We are great hunters. We are
|
|
mighty fighters. Let us come in peace."
|
|
|
|
The king ceased his rocking. He eyed the pair from beneath
|
|
his beetling brows. His bloodshot eyes were savage and crafty.
|
|
His kingship was very new and he was jealous of it. He feared
|
|
the encroachments of two strange apes. The sleek, brown, hairless
|
|
body of the lad spelled "man," and man he feared and hated.
|
|
|
|
"Go away!" he growled. "Go away, or I will kill you."
|
|
|
|
The eager lad, standing behind the great Akut, had been pulsing
|
|
with anticipation and happiness. He wanted to leap down
|
|
among these hairy monsters and show them that he was their
|
|
friend, that he was one of them. He had expected that they would
|
|
receive him with open arms, and now the words of the king ape
|
|
filled him with indignation and sorrow. The blacks had set upon
|
|
him and driven him away. Then he had turned to the white
|
|
men--to those of his own kind--only to hear the ping of bullets
|
|
where he had expected words of cordial welcome. The great
|
|
apes had remained his final hope. To them he looked for the
|
|
companionship man had denied him. Suddenly rage overwhelmed him.
|
|
|
|
The king ape was almost directly beneath him. The others were
|
|
formed in a half circle several yards behind the king. They were
|
|
watching events interestedly. Before Akut could guess his
|
|
intention, or prevent, the boy leaped to the ground directly in
|
|
the path of the king, who had now succeeded in stimulating
|
|
himself to a frenzy of fury.
|
|
|
|
"I am Korak!" shouted the boy. "I am the Killer. I came
|
|
to live among you as a friend. You want to drive me away.
|
|
Very well, then, I shall go; but before I go I shall show
|
|
you that the son of Tarzan is your master, as his father was
|
|
before him--that he is not afraid of your king or you."
|
|
|
|
For an instant the king ape had stood motionless with surprise.
|
|
He had expected no such rash action upon the part of either of
|
|
the intruders. Akut was equally surprised. Now he shouted
|
|
excitedly for Korak to come back, for he knew that in the
|
|
sacred arena the other bulls might be expected to come to the
|
|
assistance of their king against an outsider, though there was
|
|
small likelihood that the king would need assistance. Once those
|
|
mighty jaws closed upon the boy's soft neck the end would come quickly.
|
|
To leap to his rescue would mean death for Akut, too; but the brave
|
|
old ape never hesitated. Bristling and growling, he dropped to
|
|
the sward just as the king ape charged.
|
|
|
|
The beast's hands clutched for their hold as the animal sprang
|
|
upon the lad. The fierce jaws were wide distended to bury the
|
|
yellow fangs deeply in the brown hide. Korak, too, leaped
|
|
forward to meet the attack; but leaped crouching, beneath the
|
|
outstretched arms. At the instant of contact the lad pivoted on
|
|
one foot, and with all the weight of his body and the strength of
|
|
his trained muscles drove a clenched fist into the bull's stomach.
|
|
With a gasping shriek the king ape collapsed, clutching futilely
|
|
for the agile, naked creature nimbly sidestepping from his grasp.
|
|
|
|
Howls of rage and dismay broke from the bull apes behind the
|
|
fallen king, as with murder in their savage little hearts they
|
|
rushed forward upon Korak and Akut; but the old ape was too
|
|
wise to court any such unequal encounter. To have counseled
|
|
the boy to retreat now would have been futile, and Akut knew it.
|
|
To delay even a second in argument would have sealed the
|
|
death warrants of them both. There was but a single hope and
|
|
Akut seized it. Grasping the lad around the waist he lifted him
|
|
bodily from the ground, and turning ran swiftly toward another
|
|
tree which swung low branches above the arena. Close upon
|
|
their heels swarmed the hideous mob; but Akut, old though he
|
|
was and burdened by the weight of the struggling Korak, was
|
|
still fleeter than his pursuers.
|
|
|
|
With a bound he grasped a low limb, and with the agility of
|
|
a little monkey swung himself and the boy to temporary safety.
|
|
Nor did he hesitate even here; but raced on through the jungle
|
|
night, bearing his burden to safety. For a time the bulls pursued;
|
|
but presently, as the swifter outdistanced the slower and found
|
|
themselves separated from their fellows they abandoned the chase,
|
|
standing roaring and screaming until the jungle reverberated to
|
|
their hideous noises. Then they turned and retraced their way
|
|
to the amphitheater.
|
|
|
|
When Akut felt assured that they were no longer pursued he
|
|
stopped and released Korak. The boy was furious.
|
|
|
|
"Why did you drag me away?" he cried. "I would have taught them!
|
|
I would have taught them all! Now they will think that I am
|
|
afraid of them."
|
|
|
|
"What they think cannot harm you," said Akut. "You are alive.
|
|
If I had not brought you away you would be dead now and so
|
|
would I. Do you not know that even Numa slinks from the path
|
|
of the great apes when there are many of them and they are mad?"
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 9
|
|
|
|
It was an unhappy Korak who wandered aimlessly through the
|
|
jungle the day following his inhospitable reception by the
|
|
great apes. His heart was heavy from disappointment.
|
|
Unsatisfied vengeance smoldered in his breast. He looked with
|
|
hatred upon the denizens of his jungle world, bearing his fighting
|
|
fangs and growling at those that came within radius of his senses.
|
|
The mark of his father's early life was strong upon him and enhanced
|
|
by months of association with beasts, from whom the imitative
|
|
faculty of youth had absorbed a countless number of little
|
|
mannerisms of the predatory creatures of the wild.
|
|
|
|
He bared his fangs now as naturally and upon as slight
|
|
provocation as Sheeta, the panther, bared his. He growled as
|
|
ferociously as Akut himself. When he came suddenly upon another
|
|
beast his quick crouch bore a strange resemblance to the arching
|
|
of a cat's back. Korak, the killer, was looking for trouble.
|
|
In his heart of hearts he hoped to meet the king ape who had
|
|
driven him from the amphitheater. To this end he insisted upon
|
|
remaining in the vicinity; but the exigencies of the perpetual
|
|
search for food led them several miles further away during day.
|
|
|
|
They were moving slowly down wind, and warily because the
|
|
advantage was with whatever beast might chance to be hunting
|
|
ahead of them, where their scent-spoor was being borne by the
|
|
light breeze. Suddenly the two halted simultaneously. Two heads
|
|
were cocked upon one side. Like creatures hewn from solid rock
|
|
they stood immovable, listening. Not a muscle quivered.
|
|
For several seconds they remained thus, then Korak advanced
|
|
cautiously a few yards and leaped nimbly into a tree. Akut followed
|
|
close upon his heels. Neither had made a noise that would have
|
|
been appreciable to human ears at a dozen paces.
|
|
|
|
Stopping often to listen they crept forward through the trees.
|
|
That both were greatly puzzled was apparent from the questioning
|
|
looks they cast at one another from time to time. Finally the
|
|
lad caught a glimpse of a palisade a hundred yards ahead, and
|
|
beyond it the tops of some goatskin tents and a number of
|
|
thatched huts. His lip upcurled in a savage snarl. Blacks!
|
|
How he hated them. He signed to Akut to remain where he was
|
|
while he advanced to reconnoiter.
|
|
|
|
Woe betide the unfortunate villager whom The Killer came
|
|
upon now. Slinking through the lower branches of the trees,
|
|
leaping lightly from one jungle giant to its neighbor where the
|
|
distance was not too great, or swinging from one hand hold to
|
|
another Korak came silently toward the village. He heard a voice
|
|
beyond the palisade and toward that he made his way. A great
|
|
tree overhung the enclosure at the very point from which the
|
|
voice came. Into this Korak crept. His spear was ready in
|
|
his hand. His ears told him of the proximity of a human being.
|
|
All that his eyes required was a single glance to show him his target.
|
|
Then, lightning like, the missile would fly to its goal. With raised
|
|
spear he crept among the branches of the tree glaring narrowly
|
|
downward in search of the owner of the voice which rose to him
|
|
from below.
|
|
|
|
At last he saw a human back. The spear hand flew to the limit
|
|
of the throwing position to gather the force that would send
|
|
the iron shod missile completely through the body of the
|
|
unconscious victim. And then The Killer paused. He leaned forward
|
|
a little to get a better view of the target. Was it to insure more
|
|
perfect aim, or had there been that in the graceful lines and the
|
|
childish curves of the little body below him that had held in
|
|
check the spirit of murder running riot in his veins?
|
|
|
|
He lowered his spear cautiously that it might make no noise
|
|
by scraping against foliage or branches. Quietly he crouched in
|
|
a comfortable position along a great limb and there he lay with
|
|
wide eyes looking down in wonder upon the creature he had crept
|
|
upon to kill--looking down upon a little girl, a little nut
|
|
brown maiden. The snarl had gone from his lip. His only
|
|
expression was one of interested attention--he was trying to
|
|
discover what the girl was doing. Suddenly a broad grin overspread
|
|
his face, for a turn of the girl's body had revealed Geeka of the
|
|
ivory head and the rat skin torso--Geeka of the splinter limbs and
|
|
the disreputable appearance. The little girl raised the marred
|
|
face to hers and rocking herself backward and forward crooned
|
|
a plaintive Arab lullaby to the doll. A softer light entered the
|
|
eyes of The Killer. For a long hour that passed very quickly to
|
|
him Korak lay with gaze riveted upon the playing child. Not once
|
|
had he had a view of the girl's full face. For the most part he
|
|
saw only a mass of wavy, black hair, one brown little shoulder
|
|
exposed upon the side from where her single robe was caught
|
|
beneath her arm, and a shapely knee protruding from beneath
|
|
her garment as she sat cross legged upon the ground. A tilt of
|
|
the head as she emphasized some maternal admonition to the
|
|
passive Geeka revealed occasionally a rounded cheek or a piquant
|
|
little chin. Now she was shaking a slim finger at Geeka,
|
|
reprovingly, and again she crushed to her heart this only
|
|
object upon which she might lavish the untold wealth of her
|
|
childish affections.
|
|
|
|
Korak, momentarily forgetful of his bloody mission, permitted
|
|
the fingers of his spear hand to relax a little their grasp upon
|
|
the shaft of his formidable weapon. It slipped, almost falling;
|
|
but the occurrence recalled The Killer to himself. It reminded him
|
|
of his purpose in slinking stealthily upon the owner of the voice
|
|
that had attracted his vengeful attention. He glanced at the spear,
|
|
with its well-worn grip and cruel, barbed head. Then he let his
|
|
eyes wander again to the dainty form below him. In imagination
|
|
he saw the heavy weapon shooting downward. He saw it pierce the
|
|
tender flesh, driving its way deep into the yielding body. He saw
|
|
the ridiculous doll drop from its owner's arms to lie sprawled
|
|
and pathetic beside the quivering body of the little girl.
|
|
The Killer shuddered, scowling at the inanimate iron and
|
|
wood of the spear as though they constituted a sentient being
|
|
endowed with a malignant mind.
|
|
|
|
Korak wondered what the girl would do were he to drop suddenly
|
|
from the tree to her side. Most likely she would scream
|
|
and run away. Then would come the men of the village with
|
|
spears and guns and set upon him. They would either kill him
|
|
or drive him away. A lump rose in the boy's throat. He craved
|
|
the companionship of his own kind, though he scarce realized
|
|
how greatly. He would have liked to slip down beside the little
|
|
girl and talk with her, though he knew from the words he had
|
|
overheard that she spoke a language with which he was unfamiliar.
|
|
They could have talked by signs a little. That would have
|
|
been better than nothing. Too, he would have been glad to see
|
|
her face. What he had glimpsed assured him that she was pretty;
|
|
but her strongest appeal to him lay in the affectionate nature
|
|
revealed by her gentle mothering of the grotesque doll.
|
|
|
|
At last he hit upon a plan. He would attract her attention,
|
|
and reassure her by a smiling greeting from a greater distance.
|
|
Silently he wormed his way back into the tree. It was his
|
|
intention to hail her from beyond the palisade, giving her
|
|
the feeling of security which he imagined the stout barricade
|
|
would afford.
|
|
|
|
He had scarcely left his position in the tree when his attention
|
|
was attracted by a considerable noise upon the opposite side of
|
|
the village. By moving a little he could see the gate at the far
|
|
end of the main street. A number of men, women and children
|
|
were running toward it. It swung open, revealing the head of a
|
|
caravan upon the opposite side. In trooped the motley organization--
|
|
black slaves and dark hued Arabs of the northern deserts; cursing
|
|
camel drivers urging on their vicious charges; overburdened
|
|
donkeys, waving sadly pendulous ears while they endured with
|
|
stoic patience the brutalities of their masters; goats, sheep
|
|
and horses. Into the village they all trooped behind a tall,
|
|
sour, old man, who rode without greetings to those who shrunk
|
|
from his path directly to a large goatskin tent in the center of
|
|
the village. Here he spoke to a wrinkled hag.
|
|
|
|
Korak, from his vantage spot, could see it all. He saw the old
|
|
man asking questions of the black woman, and then he saw the
|
|
latter point toward a secluded corner of the village which was
|
|
hidden from the main street by the tents of the Arabs and the
|
|
huts of the natives in the direction of the tree beneath which the
|
|
little girl played. This was doubtless her father, thought Korak.
|
|
He had been away and his first thought upon returning was of
|
|
his little daughter. How glad she would be to see him! How she
|
|
would run and throw herself into his arms, to be crushed to his
|
|
breast and covered with his kisses. Korak sighed. He thought of
|
|
his own father and mother far away in london.
|
|
|
|
He returned to his place in the tree above the girl. If he
|
|
couldn't have happiness of this sort himself he wanted to enjoy
|
|
the happiness of others. Possibly if he made himself known to
|
|
the old man he might be permitted to come to the village occasionally
|
|
as a friend. It would be worth trying. He would wait until the
|
|
old Arab had greeted his daughter, then he would make his
|
|
presence known with signs of peace.
|
|
|
|
The Arab was striding softly toward the girl. In a moment he
|
|
would be beside her, and then how surprised and delighted she
|
|
would be! Korak's eyes sparkled in anticipation--and now the
|
|
old man stood behind the little girl. His stern old face was
|
|
still unrelaxed. The child was yet unconscious of his presence.
|
|
She prattled on to the unresponsive Geeka. Then the old man coughed.
|
|
With a start the child glanced quickly up over her shoulder.
|
|
Korak could see her full face now. It was very beautiful in its
|
|
sweet and innocent childishness--all soft and lovely curves.
|
|
He could see her great, dark eyes. He looked for the happy love
|
|
light that would follow recognition; but it did not come.
|
|
Instead, terror, stark, paralyzing terror, was mirrored in
|
|
her eyes, in the expression of her mouth, in the tense, cowering
|
|
attitude of her body. A grim smile curved the thin, cruel lip of
|
|
the Arab. The child essayed to crawl away; but before she could
|
|
get out of his reach the old man kicked her brutally, sending her
|
|
sprawling upon the grass. Then he followed her up to seize and
|
|
strike her as was his custom.
|
|
|
|
Above them, in the tree, a beast crouched where a moment
|
|
before had been a boy--a beast with dilating nostrils and bared
|
|
fangs--a beast that trembled with rage.
|
|
|
|
The Sheik was stooping to reach for the girl when The Killer
|
|
dropped to the ground at his side. His spear was still in his left
|
|
hand but he had forgotten it. Instead his right fist was clenched
|
|
and as The Sheik took a backward step, astonished by the sudden materialization of this strange
|
|
apparition apparently out of
|
|
clear air, the heavy fist landed full upon his mouth backed by
|
|
the weight of the young giant and the terrific power of his more
|
|
than human muscles.
|
|
|
|
Bleeding and senseless The Sheik sank to earth. Korak turned
|
|
toward the child. She had regained her feet and stood wide eyed
|
|
and frightened, looking first into his face and then, horror struck,
|
|
at the recumbent figure of The Sheik. In an involuntary gesture
|
|
of protection The Killer threw an arm about the girl's shoulders
|
|
and stood waiting for the Arab to regain consciousness. For a
|
|
moment they remained thus, when the girl spoke.
|
|
|
|
"When he regains his senses he will kill me," she said, in Arabic.
|
|
|
|
Korak could not understand her. He shook his head, speaking
|
|
to her first in English and then in the language of the great apes;
|
|
but neither of these was intelligible to her. She leaned forward
|
|
and touched the hilt of the long knife that the Arab wore. Then she
|
|
raised her clasped hand above her head and drove an imaginary blade
|
|
into her breast above her heart. Korak understood. The old man
|
|
would kill her. The girl came to his side again and stood
|
|
there trembling. She did not fear him. Why should she?
|
|
He had saved her from a terrible beating at the hands of
|
|
The Sheik. Never, in her memory, had another so befriended her.
|
|
She looked up into his face. It was a boyish, handsome face,
|
|
nut-brown like her own. She admired the spotted leopard skin
|
|
that circled his lithe body from one shoulder to his knees.
|
|
The metal anklets and armlets adorning him aroused her envy.
|
|
Always had she coveted something of the kind; but never had The
|
|
Sheik permitted her more than the single cotton garment that
|
|
barely sufficed to cover her nakedness. No furs or silks or
|
|
jewelry had there ever been for little Meriem.
|
|
|
|
And Korak looked at the girl. He had always held girls in a
|
|
species of contempt. Boys who associated with them were, in
|
|
his estimation, mollycoddles. He wondered what he should do.
|
|
Could he leave her here to be abused, possibly murdered, by
|
|
the villainous old Arab? No! But, on the other hand, could he
|
|
take her into the jungle with him? What could he accomplish
|
|
burdened by a weak and frightened girl? She would scream at
|
|
her own shadow when the moon came out upon the jungle night
|
|
and the great beasts roamed, moaning and roaring, through
|
|
the darkness.
|
|
|
|
He stood for several minutes buried in thought. The girl
|
|
watched his face, wondering what was passing in his mind.
|
|
She, too, was thinking of the future. She feared to remain
|
|
and suffer the vengeance of The Sheik. There was no one in
|
|
all the world to whom she might turn, other than this half-naked
|
|
stranger who had dropped miraculously from the clouds to save
|
|
her from one of The Sheik's accustomed beatings. Would her new
|
|
friend leave her now? Wistfully she gazed at his intent face.
|
|
She moved a little closer to him, laying a slim, brown hand upon
|
|
his arm. The contact awakened the lad from his absorption.
|
|
He looked down at her, and then his arm went about her shoulder
|
|
once more, for he saw tears upon her lashes.
|
|
|
|
"Come," he said. "The jungle is kinder than man. You shall
|
|
live in the jungle and Korak and Akut will protect you."
|
|
|
|
She did not understand his words, but the pressure of his arm
|
|
drawing her away from the prostrate Arab and the tents was
|
|
quite intelligible. One little arm crept about his waist and
|
|
together they walked toward the palisade. Beneath the great tree
|
|
that had harbored Korak while he watched the girl at play he
|
|
lifted her in his arms and throwing her lightly across his
|
|
shoulder leaped nimbly into the lower branches. Her arms were
|
|
about his neck and from one little hand Geeka dangled down his
|
|
straight youngback.
|
|
|
|
And so Meriem entered the jungle with Korak, trusting, in
|
|
her childish innocence, the stranger who had befriended her,
|
|
and perhaps influenced in her belief in him by that strange
|
|
intuitive power possessed by woman. She had no conception of
|
|
what the future might hold. She did not know, nor could she
|
|
have guessed the manner of life led by her protector. Possibly she
|
|
pictured a distant village similar to that of The Sheik in which
|
|
lived other white men like the stranger. That she was to be
|
|
taken into the savage, primeval life of a jungle beast could
|
|
not have occurred to her. Had it, her little heart would have
|
|
palpitated with fear. Often had she wished to run away from the
|
|
cruelties of The Sheik and Mabunu; but the dangers of the jungle
|
|
always had deterred her.
|
|
|
|
The two had gone but a short distance from the village when
|
|
the girl spied the huge proportions of the great Akut. With a
|
|
half-stifled scream she clung more closely to Korak, and pointed
|
|
fearfully toward the ape.
|
|
|
|
Akut, thinking that The Killer was returning with a prisoner,
|
|
came growling toward them--a little girl aroused no more sympathy
|
|
in the beast's heart than would a full-grown bull ape. She was
|
|
a stranger and therefore to be killed. He bared his yellow
|
|
fangs as he approached, and to his surprise The Killer bared his
|
|
likewise, but he bared them at Akut, and snarled menacingly.
|
|
|
|
"Ah," thought Akut, "The Killer has taken a mate," and so,
|
|
obedient to the tribal laws of his kind, he left them alone,
|
|
becoming suddenly absorbed in a fuzzy caterpillar of peculiarly
|
|
succulent appearance. The larva disposed of, he glanced from
|
|
the corner of an eye at Korak. The youth had deposited his
|
|
burden upon a large limb, where she clung desperately to keep
|
|
from falling.
|
|
|
|
"She will accompany us," said Korak to Akut, jerking a thumb
|
|
in the direction of the girl. "Do not harm her. We will
|
|
protect her."
|
|
|
|
Akut shrugged. To be burdened by the young of man was in no
|
|
way to his liking. He could see from her evident fright at her
|
|
position on the branch, and from the terrified glances she cast
|
|
in his direction that she was hopelessly unfit. By all the ethics
|
|
of Akut's training and inheritance the unfit should be eliminated;
|
|
but if The Killer wished this there was nothing to be done about
|
|
it but to tolerate her. Akut certainly didn't want her--of that
|
|
he was quite positive. Her skin was too smooth and hairless.
|
|
Quite snake-like, in fact, and her face was most unattractive.
|
|
Not at all like that of a certain lovely she he had particularly
|
|
noticed among the apes in the amphitheater the previous night.
|
|
Ah, there was true feminine beauty for one!--a great, generous
|
|
mouth; lovely, yellow fangs, and the cutest, softest side whiskers!
|
|
Akut sighed. Then he rose, expanded his great chest and
|
|
strutted back and forth along a substantial branch, for even a
|
|
puny thing like this she of Korak's might admire his fine coat
|
|
and his graceful carriage.
|
|
|
|
But poor little Meriem only shrank closer to Korak and almost
|
|
wished that she were back in the village of The Sheik where
|
|
the terrors of existence were of human origin, and so more or
|
|
less familiar. The hideous ape frightened her. He was so large
|
|
and so ferocious in appearance. His actions she could only
|
|
interpret as a menace, for how could she guess that he was
|
|
parading to excite admiration? Nor could she know of the bond
|
|
of fellowship which existed between this great brute and the
|
|
godlike youth who had rescued her from the Sheik.
|
|
|
|
Meriem spent an evening and a night of unmitigated terror.
|
|
Korak and Akut led her along dizzy ways as they searched for food.
|
|
Once they hid her in the branches of a tree while they stalked
|
|
a near-by buck. Even her natural terror of being left alone in
|
|
the awful jungle was submerged in a greater horror as she saw the
|
|
man and the beast spring simultaneously upon their prey and drag
|
|
it down, as she saw the handsome face of her preserver contorted
|
|
in a bestial snarl; as she saw his strong, white teeth buried in
|
|
the soft flesh of the kill.
|
|
|
|
When he came back to her blood smeared his face and hands
|
|
and breast and she shrank from him as he offered her a huge
|
|
hunk of hot, raw meat. He was evidently much disturbed by her
|
|
refusal to eat, and when, a moment later, he scampered away
|
|
into the forest to return with fruit for her she was once more
|
|
forced to alter her estimation of him. This time she did not
|
|
shrink, but acknowledged his gift with a smile that, had she
|
|
known it, was more than ample payment to the affection starved boy.
|
|
|
|
The sleeping problem vexed Korak. He knew that the girl
|
|
could not balance herself in safety in a tree crotch while she
|
|
slept, nor would it be safe to permit her to sleep upon the ground
|
|
open to the attacks of prowling beasts of prey. There was but a
|
|
single solution that presented itself--he must hold her in his
|
|
arms all night. And that he did, with Akut braced upon one side
|
|
of her and he upon the other, so that she was warmed by the
|
|
bodies of them both.
|
|
|
|
She did not sleep much until the night was half spent; but at
|
|
last Nature overcame her terrors of the black abyss beneath and
|
|
the hairy body of the wild beast at her side, and she fell into a
|
|
deep slumber which outlasted the darkness. When she opened
|
|
her eyes the sun was well up. At first she could not believe in
|
|
the reality of her position. Her head had rolled from Korak's
|
|
shoulder so that her eyes were directed upon the hairy back of
|
|
the ape. At sight of it she shrank away. Then she realized
|
|
that someone was holding her, and turning her head she saw the
|
|
smiling eyes of the youth regarding her. When he smiled she
|
|
could not fear him, and now she shrank closer against him in
|
|
natural revulsion toward the rough coat of the brute upon her
|
|
other side.
|
|
|
|
Korak spoke to her in the language of the apes; but she shook
|
|
her head, and spoke to him in the language of the Arab, which
|
|
was as unintelligible to him as was ape speech to her. Akut sat
|
|
up and looked at them. He could understand what Korak said
|
|
but the girl made only foolish noises that were entirely
|
|
unintelligible and ridiculous. Akut could not understand what
|
|
Korak saw in her to attract him. He looked at her long and
|
|
steadily, appraising her carefully, then he scratched his head,
|
|
rose and shook himself.
|
|
|
|
His movement gave the girl a little start--she had forgotten
|
|
Akut for the moment. Again she shrank from him. The beast
|
|
saw that she feared him, and being a brute enjoyed the evidence
|
|
of the terror his brutishness inspired. Crouching, he extended his
|
|
huge hand stealthily toward her, as though to seize her. She shrank
|
|
still further away. Akut's eyes were busy drinking in the humor
|
|
of the situation--he did not see the narrowing eyes of the boy
|
|
upon him, nor the shortening neck as the broad shoulders rose
|
|
in a characteristic attitude of preparation for attack. As the
|
|
ape's fingers were about to close upon the girl's arm the youth rose
|
|
suddenly with a short, vicious growl. A clenched fist flew before
|
|
Meriem's eyes to land full upon the snout of the astonished Akut.
|
|
With an explosive bellow the anthropoid reeled backward and
|
|
tumbled from the tree.
|
|
|
|
Korak stood glaring down upon him when a sudden swish in the
|
|
bushes close by attracted his attention. The girl too was
|
|
looking down; but she saw nothing but the angry ape scrambling
|
|
to his feet. Then, like a bolt from a cross bow, a mass of spotted,
|
|
yellow fur shot into view straight for Akut's back. It was Sheeta,
|
|
the leopard.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 10
|
|
|
|
As the leopard leaped for the great ape Meriem gasped in surprise
|
|
and horror--not for the impending fate of the anthropoid, but at
|
|
the act of the youth who but for an instant before had angrily
|
|
struck his strange companion; for scarce had the carnivore burst
|
|
into view than with drawn knife the youth had leaped far out above
|
|
him, so that as Sheeta was almost in the act of sinking fangs
|
|
and talons in Akut's broad back The Killer landed full upon the
|
|
leopard's shoulders.
|
|
|
|
The cat halted in mid air, missed the ape by but a hair's
|
|
breadth, and with horrid snarlings rolled over upon its back,
|
|
clutching and clawing in an effort to reach and dislodge the
|
|
antagonist biting at its neck and knifing it in the side.
|
|
|
|
Akut, startled by the sudden rush from his rear, and following
|
|
hoary instinct, was in the tree beside the girl with an agility
|
|
little short of marvelous in so heavy a beast. But the moment
|
|
that he turned to see what was going on below him brought him as
|
|
quickly to the ground again. Personal differences were quickly
|
|
forgotten in the danger which menaced his human companion, nor
|
|
was he a whit less eager to jeopardize his own safety in the
|
|
service of his friend than Korak had been to succor him.
|
|
|
|
The result was that Sheeta presently found two ferocious creatures
|
|
tearing him to ribbons. Shrieking, snarling and growling, the
|
|
three rolled hither and thither among the underbrush, while
|
|
with staring eyes the sole spectator of the battle royal crouched
|
|
trembling in the tree above them hugging Geeka frantically to
|
|
her breast.
|
|
|
|
It was the boy's knife which eventually decided the battle, and
|
|
as the fierce feline shuddered convulsively and rolled over upon
|
|
its side the youth and the ape rose and faced one another across
|
|
the prostrate carcass. Korak jerked his head in the direction of
|
|
the little girl in the tree.
|
|
|
|
"Leave her alone," he said; "she is mine."
|
|
|
|
Akut grunted, blinked his blood-shot eyes, and turned toward
|
|
the body of Sheeta. Standing erect upon it he threw out his
|
|
great chest, raised his face toward the heavens and gave voice
|
|
to so horrid a scream that once again the little girl shuddered
|
|
and shrank. It was the victory cry of the bull ape that has made
|
|
a kill. The boy only looked on for a moment in silence; then he
|
|
leaped into the tree again to the girl's side. Akut presently
|
|
rejoined them. For a few minutes he busied himself licking his
|
|
wounds, then he wandered off to hunt his breakfast.
|
|
|
|
For many months the strange life of the three went on unmarked
|
|
by any unusual occurrences. At least without any occurrences
|
|
that seemed unusual to the youth or the ape; but to the little
|
|
girl it was a constant nightmare of horrors for days and weeks,
|
|
until she too became accustomed to gazing into the eyeless sockets
|
|
of death and to the feel of the icy wind of his shroud-like mantle.
|
|
Slowly she learned the rudiments of the only common medium of
|
|
thought exchange which her companions possessed--the language of
|
|
the great apes. More quickly she perfected herself in jungle craft,
|
|
so that the time soon came when she was an important factor in the
|
|
chase, watching while the others slept, or helping them to trace the
|
|
spoor of whatever prey they might be stalking. Akut accepted her on
|
|
a footing which bordered upon equality when it was necessary for them
|
|
to come into close contact; but for the most part he avoided her.
|
|
The youth always was kind to her, and if there were many occasions
|
|
upon which he felt the burden of her presence he hid it from her.
|
|
Finding that the night damp and chill caused her discomfort and even
|
|
suffering, Korak constructed a tight little shelter high among the
|
|
swaying branches of a giant tree. Here little Meriem slept in
|
|
comparative warmth and safety, while The Killer and the ape perched
|
|
upon near-by branches, the former always before the entrance to the
|
|
lofty domicile, where he best could guard its inmate from the dangers
|
|
of arboreal enemies. They were too high to feel much fear of Sheeta;
|
|
but there was always Histah, the snake, to strike terror to one's soul,
|
|
and the great baboons who lived near-by, and who, while never attacking
|
|
always bared their fangs and barked at any of the trio when they passed
|
|
near them.
|
|
|
|
After the construction of the shelter the activities of the three
|
|
became localized. They ranged less widely, for there was always
|
|
the necessity of returning to their own tree at nightfall. A river
|
|
flowed near by. Game and fruit were plentiful, as were fish also.
|
|
Existence had settled down to the daily humdrum of the wild--
|
|
the search for food and the sleeping upon full bellies. They looked
|
|
no further ahead than today. If the youth thought of his
|
|
past and of those who longed for him in the distant metropolis
|
|
it was in a detached and impersonal sort of way as though that
|
|
other life belonged to another creature than himself. He had
|
|
given up hope of returning to civilization, for since his various
|
|
rebuffs at the hands of those to whom he had looked for friendship
|
|
he had wandered so far inland as to realize that he was completely
|
|
lost in the mazes of the jungle.
|
|
|
|
Then, too, since the coming of Meriem he had found in her
|
|
that one thing which he had most missed before in his savage,
|
|
jungle life--human companionship. In his friendship for her
|
|
there was appreciable no trace of sex influence of which he
|
|
was cognizant. They were friends--companions--that was all.
|
|
Both might have been boys, except for the half tender and always
|
|
masterful manifestation of the protective instinct which was
|
|
apparent in Korak's attitude.
|
|
|
|
The little girl idolized him as she might have idolized an
|
|
indulgent brother had she had one. Love was a thing unknown to
|
|
either; but as the youth neared manhood it was inevitable that it
|
|
should come to him as it did to every other savage, jungle male.
|
|
|
|
As Meriem became proficient in their common language the
|
|
pleasures of their companionship grew correspondingly, for
|
|
now they could converse and aided by the mental powers of
|
|
their human heritage they amplified the restricted vocabulary
|
|
of the apes until talking was transformed from a task into an
|
|
enjoyable pastime. When Korak hunted, Meriem usually accompanied
|
|
him, for she had learned the fine art of silence, when silence
|
|
was desirable. She could pass through the branches of the great
|
|
trees now with all the agility and stealth of The Killer himself.
|
|
Great heights no longer appalled her. She swung from limb to
|
|
limb, or she raced through the mighty branches, surefooted,
|
|
lithe, and fearless. Korak was very proud of her, and even old
|
|
Akut grunted in approval where before he had growled in contempt.
|
|
|
|
A distant village of blacks had furnished her with a mantle of
|
|
fur and feathers, with copper ornaments, and weapons, for Korak
|
|
would not permit her to go unarmed, or unversed in the use of
|
|
the weapons he stole for her. A leather thong over one shoulder
|
|
supported the ever present Geeka who was still the recipient
|
|
of her most sacred confidences. A light spear and a long knife
|
|
were her weapons of offense or defense. Her body, rounding
|
|
into the fulness of an early maturity, followed the lines of a
|
|
Greek goddess; but there the similarity ceased, for her face
|
|
was beautiful.
|
|
|
|
As she grew more accustomed to the jungle and the ways of
|
|
its wild denizens fear left her. As time wore on she even hunted
|
|
alone when Korak and Akut were prowling at a great distance,
|
|
as they were sometimes forced to do when game was scarce in
|
|
their immediate vicinity. Upon these occasions she usually
|
|
confined her endeavors to the smaller animals though sometimes
|
|
she brought down a deer, and once even Horta, the boar--a great
|
|
tusker that even Sheeta might have thought twice before attacking.
|
|
|
|
In their stamping grounds in the jungle the three were
|
|
familiar figures. The little monkeys knew them well, often coming
|
|
close to chatter and frolic about them. When Akut was by, the small
|
|
folk kept their distance, but with Korak they were less shy and
|
|
when both the males were gone they would come close to Meriem,
|
|
tugging at her ornaments or playing with Geeka, who was a never
|
|
ending source of amusement to them. The girl played with them
|
|
and fed them, and when she was alone they helped her to pass
|
|
the long hours until Korak's return.
|
|
|
|
Nor were they worthless as friends. In the hunt they helped
|
|
her locate her quarry. Often they would come racing through
|
|
the trees to her side to announce the near presence of antelope
|
|
or giraffe, or with excited warnings of the proximity of Sheeta
|
|
or Numa. Luscious, sun-kissed fruits which hung far out upon
|
|
the frail bough of the jungle's waving crest were brought to her
|
|
by these tiny, nimble allies. Sometimes they played tricks upon
|
|
her; but she was always kind and gentle with them and in their
|
|
wild, half-human way they were kind to her and affectionate.
|
|
Their language being similar to that of the great apes Meriem
|
|
could converse with them though the poverty of their vocabulary
|
|
rendered these exchanges anything but feasts of reason. For familiar
|
|
objects they had names, as well as for those conditions which
|
|
induced pain or pleasure, joy, sorrow, or rage. These root
|
|
words were so similar to those in use among the great anthropoids
|
|
as to suggest that the language of the Manus was the mother tongue.
|
|
Dreams, aspirations, hopes, the past, the sordid exchange.
|
|
Dreams, aspirations, hopes, the past, the future held no place
|
|
in the conversation of Manu, the monkey. All was of the present--
|
|
particularly of filling his belly and catching lice.
|
|
|
|
Poor food was this to nourish the mental appetite of a girl
|
|
just upon the brink of womanhood. And so, finding Manu only
|
|
amusing as an occasional playfellow or pet, Meriem poured out
|
|
her sweetest soul thoughts into the deaf ears of Geeka's
|
|
ivory head. To Geeka she spoke in Arabic, knowing that Geeka,
|
|
being but a doll, could not understand the language of Korak and
|
|
Akut, and that the language of Korak and Akut being that of
|
|
male apes contained nothing of interest to an Arab doll.
|
|
|
|
Geeka had undergone a transformation since her little mother
|
|
had left the village of The Sheik. Her garmenture now reflected
|
|
in miniature that of Meriem. A tiny bit of leopard skin covered
|
|
her ratskin torso from shoulder to splinter knee. A band of
|
|
braided grasses about her brow held in place a few gaudy feathers
|
|
from the parakeet, while other bits of grass were fashioned into
|
|
imitations of arm and leg ornaments of metal. Geeka was a perfect
|
|
little savage; but at heart she was unchanged, being the same
|
|
omnivorous listener as of yore. An excellent trait in Geeka was
|
|
that she never interrupted in order to talk about herself. Today was
|
|
no exception. She had been listening attentively to Meriem for
|
|
an hour, propped against the bole of a tree while her lithe,
|
|
young mistress stretched catlike and luxurious along a swaying
|
|
branch before her.
|
|
|
|
"Little Geeka," said Meriem, "our Korak has been gone for
|
|
a long time today. We miss him, little Geeka, do we not? It is
|
|
dull and lonesome in the great jungle when our Korak is away.
|
|
What will he bring us this time, eh? Another shining band of
|
|
metal for Meriem's ankle? Or a soft, doeskin loin cloth from
|
|
the body of a black she? He tells me that it is harder to get the
|
|
possessions of the shes, for he will not kill them as he does the
|
|
males, and they fight savagely when he leaps upon them to wrest
|
|
their ornaments from them. Then come the males with spears
|
|
and arrows and Korak takes to the trees. Sometimes he takes
|
|
the she with him and high among the branches divests her of the
|
|
things he wishes to bring home to Meriem. He says that the
|
|
blacks fear him now, and at first sight of him the women and
|
|
children run shrieking to their huts; but he follows them within,
|
|
and it is not often that he returns without arrows for himself
|
|
and a present for Meriem. Korak is mighty among the jungle
|
|
people--our Korak, Geeka--no, MY Korak!"
|
|
|
|
Meriem's conversation was interrupted by the sudden plunge
|
|
of an excited little monkey that landed upon her shoulders in a
|
|
flying leap from a neighboring tree.
|
|
|
|
"Climb!" he cried. "Climb! The Mangani are coming."
|
|
|
|
Meriem glanced lazily over her shoulder at the excited disturber
|
|
of her peace.
|
|
|
|
"Climb, yourself, little Manu," she said. "The only Mangani
|
|
in our jungle are Korak and Akut. It is they you have seen
|
|
returning from the hunt. Some day you will see your own
|
|
shadow, little Manu, and then you will be frightened to death."
|
|
|
|
But the monkey only screamed his warning more lustily before
|
|
he raced upward toward the safety of the high terrace where
|
|
Mangani, the great ape, could not follow. Presently Meriem
|
|
heard the sound of approaching bodies swinging through the trees.
|
|
She listened attentively. There were two and they were great
|
|
apes--Korak and Akut. To her Korak was an ape--a Mangani, for
|
|
as such the three always described themselves. Man was an
|
|
enemy, so they did not think of themselves as belonging any
|
|
longer to the same genus. Tarmangani, or great white ape, which
|
|
described the white man in their language, did not fit them all.
|
|
Gomangani--great black ape, or Negro--described none of them so
|
|
they called themselves plain Mangani.
|
|
|
|
Meriem decided that she would feign slumber and play a joke
|
|
on Korak. So she lay very still with eyes tightly closed.
|
|
She heard the two approaching closer and closer. They were in
|
|
the adjoining tree now and must have discovered her, for they
|
|
had halted. Why were they so quiet? Why did not Korak call
|
|
out his customary greeting? The quietness was ominous. It was
|
|
followed presently by a very stealthy sound--one of them was
|
|
creeping upon her. Was Korak planning a joke upon his own account?
|
|
Well, she would fool him. Cautiously she opened her eyes the
|
|
tiniest bit, and as she did so her heart stood still.
|
|
Creeping silently toward her was a huge bull ape that she
|
|
never before had seen. Behind him was another like him.
|
|
|
|
With the agility of a squirrel Meriem was upon her feet and
|
|
at the same instant the great bull lunged for her. Leaping from
|
|
limb to limb the girl fled through the jungle while close behind
|
|
her came the two great apes. Above them raced a bevy of screaming,
|
|
chattering monkeys, hurling taunts and insults at the Mangani,
|
|
and encouragement and advice to the girl.
|
|
|
|
From tree to tree swung Meriem working ever upward toward the
|
|
smaller branches which would not bear the weight of her pursuers.
|
|
Faster and faster came the bull apes after her. The clutching
|
|
fingers of the foremost were almost upon her again and again,
|
|
but she eluded them by sudden bursts of speed or reckless
|
|
chances as she threw herself across dizzy spaces.
|
|
|
|
Slowly she was gaining her way to the greater heights where
|
|
safety lay, when, after a particularly daring leap, the swaying
|
|
branch she grasped bent low beneath her weight, nor whipped
|
|
upward again as it should have done. Even before the rending
|
|
sound which followed Meriem knew that she had misjudged the
|
|
strength of the limb. It gave slowly at first. Then there was a
|
|
ripping as it parted from the trunk. Releasing her hold Meriem
|
|
dropped among the foliage beneath, clutching for a new support.
|
|
She found it a dozen feet below the broken limb. She had
|
|
fallen thus many times before, so that she had no particular
|
|
terror of a fall--it was the delay which appalled her most, and
|
|
rightly, for scarce had she scrambled to a place of safety than
|
|
the body of the huge ape dropped at her side and a great, hairy
|
|
arm went about her waist.
|
|
|
|
Almost at once the other ape reached his companion's side.
|
|
He made a lunge at Meriem; but her captor swung her to one
|
|
side, bared his fighting fangs and growled ominously.
|
|
Meriem struggled to escape. She struck at the hairy breast
|
|
and bearded cheek. She fastened her strong, white teeth in
|
|
one shaggy forearm. The ape cuffed her viciously across the
|
|
face, then he had to turn his attention to his fellow who quite
|
|
evidently desired the prize for his own.
|
|
|
|
The captor could not fight to advantage upon the swaying bough,
|
|
burdened as he was by a squirming, struggling captive, so he
|
|
dropped quickly to the ground beneath. The other followed him,
|
|
and here they fought, occasionally abandoning their duel to
|
|
pursue and recapture the girl who took every advantage of her
|
|
captors' preoccupation in battle to break away in attempted
|
|
escape; but always they overtook her, and first one and then
|
|
the other possessed her as they struggled to tear one another
|
|
to pieces for the prize.
|
|
|
|
Often the girl came in for many blows that were intended for
|
|
a hairy foe, and once she was felled, lying unconscious while
|
|
the apes, relieved of the distraction of detaining her by force,
|
|
tore into one another in fierce and terrible combat.
|
|
|
|
Above them screamed the little monkeys, racing hither and thither
|
|
in a frenzy of hysterical excitement. Back and forth over the
|
|
battle field flew countless birds of gorgeous plumage, squawking
|
|
their hoarse cries of rage and defiance. In the distance a lion roared.
|
|
|
|
The larger bull was slowly tearing his antagonist to pieces.
|
|
They rolled upon the ground biting and striking. Again, erect
|
|
upon their hind legs they pulled and tugged like human wrestlers;
|
|
but always the giant fangs found their bloody part to play until
|
|
both combatants and the ground about them were red with gore.
|
|
|
|
Meriem, through it all, lay still and unconscious upon the ground.
|
|
At last one found a permanent hold upon the jugular of the other
|
|
and thus they went down for the last time. For several minutes
|
|
they lay with scarce a struggle. It was the larger bull who
|
|
arose alone from the last embrace. He shook himself. A deep
|
|
growl rumbled from his hairy throat. He waddled back and forth
|
|
between the body of the girl and that of his vanquished foe.
|
|
Then he stood upon the latter and gave tongue to his hideous challenge.
|
|
The little monkeys broke, screaming, in all directions as the
|
|
terrifying noise broke upon their ears. The gorgeous birds took
|
|
wing and fled. Once again the lion roared, this time at a
|
|
greater distance.
|
|
|
|
The great ape waddled once more to the girl's side. He turned
|
|
her over upon her back, and stooping commenced to sniff and
|
|
listen about her face and breast. She lived. The monkeys
|
|
were returning. They came in swarms, and from above hurled
|
|
down insults upon the victor.
|
|
|
|
The ape showed his displeasure by baring his teeth and growling
|
|
up at them. Then he stooped and lifting the girl to his shoulder
|
|
waddled off through the jungle. In his wake followed the angry mob.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 11
|
|
|
|
Korak, returning from the hunt, heard the jabbering of the
|
|
excited monkeys. He knew that something was seriously amiss.
|
|
Histah, the snake, had doubtless coiled his slimy folds about
|
|
some careless Manu. The youth hastened ahead. The monkeys
|
|
were Meriem's friends. He would help them if he could.
|
|
He traveled rapidly along the middle terrace. In the tree
|
|
by Meriem's shelter he deposited his trophies of the hunt and
|
|
called aloud to her. There was no answer. He dropped quickly
|
|
to a lower level. She might be hiding from him.
|
|
|
|
Upon a great branch where Meriem often swung at indolent
|
|
ease he saw Geeka propped against the tree's great bole.
|
|
What could it mean? Meriem had never left Geeka thus alone before.
|
|
Korak picked up the doll and tucked it in his belt. He called
|
|
again, more loudly; but no Meriem answered his summons. In the
|
|
distance the jabbering of the excited Manus was growing
|
|
less distinct.
|
|
|
|
Could their excitement be in any way connected with
|
|
Meriem's disappearance? The bare thought was enough.
|
|
Without waiting for Akut who was coming slowly along some
|
|
distance in his rear, Korak swung rapidly in the direction
|
|
of the chattering mob. But a few minutes sufficed to overtake
|
|
the rearmost. At sight of him they fell to screaming and
|
|
pointing downward ahead of them, and a moment later Korak
|
|
came within sight of the cause of their rage.
|
|
|
|
The youth's heart stood still in terror as he saw the limp body
|
|
of the girl across the hairy shoulders of a great ape. That she
|
|
was dead he did not doubt, and in that instant there arose within
|
|
him a something which he did not try to interpret nor could have
|
|
hade he tried; but all at once the whole world seemed centered
|
|
in that tender, graceful body, that frail little body, hanging so
|
|
pitifully limp and helpless across the bulging shoulders of the brute.
|
|
|
|
He knew then that little Meriem was his world--his sun, his
|
|
moon, his stars--with her going had gone all light and warmth
|
|
and happiness. A groan escaped his lips, and after that a series
|
|
of hideous roars, more bestial than the beasts', as he dropped
|
|
plummet-like in mad descent toward the perpetrator of this hideous crime.
|
|
|
|
The bull ape turned at the first note of this new and menacing
|
|
voice, and as he turned a new flame was added to the rage and
|
|
hatred of The Killer, for he saw that the creature before him was
|
|
none other than the king ape which had driven him away from the
|
|
great anthropoids to whom he had looked for friendship and asylum.
|
|
|
|
Dropping the body of the girl to the ground the bull turned to
|
|
battle anew for possession of his expensive prize; but this time
|
|
he looked for an easy conquest. He too recognized Korak. Had he
|
|
not chased him away from the amphitheater without even having
|
|
to lay a fang or paw upon him? With lowered head and bulging
|
|
shoulders he rushed headlong for the smooth-skinned creature
|
|
who was daring to question his right to his prey.
|
|
|
|
They met head on like two charging bulls, to go down together
|
|
tearing and striking. Korak forgot his knife. Rage and bloodlust
|
|
such as his could be satisfied only by the feel of hot flesh
|
|
between rending fangs, by the gush of new life blood against his
|
|
bare skin, for, though he did not realize it, Korak, The Killer,
|
|
was fighting for something more compelling than hate or revenge--
|
|
he was a great male fighting another male for a she of his own kind.
|
|
|
|
So impetuous was the attack of the man-ape that he found his
|
|
hold before the anthropoid could prevent him--a savage hold,
|
|
with strong jaws closed upon a pulsing jugular, and there he
|
|
clung, with closed eyes, while his fingers sought another hold
|
|
upon the shaggy throat.
|
|
|
|
It was then that Meriem opened her eyes. At the sight before
|
|
her they went wide.
|
|
|
|
"Korak!" she cried. "Korak! My Korak! I knew that you
|
|
would come. Kill him, Korak! Kill him!" And with flashing
|
|
eyes and heaving bosom the girl, coming to her feet, ran to
|
|
Korak's side to encourage him. Nearby lay The Killer's spear,
|
|
where he had flung it as he charged the ape. The girl saw it and
|
|
snatched it up. No faintness overcame her in the face of this
|
|
battle primeval at her feet. For her there was no hysterical
|
|
reaction from the nerve strain of her own personal encounter with
|
|
the bull. She was excited; but cool and entirely unafraid.
|
|
Her Korak was battling with another Mangani that would have stolen
|
|
her; but she did not seek the safety of an overhanging bough
|
|
there to watch the battle from afar, as would a she Mangani.
|
|
Instead she placed the point of Korak's spear against the bull
|
|
ape's side and plunged the sharp point deep into the savage heart.
|
|
Korak had not needed her aid, for the great bull had been already
|
|
as good as dead, with the blood gushing from his torn jugular;
|
|
but Korak rose smiling with a word of approbation for his helper.
|
|
|
|
How tall and fine she was! Had she changed suddenly within
|
|
the few hours of his absence, or had his battle with the ape
|
|
affected his vision? He might have been looking at Meriem
|
|
through new eyes for the many startling and wonderful surprises
|
|
his gaze revealed. How long it had been since he had found her
|
|
in her father's village, a little Arab girl, he did not know, for
|
|
time is of no import in the jungle and so he had kept no track
|
|
of the passing days. But he realized, as he looked upon her now,
|
|
that she was no longer such a little girl as he had first seen
|
|
playing with Geeka beneath the great tree just within the palisade.
|
|
The change must have been very gradual to have eluded his notice
|
|
until now. And what was it that had caused him to realize it
|
|
so suddenly? His gaze wandered from the girl to the body of
|
|
the dead bull. For the first time there flashed to his
|
|
understanding the explanation of the reason for the girl's
|
|
attempted abduction. Korak's eyes went wide and then they closed
|
|
to narrow slits of rage as he stood glaring down upon the abysmal
|
|
brute at his feet. When next his glance rose to Meriem's face
|
|
a slow flush suffused his own. Now, indeed, was he looking
|
|
upon her through new eyes--the eyes of a man looking upon a maid.
|
|
|
|
Akut had come up just as Meriem had speared Korak's antagonist.
|
|
The exultation of the old ape was keen. He strutted, stiff-legged
|
|
and truculent about the body of the fallen enemy. He growled
|
|
and upcurved his long, flexible lip. His hair bristled.
|
|
He was paying no attention to Meriem and Korak. Back in the
|
|
uttermost recesses of his little brain something was stirring--
|
|
something which the sight and smell of the great bull had aroused.
|
|
The outward manifestation of the germinating idea was one of
|
|
bestial rage; but the inner sensations were pleasurable in
|
|
the extreme. The scent of the great bull and the sight of his huge
|
|
and hairy figure had wakened in the heart of Akut a longing for
|
|
the companionship of his own kind. So Korak was not alone
|
|
undergoing a change.
|
|
|
|
And Meriem? She was a woman. It is woman's divine right
|
|
to love. Always she had loved Korak. He was her big brother.
|
|
Meriem alone underwent no change. She was still happy in the
|
|
companionship of her Korak. She still loved him--as a sister
|
|
loves an indulgent brother--and she was very, very proud of him.
|
|
In all the jungle there was no other creature so strong, so
|
|
handsome, or so brave.
|
|
|
|
Korak came close to her. There was a new light in his eyes
|
|
as she looked up into them; but she did not understand it.
|
|
She did not realize how close they were to maturity, nor aught of
|
|
all the difference in their lives the look in Korak's eyes might mean.
|
|
|
|
"Meriem," he whispered and his voice was husky as he laid
|
|
a brown hand upon her bare shoulder. "Meriem!" Suddenly he
|
|
crushed her to him. She looked up into his face, laughing,
|
|
and then he bent and kissed her full upon the mouth. Even then
|
|
she did not understand. She did not recall ever having been
|
|
kissed before. It was very nice. Meriem liked it. She thought
|
|
it was Korak's way of showing how glad he was that the great ape
|
|
had not succeeded in running away with her. She was glad too,
|
|
so she put her arms about The Killer's neck and kissed him again
|
|
and again. Then, discovering the doll in his belt she transferred
|
|
it to her own possession, kissing it as she had kissed Korak.
|
|
|
|
Korak wanted her to say something. He wanted to tell her how
|
|
he loved her; but the emotion of his love choked him and the
|
|
vocabulary of the Mangani was limited.
|
|
|
|
There came a sudden interruption. It was from Akut--a sudden,
|
|
low growl, no louder than those he had been giving vent to the
|
|
while he pranced about the dead bull, nor half so loud in fact;
|
|
but of a timbre that bore straight to the perceptive faculties
|
|
of the jungle beast ingrained in Korak. It was a warning. Korak
|
|
looked quickly up from the glorious vision of the sweet face so
|
|
close to his. Now his other faculties awoke. His ears, his nostrils
|
|
were on the alert. Something was coming!
|
|
|
|
The Killer moved to Akut's side. Meriem was just behind them.
|
|
The three stood like carved statues gazing into the leafy
|
|
tangle of the jungle. The noise that had attracted their attention
|
|
increased, and presently a great ape broke through the underbrush
|
|
a few paces from where they stood. The beast halted at sight
|
|
of them. He gave a warning grunt back over his shoulder,
|
|
and a moment later coming cautiously another bull appeared.
|
|
He was followed by others--both bulls and females with young,
|
|
until two score hairy monsters stood glaring at the three. It was
|
|
the tribe of the dead king ape. Akut was the first to speak.
|
|
He pointed to the body of the dead bull.
|
|
|
|
"Korak, mighty fighter, has killed your king," he grunted.
|
|
"There is none greater in all the jungle than Korak, son of Tarzan.
|
|
Now Korak is king. What bull is greater than Korak?" It was a
|
|
challenge to any bull who might care to question Korak's right to
|
|
the kingship. The apes jabbered and chattered and growled among
|
|
themselves for a time. At last a young bull came slowly forward
|
|
rocking upon his short legs, bristling, growling, terrible.
|
|
|
|
The beast was enormous, and in the full prime of his strength.
|
|
He belonged to that almost extinct species for which white men
|
|
have long sought upon the information of the natives of the more
|
|
inaccessible jungles. Even the natives seldom see these great,
|
|
hairy, primordial men.
|
|
|
|
Korak advanced to meet the monster. He, too, was growling.
|
|
In his mind a plan was revolving. To close with this powerful,
|
|
untired brute after having just passed through a terrific battle
|
|
with another of his kind would have been to tempt defeat. He must
|
|
find an easier way to victory. Crouching, he prepared to meet
|
|
the charge which he knew would soon come, nor did he have long
|
|
to wait. His antagonist paused only for sufficient time to
|
|
permit him to recount for the edification of the audience and the
|
|
confounding of Korak a brief resume of his former victories, of
|
|
his prowess, and of what he was about to do to this puny Tarmangani.
|
|
Then he charged.
|
|
|
|
With clutching fingers and wide opened jaws he came down
|
|
upon the waiting Korak with the speed of an express train.
|
|
Korak did not move until the great arms swung to embrace him,
|
|
then he dropped low beneath them, swung a terrific right to the
|
|
side of the beast's jaw as he side-stepped his rushing body, and
|
|
swinging quickly about stood ready over the fallen ape where
|
|
he sprawled upon the ground.
|
|
|
|
It was a surprised anthropoid that attempted to scramble to
|
|
its feet. Froth flecked its hideous lips. Red were the little eyes.
|
|
Blood curdling roars tumbled from the deep chest. But it did
|
|
not reach its feet. The Killer stood waiting above it, and the
|
|
moment that the hairy chin came upon the proper level another
|
|
blow that would have felled an ox sent the ape over backward.
|
|
|
|
Again and again the beast struggled to arise, but each time
|
|
the mighty Tarmangani stood waiting with ready fist and pile
|
|
driver blow to bowl him over. Weaker and weaker became the
|
|
efforts of the bull. Blood smeared his face and breast. A red
|
|
stream trickled from nose and mouth. The crowd that had cheered
|
|
him on at first with savage yells, now jeered him--their
|
|
approbation was for the Tarmangani.
|
|
|
|
"Kagoda?" inquired Korak, as he sent the bull down once more.
|
|
|
|
Again the stubborn bull essayed to scramble to his feet.
|
|
Again The Killer struck him a terrific blow. Again he put
|
|
the question, kagoda--have you had enough?
|
|
|
|
For a moment the bull lay motionless. Then from between
|
|
battered lips came the single word: "Kagoda!"
|
|
|
|
"Then rise and go back among your people," said Korak.
|
|
"I do not wish to be king among people who once drove me
|
|
from them. Keep your own ways, and we will keep ours.
|
|
When we meet we may be friends, but we shall not live together."
|
|
|
|
An old bull came slowly toward The Killer.
|
|
|
|
"You have killed our king," he said. "You have defeated him
|
|
who would have been king. You could have killed him had
|
|
you wished. What shall we do for a king?"
|
|
|
|
Korak turned toward Akut.
|
|
|
|
"There is your king," he said. But Akut did not want to be
|
|
separated from Korak, although he was anxious enough to remain
|
|
with his own kind. He wanted Korak to remain, too. He said as much.
|
|
|
|
The youth was thinking of Meriem--of what would be best and
|
|
safest for her. If Akut went away with the apes there would
|
|
be but one to watch over and protect her. On the other hand
|
|
were they to join the tribe he would never feel safe to leave
|
|
Meriem behind when he went out to hunt, for the passions of
|
|
the ape-folk are not ever well controlled. Even a female might
|
|
develop an insane hatred for the slender white girl and kill her
|
|
during Korak's absence.
|
|
|
|
"We will live near you," he said, at last. "When you change
|
|
your hunting ground we will change ours, Meriem and I, and
|
|
so remain near you; but we shall not dwell among you."
|
|
|
|
Akut raised objections to this plan. He did not wish to be
|
|
separated from Korak. At first he refused to leave his human
|
|
friend for the companionship of his own kind; but when he saw
|
|
the last of the tribe wandering off into the jungle again and his
|
|
glance rested upon the lithe figure of the dead king's young mate
|
|
as she cast admiring glances at her lord's successor the call of
|
|
blood would not be denied. With a farewell glance toward his
|
|
beloved Korak he turned and followed the she ape into the
|
|
labyrinthine mazes of the wood.
|
|
|
|
|
|
After Korak had left the village of the blacks following his
|
|
last thieving expedition, the screams of his victim and those of
|
|
the other women and children had brought the warriors in from
|
|
the forest and the river. Great was the excitement and hot
|
|
was the rage of the men when they learned that the white devil
|
|
had again entered their homes, frightened their women and
|
|
stolen arrows and ornaments and food.
|
|
|
|
Even their superstitious fear of this weird creature who hunted
|
|
with a huge bull ape was overcome in their desire to wreak
|
|
vengeance upon him and rid themselves for good and all of the
|
|
menace of his presence in the jungle.
|
|
|
|
And so it was that a score of the fleetest and most doughty
|
|
warriors of the tribe set out in pursuit of Korak and Akut but
|
|
a few minutes after they had left the scene of The Killer's
|
|
many depredations.
|
|
|
|
The youth and the ape had traveled slowly and with no precautions
|
|
against a successful pursuit. Nor was their attitude of
|
|
careless indifference to the blacks at all remarkable. So many
|
|
similar raids had gone unpunished that the two had come to look
|
|
upon the Negroes with contempt. The return journey led them
|
|
straight up wind. The result being that the scent of their pursuers
|
|
was borne away from them, so they proceeded upon their way
|
|
in total ignorance of the fact that tireless trackers but
|
|
little less expert in the mysteries of woodcraft than themselves
|
|
were dogging their trail with savage insistence.
|
|
|
|
The little party of warriors was led by Kovudoo, the chief; a
|
|
middle-aged savage of exceptional cunning and bravery. It was
|
|
he who first came within sight of the quarry which they had
|
|
followed for hours by the mysterious methods of their almost
|
|
uncanny powers of observation, intuition, and even scent.
|
|
|
|
Kovudoo and his men came upon Korak, Akut and Meriem after
|
|
the killing of the king ape, the noise of the combat having
|
|
led them at last straight to their quarry. The sight of the
|
|
slender white girl had amazed the savage chief and held him
|
|
gazing at the trio for a moment before ordering his warriors to
|
|
rush out upon their prey. In that moment it was that the great
|
|
apes came and again the blacks remained awestruck witnesses to
|
|
the palaver, and the battle between Korak and the young bull.
|
|
|
|
But now the apes had gone, and the white youth and the white
|
|
maid stood alone in the jungle. One of Kovudoo's men leaned
|
|
close to the ear of his chief. "Look!" he whispered, and pointed
|
|
to something that dangled at the girl's side. "When my brother
|
|
and I were slaves in the village of The Sheik my brother made
|
|
that thing for The Sheik's little daughter--she played with it
|
|
always and called it after my brother, whose name is Geeka.
|
|
Just before we escaped some one came and struck down The
|
|
Sheik, stealing his daughter away. If this is she The Sheik
|
|
will pay you well for her return."
|
|
|
|
Korak's arm had again gone around the shoulders of Meriem.
|
|
Love raced hot through his young veins. Civilization was but
|
|
a half-remembered state--London as remote as ancient Rome.
|
|
In all the world there were but they two--Korak, The Killer, and
|
|
Meriem, his mate. Again he drew her close to him and covered
|
|
her willing lips with his hot kisses. And then from behind him
|
|
broke a hideous bedlam of savage war cries and a score of
|
|
shrieking blacks were upon them.
|
|
|
|
Korak turned to give battle. Meriem with her own light spear
|
|
stood by his side. An avalanche of barbed missiles flew
|
|
about them. One pierced Korak's shoulder, another his leg,
|
|
and he went down.
|
|
|
|
Meriem was unscathed for the blacks had intentionally spared her.
|
|
Now they rushed forward to finish Korak and made good the girl's
|
|
capture; but as they came there came also from another point in
|
|
the jungle the great Akut and at his heels the huge bulls of his
|
|
new kingdom.
|
|
|
|
Snarling and roaring they rushed upon the black warriors when
|
|
they saw the mischief they had already wrought. Kovudoo, realizing
|
|
the danger of coming to close quarters with these mighty
|
|
ape-men, seized Meriem and called upon his warriors to retreat.
|
|
For a time the apes followed them, and several of the blacks
|
|
were badly mauled and one killed before they succeeded in escaping.
|
|
Nor would they have gotten off thus easily had Akut not
|
|
been more concerned with the condition of the wounded Korak
|
|
than with the fate of the girl upon whom he had always looked
|
|
as more or less of an interloper and an unquestioned burden.
|
|
|
|
Korak lay bleeding and unconscious when Akut reached his side.
|
|
The great ape tore the heavy spears from his flesh, licked
|
|
the wounds and then carried his friend to the lofty shelter that
|
|
Korak had constructed for Meriem. Further than this the brute
|
|
could do nothing. Nature must accomplish the rest unaided or
|
|
Korak must die.
|
|
|
|
He did not die, however. For days he lay helpless with fever,
|
|
while Akut and the apes hunted close by that they might protect
|
|
him from such birds and beasts as might reach his lofty retreat.
|
|
Occasionally Akut brought him juicy fruits which helped to slake
|
|
his thirst and allay his fever, and little by little his powerful
|
|
constitution overcame the effects of the spear thrusts. The wounds
|
|
healed and his strength returned. All during his rational
|
|
moments as he had lain upon the soft furs which lined Meriem's
|
|
nest he had suffered more acutely from fears for Meriem than
|
|
from the pain of his own wounds. For her he must live. For her
|
|
he must regain his strength that he might set out in search of her.
|
|
What had the blacks done to her? Did she still live, or had
|
|
they sacrificed her to their lust for torture and human flesh?
|
|
Korak almost trembled with terror as the most hideous possibilities
|
|
of the girl's fate suggested themselves to him out of his
|
|
knowledge of the customs of Kovudoo's tribe.
|
|
|
|
The days dragged their weary lengths along, but at last he had
|
|
sufficiently regained his strength to crawl from the shelter and
|
|
make his way unaided to the ground. Now he lived more upon
|
|
raw meat, for which he was entirely dependent on Akut's skill
|
|
and generosity. With the meat diet his strength returned more
|
|
rapidly, and at last he felt that he was fit to undertake the
|
|
journey to the village of the blacks.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 12
|
|
|
|
Two tall, bearded white men moved cautiously through the
|
|
jungle from their camp beside a wide river. They were Carl
|
|
Jenssen and Sven Malbihn, but little altered in appearance
|
|
since the day, years before, that they and their safari
|
|
had been so badly frightened by Korak and Akut as the former
|
|
sought haven with them.
|
|
|
|
Every year had they come into the jungle to trade with the
|
|
natives, or to rob them; to hunt and trap; or to guide other
|
|
white men in the land they knew so well. Always since their
|
|
experience with The Sheik had they operated at a safe distance
|
|
from his territory.
|
|
|
|
Now they were closer to his village than they had been for
|
|
years, yet safe enough from discovery owing to the uninhabited
|
|
nature of the intervening jungle and the fear and enmity of
|
|
Kovudoo's people for The Sheik, who, in time past, had raided
|
|
and all but exterminated the tribe.
|
|
|
|
This year they had come to trap live specimens for a European
|
|
zoological garden, and today they were approaching a trap which
|
|
they had set in the hope of capturing a specimen of the large
|
|
baboons that frequented the neighborhood. As they approached
|
|
the trap they became aware from the noises emanating from its
|
|
vicinity that their efforts had been crowned with success.
|
|
The barking and screaming of hundreds of baboons could mean
|
|
naught else than that one or more of their number had fallen a
|
|
victim to the allurements of the bait.
|
|
|
|
The extreme caution of the two men was prompted by former
|
|
experiences with the intelligent and doglike creatures with which
|
|
they had to deal. More than one trapper has lost his life in battle
|
|
with enraged baboons who will hesitate to attack nothing upon
|
|
one occasion, while upon another a single gun shot will disperse
|
|
hundreds of them.
|
|
|
|
Heretofore the Swedes had always watched near-by their trap,
|
|
for as a rule only the stronger bulls are thus caught, since in
|
|
their greediness they prevent the weaker from approaching the
|
|
covered bait, and when once within the ordinary rude trap woven
|
|
on the spot of interlaced branches they are able, with the aid of
|
|
their friends upon the outside, to demolish their prison and escape.
|
|
But in this instance the trappers had utilized a special steel
|
|
cage which could withstand all the strength and cunning of a baboon.
|
|
It was only necessary, therefore, to drive away the herd which
|
|
they knew were surrounding the prison and wait for their boys who
|
|
were even now following them to the trap.
|
|
|
|
As they came within sight of the spot they found conditions
|
|
precisely as they had expected. A large male was battering
|
|
frantically against the steel wires of the cage that held
|
|
him captive. Upon the outside several hundred other baboons were
|
|
tearing and tugging in his aid, and all were roaring and jabbering
|
|
and barking at the top of their lungs.
|
|
|
|
But what neither the Swedes nor the baboons saw was the
|
|
half-naked figure of a youth hidden in the foliage of a
|
|
nearby tree. He had come upon the scene at almost the same
|
|
instant as Jenssen and Malbihn, and was watching the activities
|
|
of the baboons with every mark of interest.
|
|
|
|
Korak's relations with the baboons had never been over friendly.
|
|
A species of armed toleration had marked their occasional meetings.
|
|
The baboons and Akut had walked stiff legged and growling past
|
|
one another, while Korak had maintained a bared fang neutrality.
|
|
So now he was not greatly disturbed by the predicament of their king.
|
|
Curiosity prompted him to tarry a moment, and in that moment his
|
|
quick eyes caught the unfamiliar coloration of the clothing of the
|
|
two Swedes behind a bush not far from him. Now he was all alertness.
|
|
Who were these interlopers? What was their business in the jungle
|
|
of the Mangani? Korak slunk noiselessly around them to a point
|
|
where he might get their scent as well as a better view of them,
|
|
and scarce had he done so when he recognized them--they were the
|
|
men who had fired upon him years before. His eyes blazed. He could
|
|
feel the hairs upon his scalp stiffen at the roots. He watched them
|
|
with the intentness of a panther about to spring upon its prey.
|
|
|
|
He saw them rise and, shouting, attempt to frighten away the
|
|
baboons as they approached the cage. Then one of them raised
|
|
his rifle and fired into the midst of the surprised and angry herd.
|
|
For an instant Korak thought that the baboons were about to
|
|
charge, but two more shots from the rifles of the white men sent
|
|
them scampering into the trees. Then the two Europeans advanced
|
|
upon the cage. Korak thought that they were going to kill the king.
|
|
He cared nothing for the king but he cared less for the two
|
|
white men. The king had never attempted to kill him--
|
|
the white men had. The king was a denizen of his own beloved
|
|
jungle--the white men were aliens. His loyalty therefore was to
|
|
the baboon against the human. He could speak the language
|
|
of the baboon--it was identical to that of the great apes.
|
|
Across the clearing he saw the jabbering horde watching.
|
|
|
|
Raising his voice he shouted to them. The white men turned
|
|
at the sound of this new factor behind them. They thought it was
|
|
another baboon that had circled them; but though they searched
|
|
the trees with their eyes they saw nothing of the now silent figure
|
|
hidden by the foliage. Again Korak shouted.
|
|
|
|
"I am The Killer," he cried. "These men are my enemies
|
|
and yours. I will help you free your king. Run out upon the
|
|
strangers when you see me do so, and together we will drive
|
|
them away and free your king."
|
|
|
|
And from the baboons came a great chorus: "We will do what
|
|
you say, Korak."
|
|
|
|
Dropping from his tree Korak ran toward the two Swedes, and
|
|
at the same instant three hundred baboons followed his example.
|
|
At sight of the strange apparition of the half-naked
|
|
white warrior rushing upon them with uplifted spear Jenssen
|
|
and Malbihn raised their rifles and fired at Korak; but in the
|
|
excitement both missed and a moment later the baboons were
|
|
upon them. Now their only hope of safety lay in escape, and
|
|
dodging here and there, fighting off the great beasts that leaped
|
|
upon their backs, they ran into the jungle. Even then they would
|
|
have died but for the coming of their men whom they met a
|
|
couple of hundred yards from the cage.
|
|
|
|
Once the white men had turned in flight Korak gave them no
|
|
further attention, turning instead to the imprisoned baboon.
|
|
The fastenings of the door that had eluded the mental powers of
|
|
the baboons, yielded their secret immediately to the human
|
|
intelligence of The Killer, and a moment later the king baboon
|
|
stepped forth to liberty. He wasted no breath in thanks to Korak,
|
|
nor did the young man expect thanks. He knew that none of the
|
|
baboons would ever forget his service, though as a matter of fact
|
|
he did not care if they did. What he had done had been prompted
|
|
by a desire to be revenged upon the two white men. The baboons
|
|
could never be of service to him. Now they were racing in the
|
|
direction of the battle that was being waged between their fellows
|
|
and the followers of the two Swedes, and as the din of battle
|
|
subsided in the distance, Korak turned and resumed his journey
|
|
toward the village of Kovudoo.
|
|
|
|
On the way he came upon a herd of elephants standing in an
|
|
open forest glade. Here the trees were too far apart to permit
|
|
Korak to travel through the branches--a trail he much preferred
|
|
not only because of its freedom from dense underbrush and the wider
|
|
field of vision it gave him but from pride in his arboreal ability.
|
|
It was exhilarating to swing from tree to tree; to test the
|
|
prowess of his mighty muscles; to reap the pleasurable fruits of
|
|
his hard won agility. Korak joyed in the thrills of the highflung
|
|
upper terraces of the great forest, where, unhampered and unhindered,
|
|
he might laugh down upon the great brutes who must keep forever
|
|
to the darkness and the gloom of the musty soil.
|
|
|
|
But here, in this open glade where Tantor flapped his giant
|
|
ears and swayed his huge bulk from side to side, the ape-man
|
|
must pass along the surface of the ground--a pygmy amongst giants.
|
|
A great bull raised his trunk to rattle a low warning as he
|
|
sensed the coming of an intruder. His weak eyes roved hither
|
|
and thither but it was his keen scent and acute hearing which
|
|
first located the ape-man. The herd moved restlessly, prepared
|
|
for fight, for the old bull had caught the scent of man.
|
|
|
|
"Peace, Tantor," called The Killer. "It is I, Korak, Tarmangani."
|
|
|
|
The bull lowered his trunk and the herd resumed their
|
|
interrupted meditations. Korak passed within a foot of the
|
|
great bull. A sinuous trunk undulated toward him, touching his
|
|
brown hide in a half caress. Korak slapped the great shoulder
|
|
affectionately as he went by. For years he had been upon good
|
|
terms with Tantor and his people. Of all the jungle folk he
|
|
loved best the mighty pachyderm--the most peaceful and at the
|
|
same time the most terrible of them all. The gentle gazelle
|
|
feared him not, yet Numa, lord of the jungle, gave him a
|
|
wide berth. Among the younger bulls, the cows and the calves
|
|
Korak wound his way. Now and then another trunk would run out to
|
|
touch him, and once a playful calf grasped his legs and upset him.
|
|
|
|
The afternoon was almost spent when Korak arrived at the
|
|
village of Kovudoo. There were many natives lolling in shady
|
|
spots beside the conical huts or beneath the branches of the
|
|
several trees which had been left standing within the enclosure.
|
|
Warriors were in evidence upon hand. It was not a good time
|
|
for a lone enemy to prosecute a search through the village.
|
|
Korak determined to await the coming of darkness. He was a match
|
|
for many warriors; but he could not, unaided, overcome an
|
|
entire tribe--not even for his beloved Meriem. While he waited
|
|
among the branches and foliage of a near-by tree he searched
|
|
the village constantly with his keen eyes, and twice he circled
|
|
it, sniffing the vagrant breezes which puffed erratically from first
|
|
one point of the compass and then another. Among the various
|
|
stenches peculiar to a native village the ape-man's sensitive
|
|
nostrils were finally rewarded by cognizance of the delicate aroma
|
|
which marked the presence of her he sought. Meriem was there--
|
|
in one of those huts! But which one he could not know without
|
|
closer investigation, and so he waited, with the dogged patience
|
|
of a beast of prey, until night had fallen.
|
|
|
|
The camp fires of the blacks dotted the gloom with little points
|
|
of light, casting their feeble rays in tiny circles of luminosity
|
|
that brought into glistening relief the naked bodies of those who
|
|
lay or squatted about them. It was then that Korak slid silently
|
|
from the tree that had hidden him and dropped lightly to the
|
|
ground within the enclosure.
|
|
|
|
Keeping well in the shadows of the huts he commenced a
|
|
systematic search of the village--ears, eyes and nose constantly
|
|
upon the alert for the first intimation of the near presence
|
|
of Meriem. His progress must of necessity be slow since not even
|
|
the keen-eared curs of the savages must guess the presence of a
|
|
stranger within the gates. How close he came to a detection on
|
|
several occasions The Killer well knew from the restless whining
|
|
of several of them.
|
|
|
|
It was not until he reached the back of a hut at the head of the
|
|
wide village street that Korak caught again, plainly, the scent
|
|
of Meriem. With nose close to the thatched wall Korak sniffed
|
|
eagerly about the structure--tense and palpitant as a hunting hound.
|
|
Toward the front and the door he made his way when once his nose
|
|
had assured him that Meriem lay within; but as he rounded the
|
|
side and came within view of the entrance he saw a burly Negro
|
|
armed with a long spear squatting at the portal of the girl's prison.
|
|
The fellow's back was toward him, his figure outlined against the
|
|
glow of cooking fires further down the street. He was alone.
|
|
The nearest of his fellows were beside a fire sixty or seventy
|
|
feet beyond. To enter the hut Korak must either silence the sentry
|
|
or pass him unnoticed. The danger in the accomplishment of the
|
|
former alternative lay in the practical certainty of alarming the
|
|
warriors near by and bringing them and the balance of the village
|
|
down upon him. To achieve the latter appeared practically impossible.
|
|
To you or me it would have been impossible; but Korak, The Killer,
|
|
was not as you or I.
|
|
|
|
There was a good twelve inches of space between the broad
|
|
back of the black and the frame of the doorway. Could Korak
|
|
pass through behind the savage warrior without detection?
|
|
The light that fell upon the glistening ebony of the sentry's
|
|
black skin fell also upon the light brown of Korak's. Should one
|
|
of the many further down the street chance to look long in this
|
|
direction they must surely note the tall, light-colored, moving
|
|
figure; but Korak depended upon their interest in their own gossip to
|
|
hold their attention fast where it already lay, and upon the firelight
|
|
near them to prevent them seeing too plainly at a distance into the
|
|
darkness at the village end where his work lay.
|
|
|
|
Flattened against the side of the hut, yet not arousing a single
|
|
warning rustle from its dried thatching, The Killer came closer
|
|
and closer to the watcher. Now he was at his shoulder. Now he
|
|
had wormed his sinuous way behind him. He could feel the heat
|
|
of the naked body against his knees. He could hear the man breathe.
|
|
He marveled that the dull-witted creature had not long since
|
|
been alarmed; but the fellow sat there as ignorant of the presence
|
|
of another as though that other had not existed.
|
|
|
|
Korak moved scarcely more than an inch at a time, then he
|
|
would stand motionless for a moment. Thus was he worming
|
|
his way behind the guard when the latter straightened up, opened
|
|
his cavernous mouth in a wide yawn, and stretched his arms
|
|
above his head. Korak stood rigid as stone. Another step and he
|
|
would be within the hut. The black lowered his arms and relaxed.
|
|
Behind him was the frame work of the doorway. Often before had
|
|
it supported his sleepy head, and now he leaned back to enjoy
|
|
the forbidden pleasure of a cat nap.
|
|
|
|
But instead of the door frame his head and shoulders came in
|
|
contact with the warm flesh of a pair of living legs.
|
|
The exclamation of surprise that almost burst from his lips
|
|
was throttled in his throat by steel-thewed fingers that closed
|
|
about his windpipe with the suddenness of thought. The black
|
|
struggled to arise--to turn upon the creature that had seized
|
|
him--to wriggle from its hold; but all to no purpose. As he had
|
|
been held in a mighty vise of iron he could not move. He could
|
|
not scream. Those awful fingers at his throat but closed more
|
|
and more tightly. His eyes bulged from their sockets. His face
|
|
turned an ashy blue. Presently he relaxed once more--this time
|
|
in the final dissolution from which there is no quickening.
|
|
Korak propped the dead body against the door frame. There it sat,
|
|
lifelike in the gloom. Then the ape-man turned and glided into
|
|
the Stygian darkness of the hut's interior.
|
|
|
|
"Meriem!" he whispered.
|
|
|
|
"Korak! My Korak!" came an answering cry, subdued by fear of
|
|
alarming her captors, and half stifled by a sob of joyful welcome.
|
|
|
|
The youth knelt and cut the bonds that held the girl's wrists
|
|
and ankles. A moment later he had lifted her to her feet, and
|
|
grasping her by the hand led her towards the entrance. Outside the
|
|
grim sentinel of death kept his grisly vigil. Sniffing at his
|
|
dead feet whined a mangy native cur. At sight of the two emerging
|
|
from the hut the beast gave an ugly snarl and an instant later
|
|
as it caught the scent of the strange white man it raised a series
|
|
of excited yelps. Instantly the warriors at the near-by fire
|
|
were attracted. They turned their heads in the direction of
|
|
the commotion. It was impossible that they should fail to see
|
|
the white skins of the fugitives.
|
|
|
|
Korak slunk quickly into the shadows at the hut's side, drawing
|
|
Meriem with him; but he was too late. The blacks had seen
|
|
enough to arouse their suspicions and a dozen of them were now
|
|
running to investigate. The yapping cur was still at Korak's heels
|
|
leading the searchers unerringly in pursuit. The youth struck
|
|
viciously at the brute with his long spear; but, long accustomed
|
|
to dodging blows, the wily creature made a most uncertain target.
|
|
|
|
Other blacks had been alarmed by the running and shouting
|
|
of their companions and now the entire population of the village
|
|
was swarming up the street to assist in the search. Their first
|
|
discovery was the dead body of the sentry, and a moment later
|
|
one of the bravest of them had entered the hut and discovered
|
|
the absence of the prisoner. These startling announcements filled
|
|
the blacks with a combination of terror and rage; but, seeing no
|
|
foe in evidence they were enabled to permit their rage to get the
|
|
better of their terror, and so the leaders, pushed on by those
|
|
behind them, ran rapidly around the hut in the direction of the
|
|
yapping of the mangy cur. Here they found a single white warrior
|
|
making away with their captive, and recognizing him as the
|
|
author of numerous raids and indignities and believing that they
|
|
had him cornered and at a disadvantage, they charged savagely
|
|
upon him.
|
|
|
|
Korak, seeing that they were discovered, lifted Meriem to his
|
|
shoulders and ran for the tree which would give them egress
|
|
from the village. He was handicapped in his flight by the weight
|
|
of the girl whose legs would but scarce bear her weight, to say
|
|
nothing of maintaining her in rapid flight, for the tightly drawn
|
|
bonds that had been about her ankles for so long had stopped
|
|
circulation and partially paralyzed her extremities.
|
|
|
|
Had this not been the case the escape of the two would have
|
|
been a feat of little moment, since Meriem was scarcely a whit
|
|
less agile than Korak, and fully as much at home in the trees
|
|
as he. But with the girl on his shoulder Korak could not both
|
|
run and fight to advantage, and the result was that before he had
|
|
covered half the distance to the tree a score of native curs
|
|
attracted by the yelping of their mate and the yells and shouts of
|
|
their masters had closed in upon the fleeing white man, snapping
|
|
at his legs and at last succeeding in tripping him. As he went
|
|
down the hyena-like brutes were upon him, and as he struggled
|
|
to his feet the blacks closed in.
|
|
|
|
A couple of them seized the clawing, biting Meriem, and
|
|
subdued her--a blow upon the head was sufficient. For the ape-
|
|
man they found more drastic measures would be necessary.
|
|
|
|
Weighted down as he was by dogs and warriors he still managed
|
|
to struggle to his feet. To right and left he swung crushing blows
|
|
to the faces of his human antagonists--to the dogs he paid not
|
|
the slightest attention other than to seize the more persistent and
|
|
wring their necks with a single quick movement of the wrist.
|
|
|
|
A knob stick aimed at him by an ebon Hercules he caught and
|
|
wrested from his antagonist, and then the blacks experienced to
|
|
the full the possibilities for punishment that lay within those
|
|
smooth flowing muscles beneath the velvet brown skin of the
|
|
strange, white giant. He rushed among them with all the force
|
|
and ferocity of a bull elephant gone mad. Hither and thither he
|
|
charged striking down the few who had the temerity to stand
|
|
against him, and it was evident that unless a chance spear thrust
|
|
brought him down he would rout the entire village and regain
|
|
his prize. But old Kovudoo was not to be so easily robbed of
|
|
the ransom which the girl represented, and seeing that their
|
|
attack which had up to now resulted in a series of individual
|
|
combats with the white warrior, he called his tribesmen off, and
|
|
forming them in a compact body about the girl and the two who
|
|
watched over her bid them do nothing more than repel the assaults
|
|
of the ape-man.
|
|
|
|
Again and again Korak rushed against this human barricade
|
|
bristling with spear points. Again and again he was repulsed,
|
|
often with severe wounds to caution him to greater wariness.
|
|
From head to foot he was red with his own blood, and at last,
|
|
weakening from the loss of it, he came to the bitter realization
|
|
that alone he could do no more to succor his Meriem.
|
|
|
|
Presently an idea flashed through his brain. He called aloud
|
|
to the girl. She had regained consciousness now and replied.
|
|
|
|
"Korak goes," he shouted; "but he will return and take you
|
|
from the Gomangani. Good-bye, my Meriem. Korak will come
|
|
for you again."
|
|
|
|
"Good-bye!" cried the girl. "Meriem will look for you until
|
|
you come."
|
|
|
|
Like a flash, and before they could know his intention or
|
|
prevent him, Korak wheeled, raced across the village and with
|
|
a single leap disappeared into the foliage of the great tree that
|
|
was his highroad to the village of Kovudoo. A shower of spears
|
|
followed him, but their only harvest was a taunting laugh flung
|
|
back from out the darkness of the jungle.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 13
|
|
|
|
Meriem, again bound and under heavy guard in Kovudoo's own hut,
|
|
saw the night pass and the new day come without bringing the
|
|
momentarily looked for return of Korak. She had no doubt but
|
|
that he would come back and less still that he would easily
|
|
free her from her captivity. To her Korak was little short
|
|
of omnipotent. He embodied for her all that was finest and
|
|
strongest and best in her savage world. She gloried in his
|
|
prowess and worshipped him for the tender thoughtfulness
|
|
that always had marked his treatment of her. No other within
|
|
the ken of her memory had ever accorded her the love and
|
|
gentleness that was his daily offering to her. Most of the
|
|
gentler attributes of his early childhood had long since been
|
|
forgotten in the fierce battle for existence which the customs
|
|
of the mysterious jungle had forced upon him. He was more often
|
|
savage and bloodthirsty than tender and kindly. His other friends
|
|
of the wild looked for no gentle tokens of his affection. That he
|
|
would hunt with them and fight for them was sufficient. If he
|
|
growled and showed his fighting fangs when they trespassed upon
|
|
his inalienable rights to the fruits of his kills they felt no
|
|
anger toward him--only greater respect for the efficient and the
|
|
fit--for him who could not only kill but protect the flesh of his kill.
|
|
|
|
But toward Meriem he always had shown more of his human side.
|
|
He killed primarily for her. It was to the feet of Meriem that
|
|
he brought the fruits of his labors. It was for Meriem more
|
|
than for himself that he squatted beside his flesh and growled
|
|
ominously at whosoever dared sniff too closely to it. When he
|
|
was cold in the dark days of rain, or thirsty in a prolonged
|
|
drouth, his discomfort engendered first of all thoughts of
|
|
Meriem's welfare--after she had been made warm, after her
|
|
thirst had been slaked, then he turned to the affair of
|
|
ministering to his own wants.
|
|
|
|
The softest skins fell gracefully from the graceful shoulders
|
|
of his Meriem. The sweetest-scented grasses lined her bower
|
|
where other soft, furry pelts made hers the downiest couch in
|
|
all the jungle.
|
|
|
|
What wonder then that Meriem loved her Korak? But she loved him
|
|
as a little sister might love a big brother who was very good
|
|
to her. As yet she knew naught of the love of a maid for a man.
|
|
|
|
So now as she lay waiting for him she dreamed of him and of
|
|
all that he meant to her. She compared him with The Sheik,
|
|
her father, and at thought of the stern, grizzled, old Arab
|
|
she shuddered. Even the savage blacks had been less harsh to
|
|
her than he. Not understanding their tongue she could not guess
|
|
what purpose they had in keeping her a prisoner. She knew that
|
|
man ate man, and she had expected to be eaten; but she had
|
|
been with them for some time now and no harm had befallen her.
|
|
She did not know that a runner had been dispatched to the distant
|
|
village of The Sheik to barter with him for a ransom. She did
|
|
not know, nor did Kovudoo, that the runner had never reached
|
|
his destination--that he had fallen in with the safari of
|
|
Jenssen and Malbihn and with the talkativeness of a native to
|
|
other natives had unfolded his whole mission to the black servants
|
|
of the two Swedes. These had not been long in retailing the matter
|
|
to their masters, and the result was that when the runner left
|
|
their camp to continue his journey he had scarce passed from
|
|
sight before there came the report of a rifle and he rolled
|
|
lifeless into the underbrush with a bullet in his back.
|
|
|
|
A few moments later Malbihn strolled back into the encampment,
|
|
where he went to some pains to let it be known that he had
|
|
had a shot at a fine buck and missed. The Swedes knew that
|
|
their men hated them, and that an overt act against Kovudoo
|
|
would quickly be carried to the chief at the first opportunity.
|
|
Nor were they sufficiently strong in either guns or loyal
|
|
followers to risk antagonizing the wily old chief.
|
|
|
|
Following this episode came the encounter with the baboons and
|
|
the strange, white savage who had allied himself with the beasts
|
|
against the humans. Only by dint of masterful maneuvering and
|
|
the expenditure of much power had the Swedes been able to repulse
|
|
the infuriated apes, and even for hours afterward their camp was
|
|
constantly besieged by hundreds of snarling, screaming devils.
|
|
|
|
The Swedes, rifles in hand, repelled numerous savage charges
|
|
which lacked only efficient leadership to have rendered them as
|
|
effective in results as they were terrifying in appearance.
|
|
Time and time again the two men thought they saw the smooth-skinned
|
|
body of the wild ape-man moving among the baboons in the
|
|
forest, and the belief that he might head a charge upon them
|
|
proved most disquieting. They would have given much for a
|
|
clean shot at him, for to him they attributed the loss of their
|
|
specimen and the ugly attitude of the baboons toward them.
|
|
|
|
"The fellow must be the same we fired on several years ago,"
|
|
said Malbihn. "That time he was accompanied by a gorilla.
|
|
Did you get a good look at him, Carl?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes," replied Jenssen. "He was not five paces from me when
|
|
I fired at him. He appears to be an intelligent looking
|
|
European--and not much more than a lad. There is nothing of
|
|
the imbecile or degenerate in his features or expression, as is
|
|
usually true in similar cases, where some lunatic escapes into
|
|
the woods and by living in filth and nakedness wins the title of
|
|
wild man among the peasants of the neighborhood. No, this
|
|
fellow is of different stuff--and so infinitely more to be feared.
|
|
As much as I should like a shot at him I hope he stays away.
|
|
Should he ever deliberately lead a charge against us I wouldn't
|
|
give much for our chances if we happened to fail to bag him at
|
|
the first rush."
|
|
|
|
But the white giant did not appear again to lead the baboons
|
|
against them, and finally the angry brutes themselves wandered
|
|
off into the jungle leaving the frightened safari in peace.
|
|
|
|
The next day the Swedes set out for Kovudoo's village bent
|
|
on securing possession of the person of the white girl whom
|
|
Kovudoo's runner had told them lay captive in the chief's village.
|
|
How they were to accomplish their end they did not know. Force was
|
|
out of the question, though they would not have hesitated to use
|
|
it had they possessed it. In former years they had marched
|
|
rough shod over enormous areas, taking toll by brute force even
|
|
when kindliness or diplomacy would have accomplished more;
|
|
but now they were in bad straits--so bad that they had shown
|
|
their true colors scarce twice in a year and then only when they
|
|
came upon an isolated village, weak in numbers and poor in courage.
|
|
|
|
Kovudoo was not as these, and though his village was in a
|
|
way remote from the more populous district to the north his
|
|
power was such that he maintained an acknowledged suzerainty
|
|
over the thin thread of villages which connected him with the
|
|
savage lords to the north. To have antagonized him would have
|
|
spelled ruin for the Swedes. It would have meant that they might
|
|
never reach civilization by the northern route. To the west,
|
|
the village of The Sheik lay directly in their path, barring
|
|
them effectually. To the east the trail was unknown to them,
|
|
and to the south there was no trail. So the two Swedes approached
|
|
the village of Kovudoo with friendly words upon their tongues and
|
|
deep craft in their hearts.
|
|
|
|
Their plans were well made. There was no mention of the
|
|
white prisoner--they chose to pretend that they were not aware
|
|
that Kovudoo had a white prisoner. They exchanged gifts with
|
|
the old chief, haggling with his plenipotentiaries over the value
|
|
of what they were to receive for what they gave, as is customary
|
|
and proper when one has no ulterior motives. Unwarranted generosity
|
|
would have aroused suspicion.
|
|
|
|
During the palaver which followed they retailed the gossip of
|
|
the villages through which they had passed, receiving in exchange
|
|
such news as Kovudoo possessed. The palaver was long and tiresome,
|
|
as these native ceremonies always are to Europeans. Kovudoo made
|
|
no mention of his prisoner and from his generous offers of guides
|
|
and presents seemed anxious to assure himself of the speedy
|
|
departure of his guests. It was Malbihn who, quite casually,
|
|
near the close of their talk, mentioned the fact that The Sheik
|
|
was dead. Kovudoo evinced interest and surprise.
|
|
|
|
"You did not know it?" asked Malbihn. "That is strange. It was
|
|
during the last moon. He fell from his horse when the beast
|
|
stepped in a hole. The horse fell upon him. When his men came
|
|
up The Sheik was quite dead."
|
|
|
|
Kovudoo scratched his head. He was much disappointed. No Sheik
|
|
meant no ransom for the white girl. Now she was worthless,
|
|
unless he utilized her for a feast or--a mate. The latter
|
|
thought aroused him. He spat at a small beetle crawling through
|
|
the dust before him. He eyed Malbihn appraisingly. These white
|
|
men were peculiar. They traveled far from their own villages
|
|
without women. Yet he knew they cared for women. But how much did
|
|
they care for them?--that was the question that disturbed Kovudoo.
|
|
|
|
"I know where there is a white girl," he said, unexpectedly.
|
|
"If you wish to buy her she may be had cheap."
|
|
|
|
Malbihn shrugged. "We have troubles enough, Kovudoo," he said,
|
|
"without burdening ourselves with an old she-hyena, and as
|
|
for paying for one--" Malbihn snapped his fingers in derision.
|
|
|
|
"She is young," said Kovudoo, "and good looking."
|
|
|
|
The Swedes laughed. "There are no good looking white women
|
|
in the jungle, Kovudoo," said Jenssen. "You should be
|
|
ashamed to try to make fun of old friends."
|
|
|
|
Kovudoo sprang to his feet. "Come," he said, "I will show
|
|
you that she is all I say."
|
|
|
|
Malbihn and Jenssen rose to follow him and as they did so their
|
|
eyes met, and Malbihn slowly drooped one of his lids in a sly wink.
|
|
Together they followed Kovudoo toward his hut. In the dim
|
|
interior they discerned the figure of a woman lying bound upon
|
|
a sleeping mat.
|
|
|
|
Malbihn took a single glance and turned away. "She must be
|
|
a thousand years old, Kovudoo," he said, as he left the hut.
|
|
|
|
"She is young," cried the savage. "It is dark in here.
|
|
You cannot see. Wait, I will have her brought out into the
|
|
sunlight," and he commanded the two warriors who watched the
|
|
girl to cut the bonds from her ankles and lead her forth
|
|
for inspection.
|
|
|
|
Malbihn and Jenssen evinced no eagerness, though both were
|
|
fairly bursting with it--not to see the girl but to obtain
|
|
possession of her. They cared not if she had the face of
|
|
a marmoset, or the figure of pot-bellied Kovudoo himself.
|
|
All that they wished to know was that she was the girl
|
|
who had been stolen from The Sheik several years before.
|
|
They thought that they would recognize her for such if she
|
|
was indeed the same, but even so the testimony of the runner
|
|
Kovudoo had sent to The Sheik was such as to assure them that
|
|
the girl was the one they had once before attempted to abduct.
|
|
|
|
As Meriem was brought forth from the darkness of the hut's
|
|
interior the two men turned with every appearance of
|
|
disinterestedness to glance at her. It was with difficulty
|
|
that Malbihn suppressed an ejaculation of astonishment.
|
|
The girl's beauty fairly took his breath from him; but
|
|
instantly he recovered his poise and turned to Kovudoo.
|
|
|
|
"Well?" he said to the old chief.
|
|
|
|
"Is she not both young and good looking?" asked Kovudoo.
|
|
|
|
"She is not old," replied Malbihn; "but even so she will be
|
|
a burden. We did not come from the north after wives--there
|
|
are more than enough there for us."
|
|
|
|
Meriem stood looking straight at the white men. She expected
|
|
nothing from them--they were to her as much enemies as the
|
|
black men. She hated and feared them all. Malbihn spoke to her
|
|
in Arabic.
|
|
|
|
"We are friends," he said. "Would you like to have us take
|
|
you away from here?"
|
|
|
|
Slowly and dimly as though from a great distance recollection
|
|
of the once familiar tongue returned to her.
|
|
|
|
"I should like to go free," she said, "and go back to Korak."
|
|
|
|
"You would like to go with us?" persisted Malbihn.
|
|
|
|
"No," said Meriem.
|
|
|
|
Malbihn turned to Kovudoo. "She does not wish to go with us,"
|
|
he said.
|
|
|
|
"You are men," returned the black. "Can you not take her
|
|
by force?"
|
|
|
|
"It would only add to our troubles," replied the Swede.
|
|
"No, Kovudoo, we do not wish her; though, if you wish to
|
|
be rid of her, we will take her away because of our friendship
|
|
for you."
|
|
|
|
Now Kovudoo knew that he had made a sale. They wanted her.
|
|
So he commenced to bargain, and in the end the person of
|
|
Meriem passed from the possession of the black chieftain into
|
|
that of the two Swedes in consideration of six yards of Amerikan,
|
|
three empty brass cartridge shells and a shiny, new jack
|
|
knife from New Jersey. And all but Meriem were more than
|
|
pleased with the bargain.
|
|
|
|
Kovudoo stipulated but a single condition and that was that
|
|
the Europeans were to leave his village and take the girl
|
|
with them as early the next morning as they could get started.
|
|
After the sale was consummated he did not hesitate to explain his
|
|
reasons for this demand. He told them of the strenuous attempt
|
|
of the girl's savage mate to rescue her, and suggested that the
|
|
sooner they got her out of the country the more likely they were
|
|
to retain possession of her.
|
|
|
|
Meriem was again bound and placed under guard, but this
|
|
time in the tent of the Swedes. Malbihn talked to her, trying to
|
|
persuade her to accompany them willingly. He told her that they
|
|
would return her to her own village; but when he discovered that
|
|
she would rather die than go back to the old sheik, he assured
|
|
her that they would not take her there, nor, as a matter of fact,
|
|
had they had an intention of so doing. As he talked with the girl
|
|
the Swede feasted his eyes upon the beautiful lines of her face
|
|
and figure. She had grown tall and straight and slender toward
|
|
maturity since he had seen her in The Sheik's village on that
|
|
long gone day. For years she had represented to him a certain
|
|
fabulous reward. In his thoughts she had been but the
|
|
personification of the pleasures and luxuries that many francs
|
|
would purchase. Now as she stood before him pulsing with life and
|
|
loveliness she suggested other seductive and alluring possibilities.
|
|
He came closer to her and laid his hand upon her. The girl
|
|
shrank from him. He seized her and she struck him heavily in
|
|
the mouth as he sought to kiss her. Then Jenssen entered the tent.
|
|
|
|
"Malbihn!" he almost shouted. "You fool!"
|
|
|
|
Sven Malbihn released his hold upon the girl and turned toward
|
|
his companion. His face was red with mortification.
|
|
|
|
"What the devil are you trying to do?" growled Jenssen.
|
|
"Would you throw away every chance for the reward? If we
|
|
maltreat her we not only couldn't collect a sou, but they'd send
|
|
us to prison for our pains. I thought you had more sense, Malbihn."
|
|
|
|
"I'm not a wooden man," growled Malbihn.
|
|
|
|
"You'd better be," rejoined Jenssen, "at least until we have
|
|
delivered her over in safety and collected what will be coming
|
|
to us."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, hell," cried Malbihn. "What's the use? They'll be glad
|
|
enough to have her back, and by the time we get there with her
|
|
she'll be only too glad to keep her mouth shut. Why not?"
|
|
|
|
"Because I say not," growled Jenssen. "I've always let you
|
|
boss things, Sven; but here's a case where what I say has got to
|
|
go--because I'm right and you're wrong, and we both know it."
|
|
|
|
"You're getting damned virtuous all of a sudden," growled Malbihn.
|
|
"Perhaps you think I have forgotten about the inn keeper's
|
|
daughter, and little Celella, and that nigger at--"
|
|
|
|
"Shut up!" snapped Jenssen. "It's not a matter of virtue and
|
|
you are as well aware of that as I. I don't want to quarrel with
|
|
you, but so help me God, Sven, you're not going to harm this
|
|
girl if I have to kill you to prevent it. I've suffered and slaved
|
|
and been nearly killed forty times in the last nine or ten years
|
|
trying to accomplish what luck has thrown at our feet at last,
|
|
and now I'm not going to be robbed of the fruits of success
|
|
because you happen to be more of a beast than a man. Again I
|
|
warn you, Sven--" and he tapped the revolver that swung in its
|
|
holster at his hip.
|
|
|
|
Malbihn gave his friend an ugly look, shrugged his shoulders,
|
|
and left the tent. Jenssen turned to Meriem.
|
|
|
|
"If he bothers you again, call me," he said. "I shall always
|
|
be near."
|
|
|
|
The girl had not understood the conversation that had been
|
|
carried on by her two owners, for it had been in Swedish; but
|
|
what Jenssen had just said to her in Arabic she understood and
|
|
from it grasped an excellent idea of what had passed between
|
|
the two. The expressions upon their faces, their gestures,
|
|
and Jenssen's final tapping of his revolver before Malbihn
|
|
had left the tent had all been eloquent of the seriousness of
|
|
their altercation. Now, toward Jenssen she looked for friendship,
|
|
and with the innocence of youth she threw herself upon his mercy,
|
|
begging him to set her free, that she might return to Korak and her
|
|
jungle life; but she was doomed to another disappointment, for
|
|
the man only laughed at her roughly and told her that if she tried
|
|
to escape she would be punished by the very thing that he had
|
|
just saved her from.
|
|
|
|
All that night she lay listening for a signal from Korak. All about
|
|
the jungle life moved through the darkness. To her sensitive ears
|
|
came sounds that the others in the camp could not hear--sounds
|
|
that she interpreted as we might interpret the speech of a friend,
|
|
but not once came a single note that reflected the presence
|
|
of Korak. But she knew that he would come. Nothing short of
|
|
death itself could prevent her Korak from returning for her.
|
|
What delayed him though?
|
|
|
|
When morning came again and the night had brought no succoring
|
|
Korak, Meriem's faith and loyalty were still unshaken though
|
|
misgivings began to assail her as to the safety of her friend.
|
|
It seemed unbelievable that serious mishap could have
|
|
overtaken her wonderful Korak who daily passed unscathed
|
|
through all the terrors of the jungle. Yet morning came, the
|
|
morning meal was eaten, the camp broken and the disreputable
|
|
safari of the Swedes was on the move northward with still no
|
|
sign of the rescue the girl momentarily expected.
|
|
|
|
All that day they marched, and the next and the next, nor did
|
|
Korak even so much as show himself to the patient little waiter
|
|
moving, silently and stately, beside her hard captors.
|
|
|
|
Malbihn remained scowling and angry. He replied to Jenssen's
|
|
friendly advances in curt monosyllables. To Meriem he did
|
|
not speak, but on several occasions she discovered him glaring
|
|
at her from beneath half closed lids--greedily. The look sent a
|
|
shudder through her. She hugged Geeka closer to her breast and
|
|
doubly regretted the knife that they had taken from her when
|
|
she was captured by Kovudoo.
|
|
|
|
It was on the fourth day that Meriem began definitely to
|
|
give up hope. Something had happened to Korak. She knew it.
|
|
He would never come now, and these men would take her far away.
|
|
Presently they would kill her. She would never see her Korak again.
|
|
|
|
On this day the Swedes rested, for they had marched rapidly
|
|
and their men were tired. Malbihn and Jenssen had gone from
|
|
camp to hunt, taking different directions. They had been gone
|
|
about an hour when the door of Meriem's tent was lifted and
|
|
Malbihn entered. The look of a beast was on his face.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 14
|
|
|
|
With wide eyes fixed upon him, like a trapped creature
|
|
horrified beneath the mesmeric gaze of a great serpent,
|
|
the girl watched the approach of the man. Her hands were free,
|
|
the Swedes having secured her with a length of ancient slave
|
|
chain fastened at one end to an iron collar padlocked about her
|
|
neck and at the other to a long stake driven deep into the ground.
|
|
|
|
Slowly Meriem shrank inch by inch toward the opposite end of
|
|
the tent. Malbihn followed her. His hands were extended and
|
|
his fingers half-opened--claw-like--to seize her. His lips were
|
|
parted, and his breath came quickly, pantingly.
|
|
|
|
The girl recalled Jenssen's instructions to call him should
|
|
Malbihn molest her; but Jenssen had gone into the jungle to hunt.
|
|
Malbihn had chosen his time well. Yet she screamed, loud and
|
|
shrill, once, twice, a third time, before Malbihn could leap
|
|
across the tent and throttle her alarming cries with his
|
|
brute fingers. Then she fought him, as any jungle she might fight,
|
|
with tooth and nail. The man found her no easy prey. In that
|
|
slender, young body, beneath the rounded curves and the fine,
|
|
soft skin, lay the muscles of a young lioness. But Malbihn was
|
|
no weakling. His character and appearance were brutal, nor did
|
|
they belie his brawn. He was of giant stature and of giant strength.
|
|
Slowly he forced the girl back upon the ground, striking her in
|
|
the face when she hurt him badly either with teeth or nails.
|
|
Meriem struck back, but she was growing weaker from the choking
|
|
fingers at her throat.
|
|
|
|
Out in the jungle Jenssen had brought down two bucks. His hunting
|
|
had not carried him far afield, nor was he prone to permit it to
|
|
do so. He was suspicious of Malbihn. The very fact that his
|
|
companion had refused to accompany him and elected instead to hunt
|
|
alone in another direction would not, under ordinary circumstances,
|
|
have seemed fraught with sinister suggestion; but Jenssen knew
|
|
Malbihn well, and so, having secured meat, he turned immediately
|
|
back toward camp, while his boys brought in his kill.
|
|
|
|
He had covered about half the return journey when a scream
|
|
came faintly to his ears from the direction of camp. He halted
|
|
to listen. It was repeated twice. Then silence. With a muttered
|
|
curse Jenssen broke into a rapid run. He wondered if he would
|
|
be too late. What a fool Malbihn was indeed to thus chance
|
|
jeopardizing a fortune!
|
|
|
|
Further away from camp than Jenssen and upon the opposite
|
|
side another heard Meriem's screams--a stranger who was not
|
|
even aware of the proximity of white men other than himself--
|
|
a hunter with a handful of sleek, black warriors. He, too,
|
|
listened intently for a moment. That the voice was that of a woman
|
|
in distress he could not doubt, and so he also hastened at a run
|
|
in the direction of the affrighted voice; but he was much further
|
|
away than Jenssen so that the latter reached the tent first.
|
|
What the Swede found there roused no pity within his calloused heart,
|
|
only anger against his fellow scoundrel. Meriem was still fighting
|
|
off her attacker. Malbihn still was showering blows upon her.
|
|
Jenssen, streaming foul curses upon his erstwhile friend,
|
|
burst into the tent. Malbihn, interrupted, dropped his victim
|
|
and turned to meet Jenssen's infuriated charge. He whipped a
|
|
revolver from his hip. Jenssen, anticipating the lightning move
|
|
of the other's hand, drew almost simultaneously, and both men
|
|
fired at once. Jenssen was still moving toward Malbihn at the
|
|
time, but at the flash of the explosion he stopped. His revolver
|
|
dropped from nerveless fingers. For a moment he staggered drunkenly.
|
|
Deliberately Malbihn put two more bullets into his friend's body
|
|
at close range. Even in the midst of the excitement and her
|
|
terror Meriem found herself wondering at the tenacity of life
|
|
which the hit man displayed. His eyes were closed, his head
|
|
dropped forward upon his breast, his hands hung limply before him.
|
|
Yet still he stood there upon his feet, though he reeled horribly.
|
|
It was not until the third bullet had found its mark within his
|
|
body that he lunged forward upon his face. Then Malbihn
|
|
approached him, and with an oath kicked him viciously. Then he
|
|
returned once more to Meriem. Again he seized her, and at the
|
|
same instant the flaps of the tent opened silently and a tall
|
|
white man stood in the aperture. Neither Meriem or Malbihn
|
|
saw the newcomer. The latter's back was toward him while his
|
|
body hid the stranger from Meriem's eyes.
|
|
|
|
He crossed the tent quickly, stepping over Jenssen's body.
|
|
The first intimation Malbihn had that he was not to carry out
|
|
his design without further interruption was a heavy hand upon
|
|
his shoulder. He wheeled to face an utter stranger--a tall,
|
|
black-haired, gray-eyed stranger clad in khaki and pith helmet.
|
|
Malbihn reached for his gun again, but another hand had been
|
|
quicker than his and he saw the weapon tossed to the ground at
|
|
the side of the tent--out of reach.
|
|
|
|
"What is the meaning of this?" the stranger addressed his
|
|
question to Meriem in a tongue she did not understand. She shook
|
|
her head and spoke in Arabic. Instantly the man changed his
|
|
question to that language.
|
|
|
|
"These men are taking me away from Korak," explained the girl.
|
|
"This one would have harmed me. The other, whom he had just
|
|
killed, tried to stop him. They were both very bad men; but
|
|
this one is the worse. If my Korak were here he would kill him.
|
|
I suppose you are like them, so you will not kill him."
|
|
|
|
The stranger smiled. "He deserves killing?" he said. "There is
|
|
no doubt of that. Once I should have killed him; but not now.
|
|
I will see, though, that he does not bother you any more."
|
|
|
|
He was holding Malbihn in a grasp the giant Swede could not
|
|
break, though he struggled to do so, and he was holding him as
|
|
easily as Malbihn might have held a little child, yet Malbihn was
|
|
a huge man, mightily thewed. The Swede began to rage and curse.
|
|
He struck at his captor, only to be twisted about and held at
|
|
arm's length. Then he shouted to his boys to come and kill
|
|
the stranger. In response a dozen strange blacks entered the tent.
|
|
They, too, were powerful, clean-limbed men, not at all like the
|
|
mangy crew that followed the Swedes.
|
|
|
|
"We have had enough foolishness," said the stranger to Malbihn.
|
|
"You deserve death, but I am not the law. I know now who
|
|
you are. I have heard of you before. You and your friend
|
|
here bear a most unsavory reputation. We do not want you in
|
|
our country. I shall let you go this time; but should you ever
|
|
return I shall take the law into my own hands. You understand?"
|
|
|
|
Malbihn blustered and threatened, finishing by applying a
|
|
most uncomplimentary name to his captor. For this he received
|
|
a shaking that rattled his teeth. Those who know say that the
|
|
most painful punishment that can be inflicted upon an adult
|
|
male, short of injuring him, is a good, old fashioned shaking.
|
|
Malbihn received such a shaking.
|
|
|
|
"Now get out," said the stranger, "and next time you see me
|
|
remember who I am," and he spoke a name in the Swede's
|
|
ear--a name that more effectually subdued the scoundrel than
|
|
many beatings--then he gave him a push that carried him bodily
|
|
through the tent doorway to sprawl upon the turf beyond.
|
|
|
|
"Now," he said, turning toward Meriem, "who has the key
|
|
to this thing about your neck?"
|
|
|
|
The girl pointed to Jenssen's body. "He carried it always,"
|
|
she said.
|
|
|
|
The stranger searched the clothing on the corpse until he came
|
|
upon the key. A moment more Meriem was free.
|
|
|
|
"Will you let me go back to my Korak?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
"I will see that you are returned to your people," he replied.
|
|
"Who are they and where is their village?"
|
|
|
|
He had been eyeing her strange, barbaric garmenture wonderingly.
|
|
From her speech she was evidently an Arab girl; but he had
|
|
never before seen one thus clothed.
|
|
|
|
"Who are your people? Who is Korak?" he asked again.
|
|
|
|
"Korak! Why Korak is an ape. I have no other people. Korak and
|
|
I live in the jungle alone since A'ht went to be king of the apes."
|
|
She had always thus pronounced Akut's name, for so it had sounded
|
|
to her when first she came with Korak and the ape. "Korak could
|
|
have been kind, but he would not."
|
|
|
|
A questioning expression entered the stranger's eyes. He looked
|
|
at the girl closely.
|
|
|
|
"So Korak is an ape?" he said. "And what, pray, are you?"
|
|
|
|
"I am Meriem. I, also, am an ape."
|
|
|
|
"M-m," was the stranger's only oral comment upon this startling
|
|
announcement; but what he thought might have been partially
|
|
interpreted through the pitying light that entered his eyes.
|
|
He approached the girl and started to lay his hand upon
|
|
her forehead. She drew back with a savage little growl.
|
|
A smile touched his lips.
|
|
|
|
"You need not fear me," he said. "I shall not harm you. I only
|
|
wish to discover if you have fever--if you are entirely well.
|
|
If you are we will set forth in search of Korak."
|
|
|
|
Meriem looked straight into the keen gray eyes. She must
|
|
have found there an unquestionable assurance of the honorableness
|
|
of their owner, for she permitted him to lay his palm upon her
|
|
forehead and feel her pulse. Apparently she had no fever.
|
|
|
|
"How long have you been an ape?" asked the man.
|
|
|
|
"Since I was a little girl, many, many years ago, and Korak
|
|
came and took me from my father who was beating me. Since then
|
|
I have lived in the trees with Korak and A'ht."
|
|
|
|
"Where in the jungle lives Korak?" asked the stranger.
|
|
|
|
Meriem pointed with a sweep of her hand that took in, generously,
|
|
half the continent of Africa.
|
|
|
|
"Could you find your way back to him?"
|
|
|
|
"I do not know," she replied; "but he will find his way to me."
|
|
|
|
"Then I have a plan," said the stranger. "I live but a few
|
|
marches from here. I shall take you home where my wife will
|
|
look after you and care for you until we can find Korak or Korak
|
|
finds us. If he could find you here he can find you at my village.
|
|
Is it not so?"
|
|
|
|
Meriem thought that it was so; but she did not like the idea
|
|
of not starting immediately back to meet Korak. On the other
|
|
hand the man had no intention of permitting this poor, insane
|
|
child to wander further amidst the dangers of the jungle.
|
|
From whence she had come, or what she had undergone he could not
|
|
guess, but that her Korak and their life among the apes was but
|
|
a figment of a disordered mind he could not doubt. He knew
|
|
the jungle well, and he knew that men have lived alone and
|
|
naked among the savage beasts for years; but a frail and
|
|
slender girl! No, it was not possible.
|
|
|
|
Together they went outside. Malbihn's boys were striking camp
|
|
in preparation for a hasty departure. The stranger's blacks
|
|
were conversing with them. Malbihn stood at a distance, angry
|
|
and glowering. The stranger approached one of his own men.
|
|
|
|
"Find out where they got this girl," he commanded.
|
|
|
|
The Negro thus addressed questioned one of Malbihn's followers.
|
|
Presently he returned to his master.
|
|
|
|
"They bought her from old Kovudoo," he said. "That is all that
|
|
this fellow will tell me. He pretends that he knows nothing
|
|
more, and I guess that he does not. These two white men were
|
|
very bad men. They did many things that their boys knew not
|
|
the meanings of. It would be well, Bwana, to kill the other."
|
|
|
|
"I wish that I might; but a new law is come into this part
|
|
of the jungle. It is not as it was in the old days, Muviri,"
|
|
replied the master.
|
|
|
|
The stranger remained until Malbihn and his safari had
|
|
disappeared into the jungle toward the north. Meriem, trustful
|
|
now, stood at his side, Geeka clutched in one slim, brown hand.
|
|
They talked together, the man wondering at the faltering Arabic
|
|
of the girl, but attributing it finally to her defective mentality.
|
|
Could he have known that years had elapsed since she had used it
|
|
until she was taken by the Swedes he would not have wondered that
|
|
she had half forgotten it. There was yet another reason why the
|
|
language of The Sheik had thus readily eluded her; but of that
|
|
reason she herself could not have guessed the truth any better
|
|
than could the man.
|
|
|
|
He tried to persuade her to return with him to his "village"
|
|
as he called it, or douar, in Arabic; but she was insistent upon
|
|
searching immediately for Korak. As a last resort he determined
|
|
to take her with him by force rather than sacrifice her life to the
|
|
insane hallucination which haunted her; but, being a wise man,
|
|
he determined to humor her first and then attempt to lead her as
|
|
he would have her go. So when they took up their march it was
|
|
in the direction of the south, though his own ranch lay almost
|
|
due east.
|
|
|
|
By degrees he turned the direction of their way more and more
|
|
eastward, and greatly was he pleased to note that the girl failed
|
|
to discover that any change was being made. Little by little she
|
|
became more trusting. At first she had had but her intuition to
|
|
guide her belief that this big Tarmangani meant her no harm, but
|
|
as the days passed and she saw that his kindness and consideration
|
|
never faltered she came to compare him with Korak, and to be very
|
|
fond of him; but never did her loyalty to her apeman flag.
|
|
|
|
On the fifth day they came suddenly upon a great plain and
|
|
from the edge of the forest the girl saw in the distance fenced
|
|
fields and many buildings. At the sight she drew back in astonishment.
|
|
|
|
"Where are we?" she asked, pointing.
|
|
|
|
"We could not find Korak," replied the man, "and as our way led
|
|
near my douar I have brought you here to wait and rest
|
|
with my wife until my men can find your ape, or he finds you.
|
|
It is better thus, little one. You will be safer with us, and
|
|
you will be happier."
|
|
|
|
"I am afraid, Bwana," said the girl. "In thy douar they
|
|
will beat me as did The Sheik, my father. Let me go back into
|
|
the jungle. There Korak will find me. He would not think to look
|
|
for me in the douar of a white man."
|
|
|
|
"No one will beat you, child," replied the man. "I have not
|
|
done so, have I? Well, here all belong to me. They will treat
|
|
you well. Here no one is beaten. My wife will be very good to
|
|
you, and at last Korak will come, for I shall send men to search
|
|
for him."
|
|
|
|
The girl shook her head. "They could not bring him, for he
|
|
would kill them, as all men have tried to kill him. I am afraid.
|
|
Let me go, Bwana."
|
|
|
|
"You do not know the way to your own country. You would
|
|
be lost. The leopards or the lions would get you the first night,
|
|
and after all you would not find your Korak. It is better that you
|
|
stay with us. Did I not save you from the bad man? Do you not
|
|
owe me something for that? Well, then remain with us for a few
|
|
weeks at least until we can determine what is best for you.
|
|
You are only a little girl--it would be wicked to permit you to
|
|
go alone into the jungle."
|
|
|
|
Meriem laughed. "The jungle," she said, "is my father and
|
|
my mother. It has been kinder to me than have men. I am not
|
|
afraid of the jungle. Nor am I afraid of the leopard or the lion.
|
|
When my time comes I shall die. It may be that a leopard or a
|
|
lion shall kill me, or it may be a tiny bug no bigger than the end
|
|
of my littlest finger. When the lion leaps upon me, or the little
|
|
bug stings me I shall be afraid--oh, then I shall be terribly
|
|
afraid, I know; but life would be very miserable indeed were I
|
|
to spend it in terror of the thing that has not yet happened. If it
|
|
be the lion my terror shall be short of life; but if it be the little
|
|
bug I may suffer for days before I die. And so I fear the lion
|
|
least of all. He is great and noisy. I can hear him, or see him,
|
|
or smell him in time to escape; but any moment I may place a
|
|
hand or foot on the little bug, and never know that he is there
|
|
until I feel his deadly sting. No, I do not fear the jungle.
|
|
I love it. I should rather die than leave it forever; but your
|
|
douar is close beside the jungle. You have been good to me.
|
|
I will do as you wish, and remain here for a while to wait the
|
|
coming of my Korak."
|
|
|
|
"Good!" said the man, and he led the way down toward the
|
|
flower-covered bungalow behind which lay the barns and out-
|
|
houses of a well-ordered African farm.
|
|
|
|
As they came nearer a dozen dogs ran barking toward them--
|
|
gaunt wolf hounds, a huge great Dane, a nimble-footed collie
|
|
and a number of yapping, quarrelsome fox terriers. At first
|
|
their appearance was savage and unfriendly in the extreme; but
|
|
once they recognized the foremost black warriors, and the white
|
|
man behind them their attitude underwent a remarkable change.
|
|
The collie and the fox terriers became frantic with delirious
|
|
joy, and while the wolf hounds and the great Dane were not a whit
|
|
less delighted at the return of their master their greetings were
|
|
of a more dignified nature. Each in turn sniffed at Meriem who
|
|
displayed not the slightest fear of any of them.
|
|
|
|
The wolf hounds bristled and growled at the scent of wild
|
|
beasts that clung to her garment; but when she laid her hand
|
|
upon their heads and her soft voice murmured caressingly they
|
|
half-closed their eyes, lifting their upper lips in contented
|
|
canine smiles. The man was watching them and he too smiled, for it
|
|
was seldom that these savage brutes took thus kindly to strangers.
|
|
It was as though in some subtile way the girl had breathed a
|
|
message of kindred savagery to their savage hearts.
|
|
|
|
With her slim fingers grasping the collar of a wolf hound upon
|
|
either side of her Meriem walked on toward the bungalow upon
|
|
the porch of which a woman dressed in white waved a welcome
|
|
to her returning lord. There was more fear in the girl's eyes now
|
|
than there had been in the presence of strange men or savage beasts.
|
|
She hesitated, turning an appealing glance toward the man.
|
|
|
|
"This is my wife," he said. "She will be glad to welcome you."
|
|
|
|
The woman came down the path to meet them. The man kissed her,
|
|
and turning toward Meriem introduced them, speaking in the Arab
|
|
tongue the girl understood.
|
|
|
|
"This is Meriem, my dear," he said, and he told the story of
|
|
the jungle waif in so far as he knew it.
|
|
|
|
Meriem saw that the woman was beautiful. She saw that sweetness
|
|
and goodness were stamped indelibly upon her countenance. She no
|
|
longer feared her, and when her brief story had been narrated and
|
|
the woman came and put her arms about her and kissed her and called
|
|
her "poor little darling" something snapped in Meriem's little heart.
|
|
She buried her face on the bosom of this new friend in whose voice
|
|
was the mother tone that Meriem had not heard for so many years
|
|
that she had forgotten its very existence. She buried her face
|
|
on the kindly bosom and wept as she had not wept before in all her
|
|
life--tears of relief and joy that she could not fathom.
|
|
|
|
And so came Meriem, the savage little Mangani, out of her beloved
|
|
jungle into the midst of a home of culture and refinement.
|
|
Already "Bwana" and "My Dear," as she first heard them called
|
|
and continued to call them, were as father and mother to her.
|
|
Once her savage fears allayed, she went to the opposite extreme
|
|
of trustfulness and love. Now she was willing to wait here until
|
|
they found Korak, or Korak found her. She did not give up that
|
|
thought--Korak, her Korak always was first.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 15
|
|
|
|
And out in the jungle, far away, Korak, covered with wounds,
|
|
stiff with clotted blood, burning with rage and sorrow, swung
|
|
back upon the trail of the great baboons. He had not found them
|
|
where he had last seen them, nor in any of their usual haunts;
|
|
but he sought them along the well-marked spoor they had left
|
|
behind them, and at last he overtook them. When first he came
|
|
upon them they were moving slowly but steadily southward in
|
|
one of those periodic migrations the reasons for which the baboon
|
|
himself is best able to explain. At sight of the white warrior
|
|
who came upon them from down wind the herd halted in response to
|
|
the warning cry of the sentinel that had discovered him. There was
|
|
much growling and muttering; much stiff-legged circling on the
|
|
part of the bulls. The mothers, in nervous, high pitched tones,
|
|
called their young to their sides, and with them moved to safety
|
|
behind their lords and masters.
|
|
|
|
Korak called aloud to the king, who, at the familiar voice,
|
|
advanced slowly, warily, and still stiff-legged. He must have the
|
|
confirmatory evidence of his nose before venturing to rely too
|
|
implicitly upon the testimony of his ears and eyes. Korak stood
|
|
perfectly still. To have advanced then might have precipitated
|
|
an immediate attack, or, as easily, a panic of flight. Wild beasts
|
|
are creatures of nerves. It is a relatively simple thing to throw
|
|
them into a species of hysteria which may induce either a mania
|
|
for murder, or symptoms of apparent abject cowardice--it is a
|
|
question, however, if a wild animal ever is actually a coward.
|
|
|
|
The king baboon approached Korak. He walked around him
|
|
in an ever decreasing circle--growling, grunting, sniffing.
|
|
Korak spoke to him.
|
|
|
|
"I am Korak," he said. "I opened the cage that held you.
|
|
I saved you from the Tarmangani. I am Korak, The Killer.
|
|
I am your friend."
|
|
|
|
"Huh," grunted the king. "Yes, you are Korak. My ears told
|
|
me that you were Korak. My eyes told you that you were Korak.
|
|
Now my nose tells me that you are Korak. My nose is never wrong.
|
|
I am your friend. Come, we shall hunt together."
|
|
|
|
"Korak cannot hunt now," replied the ape-man. "The Gomangani
|
|
have stolen Meriem. They have tied her in their village.
|
|
They will not let her go. Korak, alone, was unable to set
|
|
her free. Korak set you free. Now will you bring your people
|
|
and set Korak's Meriem free?"
|
|
|
|
"The Gomangani have many sharp sticks which they throw.
|
|
They pierce the bodies of my people. They kill us.
|
|
The gomangani are bad people. They will kill us all if we
|
|
enter their village."
|
|
|
|
"The Tarmangani have sticks that make a loud noise and kill
|
|
at a great distance," replied Korak. "They had these when
|
|
Korak set you free from their trap. If Korak had run away
|
|
from them you would now be a prisoner among the Tarmangani."
|
|
|
|
The baboon scratched his head. In a rough circle about him
|
|
and the ape-man squatted the bulls of his herd. They blinked
|
|
their eyes, shouldered one another about for more advantageous
|
|
positions, scratched in the rotting vegetation upon the chance of
|
|
unearthing a toothsome worm, or sat listlessly eyeing their king
|
|
and the strange Mangani, who called himself thus but who more
|
|
closely resembled the hated Tarmangani. The king looked at
|
|
some of the older of his subjects, as though inviting suggestion.
|
|
|
|
"We are too few," grunted one.
|
|
|
|
"There are the baboons of the hill country," suggested another.
|
|
"They are as many as the leaves of the forest. They, too,
|
|
hate the Gomangani. They love to fight. They are very savage.
|
|
Let us ask them to accompany us. Then can we kill all the
|
|
Gomangani in the jungle." He rose and growled horribly,
|
|
bristling his stiff hair.
|
|
|
|
"That is the way to talk," cried The Killer, "but we do not
|
|
need the baboons of the hill country. We are enough. It will
|
|
take a long time to fetch them. Meriem may be dead and eaten
|
|
before we could free her. Let us set out at once for the village
|
|
of the Gomangani. If we travel very fast it will not take long to
|
|
reach it. Then, all at the same time, we can charge into the
|
|
village, growling and barking. The Gomangani will be very
|
|
frightened and will run away. While they are gone we can seize
|
|
Meriem and carry her off. We do not have to kill or be killed--
|
|
all that Korak wishes is his Meriem."
|
|
|
|
"We are too few," croaked the old ape again.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, we are too few," echoed others.
|
|
|
|
Korak could not persuade them. They would help him, gladly;
|
|
but they must do it in their own way and that meant enlisting
|
|
the services of their kinsmen and allies of the hill country.
|
|
So Korak was forced to give in. All he could do for the present
|
|
was to urge them to haste, and at his suggestion the king baboon
|
|
with a dozen of his mightiest bulls agreed to go to the hill
|
|
country with Korak, leaving the balance of the herd behind.
|
|
|
|
Once enlisted in the adventure the baboons became quite
|
|
enthusiastic about it. The delegation set off immediately.
|
|
They traveled swiftly; but the ape-man found no difficulty in
|
|
keeping up with them. They made a tremendous racket as they
|
|
passed through the trees in an endeavor to suggest to enemies
|
|
in their front that a great herd was approaching, for when the
|
|
baboons travel in large numbers there is no jungle creature who
|
|
cares to molest them. When the nature of the country required
|
|
much travel upon the level, and the distance between trees was
|
|
great, they moved silently, knowing that the lion and the leopard
|
|
would not be fooled by noise when they could see plainly for
|
|
themselves that only a handful of baboons were on the trail.
|
|
|
|
For two days the party raced through the savage country, passing
|
|
out of the dense jungle into an open plain, and across this
|
|
to timbered mountain slopes. Here Korak never before had been.
|
|
It was a new country to him and the change from the monotony
|
|
of the circumscribed view in the jungle was pleasing. But he
|
|
had little desire to enjoy the beauties of nature at this time.
|
|
Meriem, his Meriem was in danger. Until she was freed and
|
|
returned to him he had little thought for aught else.
|
|
|
|
Once in the forest that clothed the mountain slopes the baboons
|
|
advanced more slowly. Constantly they gave tongue to a
|
|
plaintive note of calling. Then would follow silence while
|
|
they listened. At last, faintly from the distance straight
|
|
ahead came an answer.
|
|
|
|
The baboons continued to travel in the direction of the voices
|
|
that floated through the forest to them in the intervals of their
|
|
own silence. Thus, calling and listening, they came closer to
|
|
their kinsmen, who, it was evident to Korak, were coming to
|
|
meet them in great numbers; but when, at last, the baboons of
|
|
the hill country came in view the ape-man was staggered at the
|
|
reality that broke upon his vision.
|
|
|
|
What appeared a solid wall of huge baboons rose from the
|
|
ground through the branches of the trees to the loftiest terrace
|
|
to which they dared entrust their weight. Slowly they were
|
|
approaching, voicing their weird, plaintive call, and behind them,
|
|
as far as Korak's eyes could pierce the verdure, rose solid walls
|
|
of their fellows treading close upon their heels. There were
|
|
thousands of them. The ape-man could not but think of the fate
|
|
of his little party should some untoward incident arouse even
|
|
momentarily the rage of fear of a single one of all these thousands.
|
|
|
|
But nothing such befell. The two kings approached one another,
|
|
as was their custom, with much sniffing and bristling.
|
|
They satisfied themselves of each other's identity. Then each
|
|
scratched the other's back. After a moment they spoke together.
|
|
Korak's friend explained the nature of their visit, and for the
|
|
first time Korak showed himself. He had been hiding behind a bush.
|
|
The excitement among the hill baboons was intense at sight of him.
|
|
For a moment Korak feared that he should be torn to pieces;
|
|
but his fear was for Meriem. Should he die there would be none
|
|
to succor her.
|
|
|
|
The two kings, however, managed to quiet the multitude, and
|
|
Korak was permitted to approach. Slowly the hill baboons came
|
|
closer to him. They sniffed at him from every angle. When he
|
|
spoke to them in their own tongue they were filled with wonder
|
|
and delight. They talked to him and listened while he spoke.
|
|
He told them of Meriem, and of their life in the jungle where they
|
|
were the friends of all the ape folk from little Manu to Mangani,
|
|
the great ape.
|
|
|
|
"The Gomangani, who are keeping Meriem from me, are no friends
|
|
of yours," he said. "They kill you. The baboons of the
|
|
low country are too few to go against them. They tell me that
|
|
you are very many and very brave--that your numbers are as
|
|
the numbers of the grasses upon the plains or the leaves within
|
|
the forest, and that even Tantor, the elephant, fears you, so brave
|
|
you are. They told me that you would be happy to accompany
|
|
us to the village of the Gomangani and punish these bad people
|
|
while I, Korak, The Killer, carry away my Meriem."
|
|
|
|
The king ape puffed out his chest and strutted about very stiff-
|
|
legged indeed. So also did many of the other great bulls of
|
|
his nation. They were pleased and flattered by the words of
|
|
the strange Tarmangani, who called himself Mangani and spoke the
|
|
language of the hairy progenitors of man.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," said one, "we of the hill country are mighty fighters.
|
|
Tantor fears us. Numa fears us. Sheeta fears us. The Gomangani
|
|
of the hill country are glad to pass us by in peace. I, for one,
|
|
will come with you to the village of the Gomangani of the low places.
|
|
I am the king's first he-child. Alone can I kill all the Gomangani
|
|
of the low country," and he swelled his chest and strutted proudly
|
|
back and forth, until the itching back of a comrade commanded his
|
|
industrious attention.
|
|
|
|
"I am Goob," cried another. "My fighting fangs are long.
|
|
They are sharp. They are strong. Into the soft flesh of many a
|
|
Gomangani have they been buried. Alone I slew the sister of Sheeta.
|
|
Goob will go to the low country with you and kill so many of the
|
|
Gomangani that there will be none left to count the dead," and
|
|
then he, too, strutted and pranced before the admiring eyes of the
|
|
shes and the young.
|
|
|
|
Korak looked at the king, questioningly.
|
|
|
|
"Your bulls are very brave," he said; "but braver than any is
|
|
the king."
|
|
|
|
Thus addressed, the shaggy bull, still in his prime--else he
|
|
had been no longer king--growled ferociously. The forest
|
|
echoed to his lusty challenges. The little baboons clutched
|
|
fearfully at their mothers' hairy necks. The bulls, electrified,
|
|
leaped high in air and took up the roaring challenge of their king.
|
|
The din was terrific.
|
|
|
|
Korak came close to the king and shouted in his ear, "Come."
|
|
Then he started off through the forest toward the plain that they
|
|
must cross on their long journey back to the village of Kovudoo,
|
|
the Gomangani. The king, still roaring and shrieking, wheeled
|
|
and followed him. In their wake came the handful of low country
|
|
baboons and the thousands of the hill clan--savage, wiry, dog-like
|
|
creatures, athirst for blood.
|
|
|
|
And so they came, upon the second day, to the village of Kovudoo.
|
|
It was mid-afternoon. The village was sunk in the quiet of the
|
|
great equatorial sun-heat. The mighty herd traveled quietly now.
|
|
Beneath the thousands of padded feet the forest gave forth no
|
|
greater sound than might have been produced by the increased
|
|
soughing of a stronger breeze through the leafy branches of
|
|
the trees.
|
|
|
|
Korak and the two kings were in the lead. Close beside the
|
|
village they halted until the stragglers had closed up. Now utter
|
|
silence reigned. Korak, creeping stealthily, entered the tree
|
|
that overhung the palisade. He glanced behind him. The pack were
|
|
close upon his heels. The time had come. He had warned them
|
|
continuously during the long march that no harm must befall
|
|
the white she who lay a prisoner within the village. All others
|
|
were their legitimate prey. Then, raising his face toward the sky,
|
|
he gave voice to a single cry. It was the signal.
|
|
|
|
In response three thousand hairy bulls leaped screaming and
|
|
barking into the village of the terrified blacks. Warriors poured
|
|
from every hut. Mothers gathered their babies in their arms and
|
|
fled toward the gates as they saw the horrid horde pouring into
|
|
the village street. Kovudoo marshaled his fighting men about
|
|
him and, leaping and yelling to arouse their courage, offered a
|
|
bristling, spear tipped front to the charging horde.
|
|
|
|
Korak, as he had led the march, led the charge. The blacks
|
|
were struck with horror and dismay at the sight of this white-
|
|
skinned youth at the head of a pack of hideous baboons. For an
|
|
instant they held their ground, hurling their spears once at the
|
|
advancing multitude; but before they could fit arrows to their
|
|
bows they wavered, gave, and turned in terrified rout. Into their
|
|
ranks, upon their backs, sinking strong fangs into the muscles
|
|
of their necks sprang the baboons and first among them, most
|
|
ferocious, most blood-thirsty, most terrible was Korak, The Killer.
|
|
|
|
At the village gates, through which the blacks poured in panic,
|
|
Korak left them to the tender mercies of his allies and turned
|
|
himself eagerly toward the hut in which Meriem had been a prisoner.
|
|
It was empty. One after another the filthy interiors revealed
|
|
the same disheartening fact--Meriem was in none of them.
|
|
That she had not been taken by the blacks in their flight
|
|
from the village Korak knew for he had watched carefully for a
|
|
glimpse of her among the fugitives.
|
|
|
|
To the mind of the ape-man, knowing as he did the proclivities
|
|
of the savages, there was but a single explanation--Meriem had
|
|
been killed and eaten. With the conviction that Meriem was dead
|
|
there surged through Korak's brain a wave of blood red rage
|
|
against those he believed to be her murderer. In the distance he
|
|
could hear the snarling of the baboons mixed with the screams
|
|
of their victims, and towards this he made his way. When he
|
|
came upon them the baboons had commenced to tire of the sport
|
|
of battle, and the blacks in a little knot were making a new stand,
|
|
using their knob sticks effectively upon the few bulls who still
|
|
persisted in attacking them.
|
|
|
|
Among these broke Korak from the branches of a tree above
|
|
them--swift, relentless, terrible, he hurled himself upon the
|
|
savage warriors of Kovudoo. Blind fury possessed him. Too, it
|
|
protected him by its very ferocity. Like a wounded lioness he
|
|
was here, there, everywhere, striking terrific blows with hard
|
|
fists and with the precision and timeliness of the trained fighter.
|
|
Again and again he buried his teeth in the flesh of a foeman.
|
|
He was upon one and gone again to another before an effective blow
|
|
could be dealt him. Yet, though great was the weight of his
|
|
execution in determining the result of the combat, it was
|
|
outweighed by the terror which he inspired in the simple,
|
|
superstitious minds of his foeman. To them this white warrior,
|
|
who consorted with the great apes and the fierce baboons, who
|
|
growled and snarled and snapped like a beast, was not human.
|
|
He was a demon of the forest--a fearsome god of evil whom
|
|
they had offended, and who had come out of his lair deep in the
|
|
jungle to punish them. And because of this belief there were
|
|
many who offered but little defense, feeling as they did the
|
|
futility of pitting their puny mortal strength against that
|
|
of a deity.
|
|
|
|
Those who could fled, until at last there were no more to pay
|
|
the penalty for a deed, which, while not beyond them, they
|
|
were, nevertheless, not guilty of. Panting and bloody, Korak
|
|
paused for want of further victims. The baboons gathered about
|
|
him, sated themselves with blood and battle. They lolled upon
|
|
the ground, fagged.
|
|
|
|
In the distance Kovudoo was gathering his scattered tribesmen,
|
|
and taking account of injuries and losses. His people were
|
|
panic stricken. Nothing could prevail upon them to remain longer
|
|
in this country. They would not even return to the village for
|
|
their belongings. Instead they insisted upon continuing their
|
|
flight until they had put many miles between themselves and the
|
|
stamping ground of the demon who had so bitterly attacked them.
|
|
And thus it befell that Korak drove from their homes the
|
|
only people who might have aided him in a search for Meriem,
|
|
and cut off the only connecting link between him and her from
|
|
whomsoever might come in search of him from the douar of the
|
|
kindly Bwana who had befriended his little jungle sweetheart.
|
|
|
|
It was a sour and savage Korak who bade farewell to his baboon
|
|
allies upon the following morning. They wished him to
|
|
accompany him; but the ape-man had no heart for the society
|
|
of any. Jungle life had encouraged taciturnity in him. His sorrow
|
|
had deepened this to a sullen moroseness that could not brook
|
|
even the savage companionship of the ill-natured baboons.
|
|
|
|
Brooding and despondent he took his solitary way into the
|
|
deepest jungle. He moved along the ground when he knew that
|
|
Numa was abroad and hungry. He took to the same trees that
|
|
harbored Sheeta, the panther. He courted death in a hundred
|
|
ways and a hundred forms. His mind was ever occupied with
|
|
reminiscences of Meriem and the happy years that they had
|
|
spent together. He realized now to the full what she had meant
|
|
to him. The sweet face, the tanned, supple, little body, the
|
|
bright smile that always had welcomed his return from the hunt
|
|
haunted him continually.
|
|
|
|
Inaction soon threatened him with madness. He must be on
|
|
the go. He must fill his days with labor and excitement that he
|
|
might forget--that night might find him so exhausted that he
|
|
should sleep in blessed unconsciousness of his misery until a
|
|
new day had come.
|
|
|
|
Had he guessed that by any possibility Meriem might still live
|
|
he would at least have had hope. His days could have been
|
|
devoted to searching for her; but he implicitly believed that
|
|
she was dead.
|
|
|
|
For a long year he led his solitary, roaming life. Occasionally he
|
|
fell in with Akut and his tribe, hunting with them for a day or two;
|
|
or he might travel to the hill country where the baboons had come
|
|
to accept him as a matter of course; but most of all was he with
|
|
Tantor, the elephant--the great gray battle ship of the jungle--the
|
|
super-dreadnaught of his savage world.
|
|
|
|
The peaceful quiet of the monster bulls, the watchful solicitude
|
|
of the mother cows, the awkward playfulness of the calves rested,
|
|
interested, and amused Korak. The life of the huge beasts
|
|
took his mind, temporarily from his own grief. He came to love
|
|
them as he loved not even the great apes, and there was one
|
|
gigantic tusker in particular of which he was very fond--the lord
|
|
of the herd--a savage beast that was wont to charge a stranger
|
|
upon the slightest provocation, or upon no provocation whatsoever.
|
|
And to Korak this mountain of destruction was docile and
|
|
affectionate as a lap dog.
|
|
|
|
He came when Korak called. He wound his trunk about the
|
|
ape-man's body and lifted him to his broad neck in response to
|
|
a gesture, and there would Korak lie at full length kicking his
|
|
toes affectionately into the thick hide and brushing the flies from
|
|
about the tender ears of his colossal chum with a leafy branch
|
|
torn from a nearby tree by Tantor for the purpose.
|
|
|
|
And all the while Meriem was scarce a hundred miles away.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 16
|
|
|
|
To Meriem, in her new home, the days passed quickly. At first
|
|
she was all anxiety to be off into the jungle searching for
|
|
her Korak. Bwana, as she insisted upon calling her benefactor,
|
|
dissuaded her from making the attempt at once by dispatching
|
|
a head man with a party of blacks to Kovudoo's village
|
|
with instructions to learn from the old savage how he came
|
|
into possession of the white girl and as much of her antecedents
|
|
as might be culled from the black chieftain. Bwana particularly
|
|
charged his head man with the duty of questioning Kovudoo relative
|
|
to the strange character whom the girl called Korak, and of
|
|
searching for the ape-man if he found the slightest evidence upon
|
|
which to ground a belief in the existence of such an individual.
|
|
Bwana was more than fully convinced that Korak was a creature of
|
|
the girl's disordered imagination. He believed that the terrors
|
|
and hardships she had undergone during captivity among the blacks
|
|
and her frightful experience with the two Swedes had unbalanced
|
|
her mind but as the days passed and he became better acquainted
|
|
with her and able to observe her under the ordinary conditions of
|
|
the quiet of his African home he was forced to admit that her
|
|
strange tale puzzled him not a little, for there was no other
|
|
evidence whatever that Meriem was not in full possession of her
|
|
normal faculties.
|
|
|
|
The white man's wife, whom Meriem had christened "My Dear"
|
|
from having first heard her thus addressed by Bwana, took not
|
|
only a deep interest in the little jungle waif because of her
|
|
forlorn and friendless state, but grew to love her as well for her
|
|
sunny disposition and natural charm of temperament. And Meriem,
|
|
similarly impressed by little attributes in the gentle, cultured
|
|
woman, reciprocated the other's regard and affection.
|
|
|
|
And so the days flew by while Meriem waited the return of the
|
|
head man and his party from the country of Kovudoo. They were
|
|
short days, for into them were crowded many hours of insidious
|
|
instruction of the unlettered child by the lonely woman.
|
|
She commenced at once to teach the girl English without forcing
|
|
it upon her as a task. She varied the instruction with lessons
|
|
in sewing and deportment, nor once did she let Meriem guess that
|
|
it was not all play. Nor was this difficult, since the girl was
|
|
avid to learn. Then there were pretty dresses to be made to take
|
|
the place of the single leopard skin and in this she found the child
|
|
as responsive and enthusiastic as any civilized miss of her acquaintance.
|
|
|
|
A month passed before the head man returned--a month that
|
|
had transformed the savage, half-naked little tarmangani into a
|
|
daintily frocked girl of at least outward civilization. Meriem had
|
|
progressed rapidly with the intricacies of the English language,
|
|
for Bwana and My Dear had persistently refused to speak Arabic
|
|
from the time they had decided that Meriem must learn English,
|
|
which had been a day or two after her introduction into their home.
|
|
|
|
The report of the head man plunged Meriem into a period of
|
|
despondency, for he had found the village of Kovudoo deserted
|
|
nor, search as he would, could he discover a single native
|
|
anywhere in the vicinity. For some time he had camped near the
|
|
village, spending the days in a systematic search of the environs
|
|
for traces of Meriem's Korak; but in this quest, too, had he failed.
|
|
He had seen neither apes nor ape-man. Meriem at first insisted
|
|
upon setting forth herself in search of Korak, but Bwana prevailed
|
|
upon her to wait. He would go himself, he assured her, as soon as
|
|
he could find the time, and at last Meriem consented to abide by
|
|
his wishes; but it was months before she ceased to mourn almost
|
|
hourly for her Korak.
|
|
|
|
My Dear grieved with the grieving girl and did her best to
|
|
comfort and cheer her. She told her that if Korak lived he would
|
|
find her; but all the time she believed that Korak had never
|
|
existed beyond the child's dreams. She planned amusements to
|
|
distract Meriem's attention from her sorrow, and she instituted
|
|
a well-designed campaign to impress upon the child the desirability
|
|
of civilized life and customs. Nor was this difficult, as she was
|
|
soon to learn, for it rapidly became evident that beneath the uncouth
|
|
savagery of the girl was a bed rock of innate refinement--a nicety
|
|
of taste and predilection that quite equaled that of her instructor.
|
|
|
|
My Dear was delighted. She was lonely and childless, and so
|
|
she lavished upon this little stranger all the mother love that
|
|
would have gone to her own had she had one. The result was
|
|
that by the end of the first year none might have guessed that
|
|
Meriem ever had existed beyond the lap of culture and luxury.
|
|
|
|
She was sixteen now, though she easily might have passed for
|
|
nineteen, and she was very good to look upon, with her black
|
|
hair and her tanned skin and all the freshness and purity of health
|
|
and innocence. Yet she still nursed her secret sorrow, though
|
|
she no longer mentioned it to My Dear. Scarce an hour passed
|
|
that did not bring its recollection of Korak, and its poignant
|
|
yearning to see him again.
|
|
|
|
Meriem spoke English fluently now, and read and wrote it as well.
|
|
One day My Dear spoke jokingly to her in French and to her
|
|
surprise Meriem replied in the same tongue--slowly, it is true,
|
|
and haltingly; but none the less in excellent French, such,
|
|
though, as a little child might use. Thereafter they spoke a
|
|
little French each day, and My Dear often marveled that the
|
|
girl learned this language with a facility that was at times
|
|
almost uncanny. At first Meriem had puckered her narrow, arched,
|
|
little eye brows as though trying to force recollection of
|
|
something all but forgotten which the new words suggested, and then,
|
|
to her own astonishment as well as to that of her teacher she had
|
|
used other French words than those in the lessons--used them
|
|
properly and with a pronunciation that the English woman knew
|
|
was more perfect than her own; but Meriem could neither read
|
|
nor write what she spoke so well, and as My Dear considered a
|
|
knowledge of correct English of the first importance,
|
|
other than conversational French was postponed for a later day.
|
|
|
|
"You doubtless heard French spoken at times in your father's douar,"
|
|
suggested My Dear, as the most reasonable explanation.
|
|
|
|
Meriem shook her head.
|
|
|
|
"It may be," she said, "but I do not recall ever having seen
|
|
a Frenchman in my father's company--he hated them and would
|
|
have nothing whatever to do with them, and I am quite sure that
|
|
I never heard any of these words before, yet at the same time I
|
|
find them all familiar. I cannot understand it."
|
|
|
|
"Neither can I," agreed My Dear.
|
|
|
|
It was about this time that a runner brought a letter that,
|
|
when she learned the contents, filled Meriem with excitement.
|
|
Visitors were coming! A number of English ladies and gentlemen
|
|
had accepted My Dear's invitation to spend a month of hunting
|
|
and exploring with them. Meriem was all expectancy. What would
|
|
these strangers be like? Would they be as nice to her as had
|
|
Bwana and My Dear, or would they be like the other white folk
|
|
she had known--cruel and relentless. My Dear assured her that
|
|
they all were gentle folk and that she would find them kind,
|
|
considerate and honorable.
|
|
|
|
To My Dear's surprise there was none of the shyness of the
|
|
wild creature in Meriem's anticipation of the visit of strangers.
|
|
|
|
She looked forward to their coming with curiosity and with a
|
|
certain pleasurable anticipation when once she was assured that
|
|
they would not bite her. In fact she appeared no different than
|
|
would any pretty young miss who had learned of the expected
|
|
coming of company.
|
|
|
|
Korak's image was still often in her thoughts, but it aroused
|
|
now a less well-defined sense of bereavement. A quiet sadness
|
|
pervaded Meriem when she thought of him; but the poignant
|
|
grief of her loss when it was young no longer goaded her
|
|
to desperation. Yet she was still loyal to him. She still hoped
|
|
that some day he would find her, nor did she doubt for a moment
|
|
but that he was searching for her if he still lived. It was this
|
|
last suggestion that caused her the greatest perturbation.
|
|
Korak might be dead. It scarce seemed possible that one so
|
|
well-equipped to meet the emergencies of jungle life should have
|
|
succumbed so young; yet when she had last seen him he had been
|
|
beset by a horde of armed warriors, and should he have returned
|
|
to the village again, as she well knew he must have, he may have
|
|
been killed. Even her Korak could not, single handed, slay an
|
|
entire tribe.
|
|
|
|
At last the visitors arrived. There were three men and two
|
|
women--the wives of the two older men. The youngest member
|
|
of the party was Hon. Morison Baynes, a young man of considerable
|
|
wealth who, having exhausted all the possibilities for pleasure
|
|
offered by the capitals of Europe, had gladly seized upon this
|
|
opportunity to turn to another continent for excitement
|
|
and adventure.
|
|
|
|
He looked upon all things un-European as rather more than
|
|
less impossible, still he was not at all averse to enjoying
|
|
the novelty of unaccustomed places, and making the most of
|
|
strangers indigenous thereto, however unspeakable they might
|
|
have seemed to him at home. In manner he was suave and courteous
|
|
to all--if possible a trifle more punctilious toward those
|
|
he considered of meaner clay than toward the few he mentally
|
|
admitted to equality.
|
|
|
|
Nature had favored him with a splendid physique and a handsome
|
|
face, and also with sufficient good judgment to appreciate
|
|
that while he might enjoy the contemplation of his superiority
|
|
to the masses, there was little likelihood of the masses being
|
|
equally entranced by the same cause. And so he easily maintained
|
|
the reputation of being a most democratic and likeable fellow,
|
|
and indeed he was likable. Just a shade of his egotism was
|
|
occasionally apparent--never sufficient to become a burden
|
|
to his associates. And this, briefly, was the Hon. Morison Baynes
|
|
of luxurious European civilization. What would be the Hon.
|
|
Morison Baynes of central Africa it were difficult to guess.
|
|
|
|
Meriem, at first, was shy and reserved in the presence of
|
|
the strangers. Her benefactors had seen fit to ignore mention
|
|
of her strange past, and so she passed as their ward whose
|
|
antecedents not having been mentioned were not to be inquired into.
|
|
The guests found her sweet and unassuming, laughing, vivacious and
|
|
a never exhausted storehouse of quaint and interesting jungle lore.
|
|
|
|
She had ridden much during her year with Bwana and My Dear.
|
|
She knew each favorite clump of concealing reeds along the river
|
|
that the buffalo loved best. She knew a dozen places where lions
|
|
laired, and every drinking hole in the drier country twenty-five
|
|
miles back from the river. With unerring precision that was almost
|
|
uncanny she could track the largest or the smallest beast to his
|
|
hiding place. But the thing that baffled them all was her instant
|
|
consciousness of the presence of carnivora that others, exerting
|
|
their faculties to the utmost, could neither see nor hear.
|
|
|
|
The Hon. Morison Baynes found Meriem a most beautiful and
|
|
charming companion. He was delighted with her from the first.
|
|
Particularly so, it is possible, because he had not thought to
|
|
find companionship of this sort upon the African estate of his
|
|
London friends. They were together a great deal as they were
|
|
the only unmarried couple in the little company. Meriem, entirely
|
|
unaccustomed to the companionship of such as Baynes, was
|
|
fascinated by him. His tales of the great, gay cities with
|
|
which he was familiar filled her with admiration and with wonder.
|
|
If the Hon. Morison always shone to advantage in these
|
|
narratives Meriem saw in that fact but a most natural consequence
|
|
to his presence upon the scene of his story--wherever Morison
|
|
might be he must be a hero; so thought the girl.
|
|
|
|
With the actual presence and companionship of the young
|
|
Englishman the image of Korak became less real. Where before
|
|
it had been an actuality to her she now realized that Korak was
|
|
but a memory. To that memory she still was loyal; but what
|
|
weight has a memory in the presence of a fascinating reality?
|
|
|
|
Meriem had never accompanied the men upon a hunt since the
|
|
arrival of the guests. She never had cared particularly for the
|
|
sport of killing. The tracking she enjoyed; but the mere killing
|
|
for the sake of killing she could not find pleasure in--little
|
|
savage that she had been, and still, to some measure, was.
|
|
When Bwana had gone forth to shoot for meat she had always been
|
|
his enthusiastic companion; but with the coming of the London
|
|
guests the hunting had deteriorated into mere killing. Slaughter the
|
|
host would not permit; yet the purpose of the hunts were for heads
|
|
and skins and not for food. So Meriem remained behind and spent
|
|
her days either with My Dear upon the shaded verandah, or riding
|
|
her favorite pony across the plains or to the forest edge.
|
|
Here she would leave him untethered while she took to the trees
|
|
for the moment's unalloyed pleasures of a return to the wild,
|
|
free existence of her earlier childhood.
|
|
|
|
Then would come again visions of Korak, and, tired at last
|
|
of leaping and swinging through the trees, she would stretch
|
|
herself comfortably upon a branch and dream. And presently,
|
|
as today, she found the features of Korak slowly dissolve and
|
|
merge into those of another, and the figure of a tanned, half-
|
|
naked tarmangani become a khaki clothed Englishman astride
|
|
a hunting pony.
|
|
|
|
And while she dreamed there came to her ears from a distance,
|
|
faintly, the terrified bleating of a kid. Meriem was
|
|
instantly alert. You or I, even had we been able to hear the
|
|
pitiful wail at so great distance, could not have interpreted it;
|
|
but to Meriem it meant a species of terror that afflicts the
|
|
ruminant when a carnivore is near and escape impossible.
|
|
|
|
It had been both a pleasure and a sport of Korak's to rob Numa
|
|
of his prey whenever possible, and Meriem too had often enjoyed
|
|
in the thrill of snatching some dainty morsel almost from the
|
|
very jaws of the king of beasts. Now, at the sound of the kid's
|
|
bleat, all the well remembered thrills recurred. Instantly she
|
|
was all excitement to play again the game of hide and seek with death.
|
|
|
|
Quickly she loosened her riding skirt and tossed it aside--it
|
|
was a heavy handicap to successful travel in the trees. Her boots
|
|
and stockings followed the skirt, for the bare sole of the human
|
|
foot does not slip upon dry or even wet bark as does the hard
|
|
leather of a boot. She would have liked to discard her riding
|
|
breeches also, but the motherly admonitions of My Dear had
|
|
convinced Meriem that it was not good form to go naked through
|
|
the world.
|
|
|
|
At her hip hung a hunting knife. Her rifle was still in its boot
|
|
at her pony's withers. Her revolver she had not brought.
|
|
|
|
The kid was still bleating as Meriem started rapidly in its
|
|
direction, which she knew was straight toward a certain water
|
|
hole which had once been famous as a rendezvous for lions.
|
|
Of late there had been no evidence of carnivora in the neighborhood
|
|
of this drinking place; but Meriem was positive that the bleating
|
|
of the kid was due to the presence of either lion or panther.
|
|
|
|
But she would soon know, for she was rapidly approaching
|
|
the terrified animal. She wondered as she hastened onward that
|
|
the sounds continued to come from the same point. Why did the
|
|
kid not run away? And then she came in sight of the little
|
|
animal and knew. The kid was tethered to a stake beside
|
|
the waterhole.
|
|
|
|
Meriem paused in the branches of a near-by tree and scanned
|
|
the surrounding clearing with quick, penetrating eyes. Where was
|
|
the hunter? Bwana and his people did not hunt thus. Who could
|
|
have tethered this poor little beast as a lure to Numa?
|
|
Bwana never countenanced such acts in his country and his word
|
|
was law among those who hunted within a radius of many miles
|
|
of his estate.
|
|
|
|
Some wandering savages, doubtless, thought Meriem; but
|
|
where were they? Not even her keen eyes could discover them.
|
|
And where was Numa? Why had he not long since sprung upon
|
|
this delicious and defenseless morsel? That he was close by was
|
|
attested by the pitiful crying of the kid. Ah! Now she saw him.
|
|
He was lying close in a clump of brush a few yards to her right.
|
|
The kid was down wind from him and getting the full benefit of
|
|
his terrorizing scent, which did not reach Meriem.
|
|
|
|
To circle to the opposite side of the clearing where the trees
|
|
approached closer to the kid. To leap quickly to the little
|
|
animal's side and cut the tether that held him would be the work
|
|
of but a moment. In that moment Numa might charge, and then
|
|
there would be scarce time to regain the safety of the trees, yet
|
|
it might be done. Meriem had escaped from closer quarters than
|
|
that many times before.
|
|
|
|
The doubt that gave her momentary pause was caused by fear
|
|
of the unseen hunters more than by fear of Numa. If they were
|
|
stranger blacks the spears that they held in readiness for Numa
|
|
might as readily be loosed upon whomever dared release their
|
|
bait as upon the prey they sought thus to trap. Again the kid
|
|
struggled to be free. Again his piteous wail touched the tender
|
|
heart strings of the girl. Tossing discretion aside, she
|
|
commenced to circle the clearing. Only from Numa did she attempt
|
|
to conceal her presence. At last she reached the opposite trees.
|
|
An instant she paused to look toward the great lion, and at the
|
|
same moment she saw the huge beast rise slowly to his full height.
|
|
A low roar betokened that he was ready.
|
|
|
|
Meriem loosened her knife and leaped to the ground. A quick
|
|
run brought her to the side of the kid. Numa saw her. He lashed
|
|
his tail against his tawny sides. He roared terribly; but, for an
|
|
instant, he remained where he stood--surprised into inaction,
|
|
doubtless, by the strange apparition that had sprung so unexpectedly
|
|
from the jungle.
|
|
|
|
Other eyes were upon Meriem, too--eyes in which were no less
|
|
surprise than that reflected in the yellow-green orbs of the carnivore.
|
|
A white man, hiding in a thorn boma, half rose as the young girl leaped
|
|
into the clearing and dashed toward the kid. He saw Numa hesitate.
|
|
He raised his rifle and covered the beast's breast. The girl reached
|
|
the kid's side. Her knife flashed, and the little prisoner was free.
|
|
With a parting bleat it dashed off into the jungle. Then the girl
|
|
turned to retreat toward the safety of the tree from which she had
|
|
dropped so suddenly and unexpectedly into the surprised view of the lion,
|
|
the kid and the man.
|
|
|
|
As she turned the girl's face was turned toward the hunter.
|
|
His eyes went wide as he saw her features. He gave a little gasp
|
|
of surprise; but now the lion demanded all his attention--the
|
|
baffled, angry beast was charging. His breast was still covered
|
|
by the motionless rifle. The man could have fired and stopped
|
|
the charge at once; but for some reason, since he had seen the
|
|
girl's face, he hesitated. Could it be that he did not care to
|
|
save her? Or, did he prefer, if possible, to remain unseen by her?
|
|
It must have been the latter cause which kept the trigger finger of
|
|
the steady hand from exerting the little pressure that would have
|
|
brought the great beast to at least a temporary pause.
|
|
|
|
Like an eagle the man watched the race for life the girl
|
|
was making. A second or two measured the time which the whole
|
|
exciting event consumed from the moment that the lion broke
|
|
into his charge. Nor once did the rifle sights fail to cover the
|
|
broad breast of the tawny sire as the lion's course took him a
|
|
little to the man's left. Once, at the very last moment, when
|
|
escape seemed impossible, the hunter's finger tightened ever so
|
|
little upon the trigger, but almost coincidentally the girl leaped
|
|
for an over hanging branch and seized it. The lion leaped too;
|
|
but the nimble Meriem had swung herself beyond his reach
|
|
without a second or an inch to spare.
|
|
|
|
The man breathed a sigh of relief as he lowered his rifle.
|
|
He saw the girl fling a grimace at the angry, roaring, maneater
|
|
beneath her, and then, laughing, speed away into the forest.
|
|
For an hour the lion remained about the water hole. A hundred times
|
|
could the hunter have bagged his prey. Why did he fail to do so?
|
|
Was he afraid that the shot might attract the girl and cause her
|
|
to return?
|
|
|
|
At last Numa, still roaring angrily, strode majestically into
|
|
the jungle. The hunter crawled from his boma, and half
|
|
an hour later was entering a little camp snugly hidden in
|
|
the forest. A handful of black followers greeted his return
|
|
with sullen indifference. He was a great bearded man, a huge,
|
|
yellow-bearded giant, when he entered his tent. Half an hour
|
|
later he emerged smooth shaven.
|
|
|
|
His blacks looked at him in astonishment.
|
|
|
|
"Would you know me?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"The hyena that bore you would not know you, Bwana," replied one.
|
|
|
|
The man aimed a heavy fist at the black's face; but long
|
|
experience in dodging similar blows saved the presumptuous one.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 17
|
|
|
|
Meriem returned slowly toward the tree in which she had left
|
|
her skirt, her shoes and her stockings. She was singing
|
|
blithely; but her song came to a sudden stop when she came
|
|
within sight of the tree, for there, disporting themselves
|
|
with glee and pulling and hauling upon her belongings, were a
|
|
number of baboons. When they saw her they showed no signs
|
|
of terror. Instead they bared their fangs and growled at her.
|
|
What was there to fear in a single she-Tarmangani?
|
|
Nothing, absolutely nothing.
|
|
|
|
In the open plain beyond the forest the hunters were returning
|
|
from the day's sport. They were widely separated, hoping to
|
|
raise a wandering lion on the homeward journey across the plain.
|
|
The Hon. Morison Baynes rode closest to the forest. As his eyes
|
|
wandered back and forth across the undulating, shrub sprinkled
|
|
ground they fell upon the form of a creature close beside the
|
|
thick jungle where it terminated abruptly at the plain's edge.
|
|
|
|
He reined his mount in the direction of his discovery. It was
|
|
yet too far away for his untrained eyes to recognize it; but as
|
|
he came closer he saw that it was a horse, and was about to resume
|
|
the original direction of his way when he thought that he discerned
|
|
a saddle upon the beast's back. He rode a little closer. Yes, the
|
|
animal was saddled. The Hon. Morison approached yet nearer, and as
|
|
he did so his eyes expressed a pleasurable emotion of anticipation,
|
|
for they had now recognized the pony as the special favorite of Meriem.
|
|
|
|
He galloped to the animal's side. Meriem must be within the wood.
|
|
The man shuddered a little at the thought of an unprotected girl
|
|
alone in the jungle that was still, to him, a fearful place of
|
|
terrors and stealthily stalking death. He dismounted and
|
|
left his horse beside Meriem's. On foot he entered the jungle.
|
|
He knew that she was probably safe enough and he wished to
|
|
surprise her by coming suddenly upon her.
|
|
|
|
He had gone but a short distance into the wood when he heard
|
|
a great jabbering in a near-by tree. Coming closer he saw a band
|
|
of baboons snarling over something. Looking intently he saw
|
|
that one of them held a woman's riding skirt and that others had
|
|
boots and stockings. His heart almost ceased to beat as he quite
|
|
naturally placed the most direful explanation upon the scene.
|
|
The baboons had killed Meriem and stripped this clothing from
|
|
her body. Morison shuddered.
|
|
|
|
He was about to call aloud in the hope that after all the girl
|
|
still lived when he saw her in a tree close beside that was
|
|
occupied by the baboons, and now he saw that they were snarling
|
|
and jabbering at her. To his amazement he saw the girl swing,
|
|
ape-like, into the tree below the huge beasts. He saw her pause
|
|
upon a branch a few feet from the nearest baboon. He was about
|
|
to raise his rifle and put a bullet through the hideous creature
|
|
that seemed about to leap upon her when he heard the girl speak.
|
|
He almost dropped his rifle from surprise as a strange jabbering,
|
|
identical with that of the apes, broke from Meriem's lips.
|
|
|
|
The baboons stopped their snarling and listened. It was quite
|
|
evident that they were as much surprised as the Hon. Morison Baynes.
|
|
Slowly and one by one they approached the girl. She gave not
|
|
the slightest evidence of fear of them. They quite surrounded
|
|
her now so that Baynes could not have fired without endangering
|
|
the girl's life; but he no longer desired to fire. He was
|
|
consumed with curiosity.
|
|
|
|
For several minutes the girl carried on what could be nothing
|
|
less than a conversation with the baboons, and then with seeming
|
|
alacrity every article of her apparel in their possession was
|
|
handed over to her. The baboons still crowded eagerly about her
|
|
as she donned them. They chattered to her and she chattered back.
|
|
The Hon. Morison Baynes sat down at the foot of a tree and mopped
|
|
his perspiring brow. Then he rose and made his way back to his mount.
|
|
|
|
When Meriem emerged from the forest a few minutes later
|
|
she found him there, and he eyed her with wide eyes in which
|
|
were both wonder and a sort of terror.
|
|
|
|
"I saw your horse here," he explained, "and thought that I
|
|
would wait and ride home with you--you do not mind?"
|
|
|
|
"Of course not," she replied. "It will be lovely."
|
|
|
|
As they made their way stirrup to stirrup across the plain the
|
|
Hon. Morison caught himself many times watching the girl's
|
|
regular profile and wondering if his eyes had deceived him or
|
|
if, in truth, he really had seen this lovely creature consorting
|
|
with grotesque baboons and conversing with them as fluently as
|
|
she conversed with him. The thing was uncanny--impossible;
|
|
yet he had seen it with his own eyes.
|
|
|
|
And as he watched her another thought persisted in obtruding
|
|
itself into his mind. She was most beautiful and very desirable;
|
|
but what did he know of her? Was she not altogether impossible?
|
|
Was the scene that he had but just witnessed not sufficient proof
|
|
of her impossibility? A woman who climbed trees and conversed
|
|
with the baboons of the jungle! It was quite horrible!
|
|
|
|
Again the Hon. Morison mopped his brow. Meriem glanced
|
|
toward him.
|
|
|
|
"You are warm," she said. "Now that the sun is setting I
|
|
find it quite cool. Why do you perspire now?"
|
|
|
|
He had not intended to let her know that he had seen her with
|
|
the baboons; but quite suddenly, before he realized what he was
|
|
saying, he had blurted it out.
|
|
|
|
"I perspire from emotion," he said. "I went into the jungle
|
|
when I discovered your pony. I wanted to surprise you; but it
|
|
was I who was surprised. I saw you in the trees with the baboons."
|
|
|
|
"Yes?" she said quite unemotionally, as though it was a matter
|
|
of little moment that a young girl should be upon intimate
|
|
terms with savage jungle beasts.
|
|
|
|
"It was horrible!" ejaculated the Hon. Morison.
|
|
|
|
"Horrible?" repeated Meriem, puckering her brows in bewilderment.
|
|
"What was horrible about it? They are my friends. Is it horrible
|
|
to talk with one's friends?"
|
|
|
|
"You were really talking with them, then?" cried the Hon. Morison.
|
|
"You understood them and they understood you?"
|
|
|
|
"Certainly."
|
|
|
|
"But they are hideous creatures--degraded beasts of a lower order.
|
|
How could you speak the language of beasts?"
|
|
|
|
"They are not hideous, and they are not degraded," replied Meriem.
|
|
"Friends are never that. I lived among them for years
|
|
before Bwana found me and brought me here. I scarce knew
|
|
any other tongue than that of the mangani. Should I refuse to
|
|
know them now simply because I happen, for the present, to
|
|
live among humans?"
|
|
|
|
"For the present!" ejaculated the Hon. Morison. "You cannot mean
|
|
that you expect to return to live among them? Come, come, what
|
|
foolishness are we talking! The very idea! You are spoofing me,
|
|
Miss Meriem. You have been kind to these baboons here and they
|
|
know you and do not molest you; but that you once lived among
|
|
them--no, that is preposterous."
|
|
|
|
"But I did, though," insisted the girl, seeing the real horror
|
|
that the man felt in the presence of such an idea reflected in his
|
|
tone and manner, and rather enjoying baiting him still further.
|
|
"Yes, I lived, almost naked, among the great apes and the lesser apes.
|
|
I dwelt among the branches of the trees. I pounced upon the
|
|
smaller prey and devoured it--raw. With Korak and A'ht I
|
|
hunted the antelope and the boar, and I sat upon a tree limb and
|
|
made faces at Numa, the lion, and threw sticks at him and annoyed
|
|
him until he roared so terribly in his rage that the earth shook.
|
|
|
|
"And Korak built me a lair high among the branches of a
|
|
mighty tree. He brought me fruits and flesh. He fought for me
|
|
and was kind to me--until I came to Bwana and My Dear I do
|
|
not recall that any other than Korak was ever kind to me."
|
|
There was a wistful note in the girl's voice now and she had
|
|
forgotten that she was bantering the Hon. Morison. She was
|
|
thinking of Korak. She had not thought of him a great deal
|
|
of late.
|
|
|
|
For a time both were silently absorbed in their own reflections
|
|
as they rode on toward the bungalow of their host. The girl was
|
|
thinking of a god-like figure, a leopard skin half concealing his
|
|
smooth, brown hide as he leaped nimbly through the trees to
|
|
lay an offering of food before her on his return from a
|
|
successful hunt. Behind him, shaggy and powerful, swung a
|
|
huge anthropoid ape, while she, Meriem, laughing and shouting
|
|
her welcome, swung upon a swaying limb before the entrance to her
|
|
sylvan bower. It was a pretty picture as she recalled it. The other
|
|
side seldom obtruded itself upon her memory--the long, black
|
|
nights--the chill, terrible jungle nights--the cold and damp and
|
|
discomfort of the rainy season--the hideous mouthings of the
|
|
savage carnivora as they prowled through the Stygian darkness
|
|
beneath--the constant menace of Sheeta, the panther, and Histah, the snake--the stinging
|
|
insects--the loathesome vermin. For, in truth,
|
|
all these had been outweighed by the happiness of the sunny days,
|
|
the freedom of it all, and, most, the companionship of Korak.
|
|
|
|
The man's thoughts were rather jumbled. He had suddenly
|
|
realized that he had come mighty near falling in love with this
|
|
girl of whom he had known nothing up to the previous moment
|
|
when she had voluntarily revealed a portion of her past to him.
|
|
The more he thought upon the matter the more evident it became
|
|
to him that he had given her his love--that he had been upon the
|
|
verge of offering her his honorable name. He trembled a little
|
|
at the narrowness of his escape. Yet, he still loved her.
|
|
There was no objection to that according to the ethics of the
|
|
Hon. Morison Baynes and his kind. She was a meaner clay than he.
|
|
He could no more have taken her in marriage than he could have
|
|
taken one of her baboon friends, nor would she, of course,
|
|
expect such an offer from him. To have his love would be
|
|
sufficient honor for her--his name he would, naturally, bestow
|
|
upon one in his own elevated social sphere.
|
|
|
|
A girl who had consorted with apes, who, according to her
|
|
own admission, had lived almost naked among them, could have
|
|
no considerable sense of the finer qualities of virtue. The love
|
|
that he would offer her, then, would, far from offending her,
|
|
probably cover all that she might desire or expect.
|
|
|
|
The more the Hon. Morison Baynes thought upon the subject
|
|
the more fully convinced he became that he was contemplating
|
|
a most chivalrous and unselfish act. Europeans will better
|
|
understand his point of view than Americans, poor, benighted
|
|
provincials, who are denied a true appreciation of caste and of
|
|
the fact that "the king can do no wrong." He did not even have
|
|
to argue the point that she would be much happier amidst the
|
|
luxuries of a London apartment, fortified as she would be by
|
|
both his love and his bank account, than lawfully wed to such a
|
|
one as her social position warranted. There was one question
|
|
however, which he wished to have definitely answered before
|
|
he committed himself even to the program he was considering.
|
|
|
|
"Who were Korak and A'ht?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"A'ht was a Mangani," replied Meriem, "and Korak a Tarmangani."
|
|
|
|
"And what, pray, might a Mangani be, and a Tarmangani?"
|
|
|
|
The girl laughed.
|
|
|
|
"You are a Tarmangani," she replied. "The Mangani are covered
|
|
with hair--you would call them apes."
|
|
|
|
"Then Korak was a white man?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"And he was--ah--your--er--your--?" He paused, for he found
|
|
it rather difficult to go on with that line of questioning
|
|
while the girl's clear, beautiful eyes were looking straight
|
|
into his.
|
|
|
|
"My what?" insisted Meriem, far too unsophisticated in her
|
|
unspoiled innocence to guess what the Hon. Morison was driving at.
|
|
|
|
"Why--ah--your brother?" he stumbled.
|
|
|
|
"No, Korak was not my brother," she replied.
|
|
|
|
"Was he your husband, then?" he finally blurted.
|
|
|
|
Far from taking offense, Meriem broke into a merry laugh.
|
|
|
|
"My husband!" she cried. "Why how old do you think I am?
|
|
I am too young to have a husband. I had never thought of such
|
|
a thing. Korak was--why--," and now she hesitated, too, for
|
|
she never before had attempted to analyse the relationship that
|
|
existed between herself and Korak--"why, Korak was just Korak,"
|
|
and again she broke into a gay laugh as she realized the
|
|
illuminating quality of her description.
|
|
|
|
Looking at her and listening to her the man beside her could
|
|
not believe that depravity of any sort or degree entered into the
|
|
girl's nature, yet he wanted to believe that she had not been
|
|
virtuous, for otherwise his task was less a sinecure--the Hon.
|
|
Morison was not entirely without conscience.
|
|
|
|
For several days the Hon. Morison made no appreciable progress
|
|
toward the consummation of his scheme. Sometimes he almost
|
|
abandoned it for he found himself time and again wondering how
|
|
slight might be the provocation necessary to trick him into
|
|
making a bona-fide offer of marriage to Meriem if he permitted
|
|
himself to fall more deeply in love with her, and it was
|
|
difficult to see her daily and not love her. There was a
|
|
quality about her which, all unknown to the Hon. Morison, was
|
|
making his task an extremely difficult one--it was that quality
|
|
of innate goodness and cleanness which is a good girl's stoutest
|
|
bulwark and protection--an impregnable barrier that only
|
|
degeneracy has the effrontery to assail. The Hon. Morison Baynes
|
|
would never be considered a degenerate.
|
|
|
|
He was sitting with Meriem upon the verandah one evening after
|
|
the others had retired. Earlier they had been playing tennis--
|
|
a game in which the Hon. Morison shone to advantage, as, in truth,
|
|
he did in most all manly sports. He was telling Meriem stories
|
|
of London and Paris, of balls and banquets, of the wonderful women
|
|
and their wonderful gowns, of the pleasures and pastimes of the
|
|
rich and powerful. The Hon. Morison was a past master in the
|
|
art of insidious boasting. His egotism was never flagrant or
|
|
tiresome--he was never crude in it, for crudeness was a
|
|
plebeianism that the Hon. Morison studiously avoided, yet
|
|
the impression derived by a listener to the Hon. Morison was
|
|
one that was not at all calculated to detract from the glory of
|
|
the house of Baynes, or from that of its representative.
|
|
|
|
Meriem was entranced. His tales were like fairy stories to this
|
|
little jungle maid. The Hon. Morison loomed large and wonderful
|
|
and magnificent in her mind's eye. He fascinated her, and
|
|
when he drew closer to her after a short silence and took her
|
|
hand she thrilled as one might thrill beneath the touch of a
|
|
deity--a thrill of exaltation not unmixed with fear.
|
|
|
|
He bent his lips close to her ear.
|
|
|
|
"Meriem!" he whispered. "My little Meriem! May I hope
|
|
to have the right to call you `my little Meriem'?"
|
|
|
|
The girl turned wide eyes upward to his face; but it was
|
|
in shadow. She trembled but she did not draw away. The man
|
|
put an arm about her and drew her closer.
|
|
|
|
"I love you!" he whispered.
|
|
|
|
She did not reply. She did not know what to say. She knew
|
|
nothing of love. She had never given it a thought; but she did
|
|
know that it was very nice to be loved, whatever it meant.
|
|
It was nice to have people kind to one. She had known so
|
|
little of kindness or affection.
|
|
|
|
"Tell me," he said, "that you return my love."
|
|
|
|
His lips came steadily closer to hers. They had almost touched
|
|
when a vision of Korak sprang like a miracle before her eyes.
|
|
She saw Korak's face close to hers, she felt his lips hot against
|
|
hers, and then for the first time in her life she guessed what
|
|
love meant. She drew away, gently.
|
|
|
|
"I am not sure," she said, "that I love you. Let us wait.
|
|
There is plenty of time. I am too young to marry yet, and I am
|
|
not sure that I should be happy in London or Paris--they rather
|
|
frighten me."
|
|
|
|
How easily and naturally she had connected his avowal of love
|
|
with the idea of marriage! The Hon. Morison was perfectly
|
|
sure that he had not mentioned marriage--he had been particularly
|
|
careful not to do so. And then she was not sure that she loved him!
|
|
That, too, came rather in the nature of a shock to his vanity.
|
|
It seemed incredible that this little barbarian should have any
|
|
doubts whatever as to the desirability of the Hon. Morison Baynes.
|
|
|
|
The first flush of passion cooled, the Hon. Morison was enabled
|
|
to reason more logically. The start had been all wrong. It would
|
|
be better now to wait and prepare her mind gradually for the
|
|
only proposition which his exalted estate would permit him
|
|
to offer her. He would go slow. He glanced down at the
|
|
girl's profile. It was bathed in the silvery light of the
|
|
great tropic moon. The Hon. Morison Baynes wondered if it were
|
|
to be so easy a matter to "go slow." She was most alluring.
|
|
|
|
Meriem rose. The vision of Korak was still before her.
|
|
|
|
"Good night," she said. "It is almost too beautiful to leave,"
|
|
she waved her hand in a comprehensive gesture which took in
|
|
the starry heavens, the great moon, the broad, silvered plain,
|
|
and the dense shadows in the distance, that marked the jungle.
|
|
"Oh, how I love it!"
|
|
|
|
"You would love London more," he said earnestly. "And London
|
|
would love you. You would be a famous beauty in any capital
|
|
of Europe. You would have the world at your feet, Meriem."
|
|
|
|
"Good night!" she repeated, and left him.
|
|
|
|
The Hon. Morison selected a cigarette from his crested case,
|
|
lighted it, blew a thin line of blue smoke toward the moon,
|
|
and smiled.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 18
|
|
|
|
Meriem and Bwana were sitting on the verandah together the
|
|
following day when a horseman appeared in the distance riding
|
|
across the plain toward the bungalow. Bwana shaded his eyes
|
|
with his hand and gazed out toward the oncoming rider.
|
|
He was puzzled. Strangers were few in Central Africa. Even the
|
|
blacks for a distance of many miles in every direction were well
|
|
known to him. No white man came within a hundred miles that
|
|
word of his coming did not reach Bwana long before the stranger.
|
|
His every move was reported to the big Bwana--just what animals
|
|
he killed and how many of each species, how he killed them,
|
|
too, for Bwana would not permit the use of prussic acid or
|
|
strychnine; and how he treated his "boys."
|
|
|
|
Several European sportsmen had been turned back to the coast
|
|
by the big Englishman's orders because of unwarranted cruelty
|
|
to their black followers, and one, whose name had long been
|
|
heralded in civilized communities as that of a great sportsman,
|
|
was driven from Africa with orders never to return when Bwana
|
|
found that his big bag of fourteen lions had been made by the
|
|
diligent use of poisoned bait.
|
|
|
|
The result was that all good sportsmen and all the natives
|
|
loved and respected him. His word was law where there had
|
|
never been law before. There was scarce a head man from coast
|
|
to coast who would not heed the big Bwana's commands in
|
|
preference to those of the hunters who employed them, and so
|
|
it was easy to turn back any undesirable stranger--Bwana had
|
|
simply to threaten to order his boys to desert him.
|
|
|
|
But there was evidently one who had slipped into the
|
|
country unheralded. Bwana could not imagine who the approaching
|
|
horseman might be. After the manner of frontier hospitality the
|
|
globe round he met the newcomer at the gate, welcoming him
|
|
even before he had dismounted. He saw a tall, well knit man of
|
|
thirty or over, blonde of hair and smooth shaven. There was a
|
|
tantalizing familiarity about him that convinced Bwana that he
|
|
should be able to call the visitor by name, yet he was unable to
|
|
do so. The newcomer was evidently of Scandinavian origin--
|
|
both his appearance and accent denoted that. His manner was
|
|
rough but open. He made a good impression upon the Englishman,
|
|
who was wont to accept strangers in this wild and savage country
|
|
at their own valuation, asking no questions and assuming the best
|
|
of them until they proved themselves undeserving of his friendship
|
|
and hospitality.
|
|
|
|
"It is rather unusual that a white man comes unheralded,"
|
|
he said, as they walked together toward the field into which he
|
|
had suggested that the traveler might turn his pony. "My friends,
|
|
the natives, keep us rather well-posted."
|
|
|
|
"It is probably due to the fact that I came from the south,"
|
|
explained the stranger, "that you did not hear of my coming.
|
|
I have seen no village for several marches."
|
|
|
|
"No, there are none to the south of us for many miles,"
|
|
replied Bwana. "Since Kovudoo deserted his country I rather
|
|
doubt that one could find a native in that direction under two
|
|
or three hundred miles."
|
|
|
|
Bwana was wondering how a lone white man could have made
|
|
his way through the savage, unhospitable miles that lay toward
|
|
the south. As though guessing what must be passing through the
|
|
other's mind, the stranger vouchsafed an explanation.
|
|
|
|
"I came down from the north to do a little trading and hunting,"
|
|
he said, "and got way off the beaten track. My head man,
|
|
who was the only member of the safari who had ever before
|
|
been in the country, took sick and died. We could find no natives
|
|
to guide us, and so I simply swung back straight north. We have
|
|
been living on the fruits of our guns for over a month. Didn't have
|
|
an idea there was a white man within a thousand miles of us when
|
|
we camped last night by a water hole at the edge of the plain.
|
|
This morning I started out to hunt and saw the smoke from your
|
|
chimney, so I sent my gun bearer back to camp with the good news
|
|
and rode straight over here myself. Of course I've heard of
|
|
you--everybody who comes into Central Africa does--and I'd be
|
|
mighty glad of permission to rest up and hunt around here for
|
|
a couple of weeks."
|
|
|
|
"Certainly," replied Bwana. "Move your camp up close to
|
|
the river below my boys' camp and make yourself at home."
|
|
|
|
They had reached the verandah now and Bwana was introducing
|
|
the stranger to Meriem and My Dear, who had just come from
|
|
the bungalow's interior.
|
|
|
|
"This is Mr. Hanson," he said, using the name the man had
|
|
given him. "He is a trader who has lost his way in the jungle
|
|
to the south."
|
|
|
|
My Dear and Meriem bowed their acknowledgments of the introduction.
|
|
The man seemed rather ill at ease in their presence. His host
|
|
attributed this to the fact that his guest was unaccustomed to
|
|
the society of cultured women, and so found a pretext to quickly
|
|
extricate him from his seemingly unpleasant position and lead him
|
|
away to his study and the brandy and soda which were evidently
|
|
much less embarrassing to Mr. Hanson.
|
|
|
|
When the two had left them Meriem turned toward My Dear.
|
|
|
|
"It is odd," she said, "but I could almost swear that I had
|
|
known Mr. Hanson in the past. It is odd, but quite impossible,"
|
|
and she gave the matter no further thought.
|
|
|
|
Hanson did not accept Bwana's invitation to move his camp
|
|
closer to the bungalow. He said his boys were inclined to be
|
|
quarrelsome, and so were better off at a distance; and he,
|
|
himself, was around but little, and then always avoided coming
|
|
into contact with the ladies. A fact which naturally aroused only
|
|
laughing comment on the rough trader's bashfulness. He accompanied
|
|
the men on several hunting trips where they found him perfectly
|
|
at home and well versed in all the finer points of big game hunting.
|
|
Of an evening he often spent much time with the white foreman of
|
|
the big farm, evidently finding in the society of this rougher
|
|
man more common interests than the cultured guests of Bwana
|
|
possessed for him. So it came that his was a familiar figure
|
|
about the premises by night. He came and went as he saw fit,
|
|
often wandering along in the great flower garden that was the
|
|
especial pride and joy of My Dear and Meriem. The first time
|
|
that he had been surprised there he apologized gruffly, explaining
|
|
that he had always been fond of the good old blooms of northern
|
|
Europe which My Dear had so successfully transplanted in African soil.
|
|
|
|
Was it, though, the ever beautiful blossoms of hollyhocks and
|
|
phlox that drew him to the perfumed air of the garden, or that
|
|
other infinitely more beautiful flower who wandered often among
|
|
the blooms beneath the great moon--the black-haired, suntanned Meriem?
|
|
|
|
For three weeks Hanson had remained. During this time he said
|
|
that his boys were resting and gaining strength after their
|
|
terrible ordeals in the untracked jungle to the south; but he had
|
|
not been as idle as he appeared to have been. He divided his
|
|
small following into two parties, entrusting the leadership of
|
|
each to men whom he believed that he could trust. To them he
|
|
explained his plans and the rich reward that they would win
|
|
from him if they carried his designs to a successful conclusion.
|
|
One party he moved very slowly northward along the trail that
|
|
connects with the great caravan routes entering the Sahara from
|
|
the south. The other he ordered straight westward with orders to
|
|
halt and go into permanent camp just beyond the great river
|
|
which marks the natural boundary of the country that the big
|
|
Bwana rightfully considers almost his own.
|
|
|
|
To his host he explained that he was moving his safari slowly
|
|
toward the north--he said nothing of the party moving westward.
|
|
Then, one day, he announced that half his boys had deserted, for
|
|
a hunting party from the bungalow had come across his northerly
|
|
camp and he feared that they might have noticed the reduced numbers
|
|
of his following.
|
|
|
|
And thus matters stood when, one hot night, Meriem, unable
|
|
to sleep, rose and wandered out into the garden. The Hon.
|
|
Morison had been urging his suit once more that evening, and the
|
|
girl's mind was in such a turmoil that she had been unable to sleep.
|
|
|
|
The wide heavens about her seemed to promise a greater freedom
|
|
from doubt and questioning. Baynes had urged her to tell
|
|
him that she loved him. A dozen times she thought that she
|
|
might honestly give him the answer that he demanded. Korak fast
|
|
was becoming but a memory. That he was dead she had come to
|
|
believe, since otherwise he would have sought her out. She did
|
|
not know that he had even better reason to believe her dead,
|
|
and that it was because of that belief he had made no effort
|
|
to find her after his raid upon the village of Kovudoo.
|
|
|
|
Behind a great flowering shrub Hanson lay gazing at the stars
|
|
and waiting. He had lain thus and there many nights before.
|
|
For what was he waiting, or for whom? He heard the girl
|
|
approaching, and half raised himself to his elbow. A dozen
|
|
paces away, the reins looped over a fence post, stood his pony.
|
|
|
|
Meriem, walking slowly, approached the bush behind which the
|
|
waiter lay. Hanson drew a large bandanna handkerchief from
|
|
his pocket and rose stealthily to his knees. A pony neighed
|
|
down at the corrals. Far out across the plain a lion roared.
|
|
Hanson changed his position until he squatted upon both feet,
|
|
ready to come erect quickly.
|
|
|
|
Again the pony neighed--this time closer. There was the
|
|
sound of his body brushing against shrubbery. Hanson heard
|
|
and wondered how the animal had gotten from the corral, for it
|
|
was evident that he was already in the garden. The man turned
|
|
his head in the direction of the beast. What he saw sent him to
|
|
the ground, huddled close beneath the shrubbery--a man was
|
|
coming, leading two ponies.
|
|
|
|
Meriem heard now and stopped to look and listen. A moment
|
|
later the Hon. Morison Baynes drew near, the two saddled
|
|
mounts at his heels.
|
|
|
|
Meriem looked up at him in surprise. The Hon. Morison
|
|
grinned sheepishly.
|
|
|
|
"I couldn't sleep," he explained, "and was going for a bit of
|
|
a ride when I chanced to see you out here, and I thought you'd
|
|
like to join me. Ripping good sport, you know, night riding.
|
|
Come on."
|
|
|
|
Meriem laughed. The adventure appealed to her.
|
|
|
|
"All right," she said.
|
|
|
|
Hanson swore beneath his breath. The two led their horses
|
|
from the garden to the gate and through it. There they
|
|
discovered Hanson's mount.
|
|
|
|
"Why here's the trader's pony," remarked Baynes.
|
|
|
|
"He's probably down visiting with the foreman," said Meriem.
|
|
|
|
"Pretty late for him, isn't it?" remarked the Hon. Morison.
|
|
"I'd hate to have to ride back through that jungle at night
|
|
to his camp."
|
|
|
|
As though to give weight to his apprehensions the distant lion
|
|
roared again. The Hon. Morison shivered and glanced at the
|
|
girl to note the effect of the uncanny sound upon her.
|
|
She appeared not to have noticed it.
|
|
|
|
A moment later the two had mounted and were moving slowly
|
|
across the moon-bathed plain. The girl turned her pony's head
|
|
straight toward the jungle. It was in the direction of the roaring
|
|
of the hungry lion.
|
|
|
|
"Hadn't we better steer clear of that fellow?" suggested the
|
|
Hon. Morison. "I guess you didn't hear him."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I heard him," laughed Meriem. "Let's ride over and
|
|
call on him."
|
|
|
|
The Hon. Morison laughed uneasily. He didn't care to appear
|
|
at a disadvantage before this girl, nor did he care, either, to
|
|
approach a hungry lion too closely at night. He carried his rifle
|
|
in his saddle boot; but moonlight is an uncertain light to shoot
|
|
by, nor ever had he faced a lion alone--even by day. The thought
|
|
gave him a distinct nausea. The beast ceased his roaring now.
|
|
They heard him no more and the Hon. Morison gained courage accordingly.
|
|
They were riding down wind toward the jungle. The lion lay in a
|
|
little swale to their right. He was old. For two nights he had
|
|
not fed, for no longer was his charge as swift or his spring as
|
|
mighty as in the days of his prime when he spread terror among
|
|
the creatures of his wild domain. For two nights and days he had
|
|
gone empty, and for long time before that he had fed only
|
|
upon carrion. He was old; but he was yet a terrible engine
|
|
of destruction.
|
|
|
|
At the edge of the forest the Hon. Morison drew rein. He had
|
|
no desire to go further. Numa, silent upon his padded feet, crept
|
|
into the jungle beyond them. The wind, now, was blowing gently
|
|
between him and his intended prey. He had come a long way in
|
|
search of man, for even in his youth he had tasted human flesh
|
|
and while it was poor stuff by comparison with eland and zebra
|
|
it was less difficult to kill. In Numa's estimation man was a
|
|
slow-witted, slow-footed creature which commanded no respect
|
|
unless accompanied by the acrid odor which spelled to the
|
|
monarch's sensitive nostrils the great noise and the blinding flash
|
|
of an express rifle.
|
|
|
|
He caught the dangerous scent tonight; but he was ravenous
|
|
to madness. He would face a dozen rifles, if necessary, to fill
|
|
his empty belly. He circled about into the forest that he might
|
|
again be down wind from his victims, for should they get his
|
|
scent he could not hope to overtake them. Numa was famished;
|
|
but he was old and crafty.
|
|
|
|
Deep in the jungle another caught faintly the scent of man
|
|
and of Numa both. He raised his head and sniffed. He cocked
|
|
it upon one side and listened.
|
|
|
|
"Come on," said Meriem, "let's ride in a way--the forest is
|
|
wonderful at night. It is open enough to permit us to ride."
|
|
|
|
The Hon. Morison hesitated. He shrank from revealing his
|
|
fear in the presence of the girl. A braver man, sure of his own
|
|
position, would have had the courage to have refused uselessly
|
|
to expose the girl to danger. He would not have thought of himself
|
|
at all; but the egotism of the Hon. Morison required that he
|
|
think always of self first. He had planned the ride to get Meriem
|
|
away from the bungalow. He wanted to talk to her alone and far
|
|
enough away so should she take offense at his purposed suggestion
|
|
he would have time in which to attempt to right himself in her
|
|
eyes before they reached home. He had little doubt, of course,
|
|
but that he should succeed; but it is to his credit that he did
|
|
have some slight doubts.
|
|
|
|
"You needn't be afraid of the lion," said Meriem, noting his
|
|
slight hesitancy. "There hasn't been a man eater around here
|
|
for two years, Bwana says, and the game is so plentiful that
|
|
there is no necessity to drive Numa to human flesh. Then, he
|
|
has been so often hunted that he rather keeps out of man's way."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, I'm not afraid of lions," replied the Hon. Morison. "I was
|
|
just thinking what a beastly uncomfortable place a forest is
|
|
to ride in. What with the underbrush and the low branches and
|
|
all that, you know, it's not exactly cut out for pleasure riding."
|
|
|
|
"Let's go a-foot then," suggested Meriem, and started to dismount.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, no," cried the Hon. Morison, aghast at this suggestion.
|
|
"Let's ride," and he reined his pony into the dark shadows of
|
|
the wood. Behind him came Meriem and in front, prowling
|
|
ahead waiting a favorable opportunity, skulked Numa, the lion.
|
|
|
|
Out upon the plain a lone horseman muttered a low curse as
|
|
he saw the two disappear from sight. It was Hanson. He had
|
|
followed them from the bungalow. Their way led in the direction
|
|
of his camp, so he had a ready and plausible excuse should they
|
|
discover him; but they had not seen him for they had not turned
|
|
their eyes behind.
|
|
|
|
Now he turned directly toward the spot at which they had
|
|
entered the jungle. He no longer cared whether he was observed
|
|
or not. There were two reasons for his indifference. The first
|
|
was that he saw in Baynes' act a counterpart of his own
|
|
planned abduction of the girl. In some way he might turn the
|
|
thing to his own purposes. At least he would keep in touch with
|
|
them and make sure that Baynes did not get her. His other reason
|
|
was based on his knowledge of an event that had transpired at
|
|
his camp the previous night--an event which he had not mentioned
|
|
at the bungalow for fear of drawing undesired attention to his
|
|
movements and bringing the blacks of the big Bwana into dangerous
|
|
intercourse with his own boys. He had told at the bungalow that
|
|
half his men had deserted. That story might be quickly disproved
|
|
should his boys and Bwana's grow confidential.
|
|
|
|
The event that he had failed to mention and which now urged
|
|
him hurriedly after the girl and her escort had occurred during
|
|
his absence early the preceding evening. His men had been sitting
|
|
around their camp fire, entirely encircled by a high, thorn boma,
|
|
when, without the slightest warning, a huge lion had leaped
|
|
amongst them and seized one of their number. It had been solely
|
|
due to the loyalty and courage of his comrades that his life
|
|
had been saved, and then only after a battle royal with the
|
|
hunger-enraged beast had they been able to drive him off
|
|
with burning brands, spears, and rifles.
|
|
|
|
From this Hanson knew that a man eater had wandered into
|
|
the district or been developed by the aging of one of the many
|
|
lions who ranged the plains and hills by night, or lay up in the
|
|
cool wood by day. He had heard the roaring of a hungry lion
|
|
not half an hour before, and there was little doubt in his mind
|
|
but that the man eater was stalking Meriem and Baynes. He cursed
|
|
the Englishman for a fool, and spurred rapidly after them.
|
|
|
|
Meriem and Baynes had drawn up in a small, natural clearing.
|
|
A hundred yards beyond them Numa lay crouching in the underbrush,
|
|
his yellow-green eyes fixed upon his prey, the tip of his sinuous
|
|
tail jerking spasmodically. He was measuring the distance
|
|
between him and them. He was wondering if he dared venture
|
|
a charge, or should he wait yet a little longer in the hope
|
|
that they might ride straight into his jaws. He was very hungry;
|
|
but also was he very crafty. He could not chance losing his meat
|
|
by a hasty and ill-considered rush. Had he waited the night
|
|
before until the blacks slept he would not have been forced to
|
|
go hungry for another twenty-four hours.
|
|
|
|
Behind him the other that had caught his scent and that of
|
|
man together came to a sitting posture upon the branch of a
|
|
tree in which he had reposed himself for slumber. Beneath him
|
|
a lumbering gray hulk swayed to and fro in the darkness.
|
|
The beast in the tree uttered a low guttural and dropped to the
|
|
back of the gray mass. He whispered a word in one of the great
|
|
ears and Tantor, the elephant, raised his trunk aloft, swinging
|
|
it high and low to catch the scent that the word had warned him of.
|
|
There was another whispered word--was it a command?--and the
|
|
lumbering beast wheeled into an awkward, yet silent shuffle,
|
|
in the direction of Numa, the lion, and the stranger Tarmangani
|
|
his rider had scented.
|
|
|
|
Onward they went, the scent of the lion and his prey becoming
|
|
stronger and stronger. Numa was becoming impatient. How much
|
|
longer must he wait for his meat to come his way? He lashed his
|
|
tail viciously now. He almost growled. All unconscious of their
|
|
danger the man and the girl sat talking in the little clearing.
|
|
|
|
Their horses were pressed side by side. Baynes had found
|
|
Meriem's hand and was pressing it as he poured words of love
|
|
into her ear, and Meriem was listening.
|
|
|
|
"Come to London with me," urged the Hon. Morison. "I can
|
|
gather a safari and we can be a whole day upon the way
|
|
to the coast before they guess that we have gone."
|
|
|
|
"Why must we go that way?" asked the girl. "Bwana and
|
|
My Dear would not object to our marriage."
|
|
|
|
"I cannot marry you just yet," explained the Hon. Morison,
|
|
"there are some formalities to be attended to first--you do
|
|
not understand. It will be all right. We will go to London.
|
|
I cannot wait. If you love me you will come. What of the apes
|
|
you lived with? Did they bother about marriage? They love as
|
|
we love. Had you stayed among them you would have mated as
|
|
they mate. It is the law of nature--no man-made law can
|
|
abrogate the laws of God. What difference does it make if we
|
|
love one another? What do we care for anyone in the world besides
|
|
ourselves? I would give my life for you--will you give nothing
|
|
for me?"
|
|
|
|
"You love me?" she said. "You will marry me when we have
|
|
reached London?"
|
|
|
|
"I swear it," he cried.
|
|
|
|
"I will go with you," she whispered, "though I do not understand
|
|
why it is necessary." She leaned toward him and he took her in
|
|
his arms and bent to press his lips to hers.
|
|
|
|
At the same instant the head of a huge tusker poked through
|
|
the trees that fringed the clearing. The Hon. Morison and Meriem,
|
|
with eyes and ears for one another alone, did not see or hear;
|
|
but Numa did. The man upon Tantor's broad head saw the
|
|
girl in the man's arms. It was Korak; but in the trim figure of
|
|
the neatly garbed girl he did not recognize his Meriem. He only
|
|
saw a Tarmangani with his she. And then Numa charged.
|
|
|
|
With a frightful roar, fearful lest Tantor had come to frighten
|
|
away his prey, the great beast leaped from his hiding place.
|
|
The earth trembled to his mighty voice. The ponies stood for
|
|
an instant transfixed with terror. The Hon. Morison Baynes went
|
|
white and cold. The lion was charging toward them full in the
|
|
brilliant light of the magnificent moon. The muscles of the Hon.
|
|
Morison no longer obeyed his will--they flexed to the urge of a
|
|
greater power--the power of Nature's first law. They drove his
|
|
spurred heels deep into his pony's flanks, they bore the rein
|
|
against the brute's neck that wheeled him with an impetuous
|
|
drive toward the plain and safety.
|
|
|
|
The girl's pony, squealing in terror, reared and plunged upon
|
|
the heels of his mate. The lion was close upon him. Only the
|
|
girl was cool--the girl and the half-naked savage who bestrode
|
|
the neck of his mighty mount and grinned at the exciting spectacle
|
|
chance had staked for his enjoyment.
|
|
|
|
To Korak here were but two strange Tarmangani pursued by Numa,
|
|
who was empty. It was Numa's right to prey; but one was a she.
|
|
Korak felt an intuitive urge to rush to her protection.
|
|
Why, he could not guess. All Tarmangani were enemies now.
|
|
He had lived too long a beast to feel strongly the humanitarian
|
|
impulses that were inherent in him--yet feel them he did, for
|
|
the girl at least.
|
|
|
|
He urged Tantor forward. He raised his heavy spear and hurled
|
|
it at the flying target of the lion's body. The girl's pony
|
|
had reached the trees upon the opposite side of the clearing.
|
|
Here he would become easy prey to the swiftly moving lion; but
|
|
Numa, infuriated, preferred the woman upon his back. It was
|
|
for her he leaped.
|
|
|
|
Korak gave an exclamation of astonishment and approval as
|
|
Numa landed upon the pony's rump and at the same instant the
|
|
girl swung free of her mount to the branches of a tree above her.
|
|
|
|
Korak's spear struck Numa in the shoulder, knocking him
|
|
from his precarious hold upon the frantically plunging horse.
|
|
Freed of the weight of both girl and lion the pony raced ahead
|
|
toward safety. Numa tore and struck at the missile in his
|
|
shoulder but could not dislodge it. Then he resumed the chase.
|
|
|
|
Korak guided Tantor into the seclusion of the jungle. He did
|
|
not wish to be seen, nor had he.
|
|
|
|
Hanson had almost reached the wood when he heard the lion's
|
|
terrific roars, and knew that the charge had come. An instant
|
|
later the Hon. Morison broke upon his vision, racing like mad
|
|
for safety. The man lay flat upon his pony's back hugging the
|
|
animal's neck tightly with both arms and digging the spurs into
|
|
his sides. An instant later the second pony appeared--riderless.
|
|
|
|
Hanson groaned as he guessed what had happened out of sight in
|
|
the jungle. With an oath he spurred on in the hope of driving
|
|
the lion from his prey--his rifle was ready in his hand. And then
|
|
the lion came into view behind the girl's pony. Hanson could
|
|
not understand. He knew that if Numa had succeeded in seizing
|
|
the girl he would not have continued in pursuit of the others.
|
|
|
|
He drew in his own mount, took quick aim and fired. The lion
|
|
stopped in his tracks, turned and bit at his side, then rolled
|
|
over dead. Hanson rode on into the forest, calling aloud to
|
|
the girl.
|
|
|
|
"Here I am," came a quick response from the foliage of the
|
|
trees just ahead. "Did you hit him?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes," replied Hanson. "Where are you? You had a mighty
|
|
narrow escape. It will teach you to keep out of the jungle
|
|
at night."
|
|
|
|
Together they returned to the plain where they found the Hon.
|
|
Morison riding slowly back toward them. He explained that his
|
|
pony had bolted and that he had had hard work stopping him at all.
|
|
Hanson grinned, for he recalled the pounding heels that he
|
|
had seen driving sharp spurs into the flanks of Baynes' mount;
|
|
but he said nothing of what he had seen. He took Meriem up
|
|
behind him and the three rode in silence toward the bungalow.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 19
|
|
|
|
Behind them Korak emerged from the jungle and recovered
|
|
his spear from Numa's side. He still was smiling. He had
|
|
enjoyed the spectacle exceedingly. There was one thing that
|
|
troubled him--the agility with which the she had clambered
|
|
from her pony's back into the safety of the tree ABOVE her.
|
|
That was more like mangani--more like his lost Meriem. He sighed.
|
|
His lost Meriem! His little, dead Meriem! He wondered if this
|
|
she stranger resembled his Meriem in other ways. A great longing
|
|
to see her overwhelmed him. He looked after the three figures
|
|
moving steadily across the plain. He wondered where might lie
|
|
their destination. A desire to follow them came over him, but
|
|
he only stood there watching until they had disappeared in
|
|
the distance. The sight of the civilized girl and the dapper,
|
|
khaki clad Englishman had aroused in Korak memories long dormant.
|
|
|
|
Once he had dreamed of returning to the world of such as
|
|
these; but with the death of Meriem hope and ambition seemed
|
|
to have deserted him. He cared now only to pass the remainder
|
|
of his life in solitude, as far from man as possible. With a
|
|
sigh he turned slowly back into the jungle.
|
|
|
|
Tantor, nervous by nature, had been far from reassured by
|
|
close proximity to the three strange whites, and with the report
|
|
of Hanson's rifle had turned and ambled away at his long,
|
|
swinging shuffle. He was nowhere in sight when Korak returned
|
|
to look for him. The ape-man, however, was little concerned by
|
|
the absence of his friend. Tantor had a habit of wandering
|
|
off unexpectedly. For a month they might not see one another,
|
|
for Korak seldom took the trouble to follow the great pachyderm,
|
|
nor did he upon this occasion. Instead he found a comfortable
|
|
perch in a large tree and was soon asleep.
|
|
|
|
At the bungalow Bwana had met the returning adventurers on
|
|
the verandah. In a moment of wakefulness he had heard the
|
|
report of Hanson's rifle far out across the plain, and wondered
|
|
what it might mean. Presently it had occurred to him that the
|
|
man whom he considered in the light of a guest might have met
|
|
with an accident on his way back to camp, so he had arisen and
|
|
gone to his foreman's quarters where he had learned that Hanson
|
|
had been there earlier in the evening but had departed several
|
|
hours before. Returning from the foreman's quarters Bwana had
|
|
noticed that the corral gate was open and further investigation
|
|
revealed the fact that Meriem's pony was gone and also the one
|
|
most often used by Baynes. Instantly Bwana assumed that the
|
|
shot had been fired by Hon. Morison, and had again aroused
|
|
his foreman and was making preparations to set forth in
|
|
investigation when he had seen the party approaching across
|
|
the plain.
|
|
|
|
Explanation on the part of the Englishman met a rather chilly
|
|
reception from his host. Meriem was silent. She saw that Bwana
|
|
was angry with her. It was the first time and she was heart broken.
|
|
|
|
"Go to your room, Meriem," he said; "and Baynes, if you will step
|
|
into my study, I'd like to have a word with you in a moment."
|
|
|
|
He stepped toward Hanson as the others turned to obey him.
|
|
There was something about Bwana even in his gentlest moods
|
|
that commanded instant obedience.
|
|
|
|
"How did you happen to be with them, Hanson?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"I'd been sitting in the garden," replied the trader, "after
|
|
leaving Jervis' quarters. I have a habit of doing that as your
|
|
lady probably knows. Tonight I fell asleep behind a bush, and was
|
|
awakened by them two spooning. I couldn't hear what they said,
|
|
but presently Baynes brings two ponies and they ride off. I didn't
|
|
like to interfere for it wasn't any of my business, but I knew
|
|
they hadn't ought to be ridin' about that time of night, leastways
|
|
not the girl--it wasn't right and it wasn't safe. So I follows them
|
|
and it's just as well I did. Baynes was gettin' away from the lion
|
|
as fast as he could, leavin' the girl to take care of herself, when
|
|
I got a lucky shot into the beast's shoulder that fixed him."
|
|
|
|
Hanson paused. Both men were silent for a time. Presently the
|
|
trader coughed in an embarrassed manner as though there was
|
|
something on his mind he felt in duty bound to say, but hated to.
|
|
|
|
"What is it, Hanson?" asked Bwana. "You were about to
|
|
say something weren't you?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, you see it's like this," ventured Hanson. "Bein'
|
|
around here evenings a good deal I've seen them two together a
|
|
lot, and, beggin' your pardon, sir, but I don't think Mr. Baynes
|
|
means the girl any good. I've overheard enough to make me
|
|
think he's tryin' to get her to run off with him." Hanson, to fit
|
|
his own ends, hit nearer the truth than he knew. He was afraid
|
|
that Baynes would interfere with his own plans, and he had hit
|
|
upon a scheme to both utilize the young Englishman and get rid
|
|
of him at the same time.
|
|
|
|
"And I thought," continued the trader, "that inasmuch as
|
|
I'm about due to move you might like to suggest to Mr. Baynes
|
|
that he go with me. I'd be willin' to take him north to the
|
|
caravan trails as a favor to you, sir."
|
|
|
|
Bwana stood in deep thought for a moment. Presently he
|
|
looked up.
|
|
|
|
"Of course, Hanson, Mr. Baynes is my guest," he said, a grim
|
|
twinkle in his eye. "Really I cannot accuse him of planning
|
|
to run away with Meriem on the evidence that we have, and as
|
|
he is my guest I should hate to be so discourteous as to ask him
|
|
to leave; but, if I recall his words correctly, it seems to me
|
|
that he has spoken of returning home, and I am sure that nothing
|
|
would delight him more than going north with you--you say you
|
|
start tomorrow? I think Mr. Baynes will accompany you. Drop over
|
|
in the morning, if you please, and now good night, and thank you
|
|
for keeping a watchful eye on Meriem."
|
|
|
|
Hanson hid a grin as he turned and sought his saddle. Bwana stepped
|
|
from the verandah to his study, where he found the Hon. Morison
|
|
pacing back and forth, evidently very ill at ease.
|
|
|
|
"Baynes," said Bwana, coming directly to the point, "Hanson is
|
|
leaving for the north tomorrow. He has taken a great fancy
|
|
to you, and just asked me to say to you that he'd be glad to have
|
|
you accompany him. Good night, Baynes."
|
|
|
|
At Bwana's suggestion Meriem kept to her room the following
|
|
morning until after the Hon. Morison Baynes had departed.
|
|
Hanson had come for him early--in fact he had remained all
|
|
night with the foreman, Jervis, that they might get an early start.
|
|
|
|
The farewell exchanges between the Hon. Morison and his
|
|
host were of the most formal type, and when at last the guest
|
|
rode away Bwana breathed a sigh of relief. It had been an
|
|
unpleasant duty and he was glad that it was over; but he did not
|
|
regret his action. He had not been blind to Baynes' infatuation
|
|
for Meriem, and knowing the young man's pride in caste he had
|
|
never for a moment believed that his guest would offer his name
|
|
to this nameless Arab girl, for, extremely light in color though
|
|
she was for a full blood Arab, Bwana believed her to be such.
|
|
|
|
He did not mention the subject again to Meriem, and in this
|
|
he made a mistake, for the young girl, while realizing the debt
|
|
of gratitude she owed Bwana and My Dear, was both proud and
|
|
sensitive, so that Bwana's action in sending Baynes away and
|
|
giving her no opportunity to explain or defend hurt and
|
|
mortified her. Also it did much toward making a martyr of
|
|
Baynes in her eyes and arousing in her breast a keen feeling
|
|
of loyalty toward him.
|
|
|
|
What she had half-mistaken for love before, she now wholly
|
|
mistook for love. Bwana and My Dear might have told her much
|
|
of the social barriers that they only too well knew Baynes must
|
|
feel existed between Meriem and himself, but they hesitated to
|
|
wound her. It would have been better had they inflicted this
|
|
lesser sorrow, and saved the child the misery that was to follow
|
|
because of her ignorance.
|
|
|
|
As Hanson and Baynes rode toward the former's camp the Englishman
|
|
maintained a morose silence. The other was attempting to
|
|
formulate an opening that would lead naturally to the proposition
|
|
he had in mind. He rode a neck behind his companion, grinning as
|
|
he noted the sullen scowl upon the other's patrician face.
|
|
|
|
"Rather rough on you, wasn't he?" he ventured at last,
|
|
jerking his head back in the direction of the bungalow as Baynes
|
|
turned his eyes upon him at the remark. "He thinks a lot of the
|
|
girl," continued Hanson, "and don't want nobody to marry her
|
|
and take her away; but it looks to me as though he was doin'
|
|
her more harm than good in sendin' you away. She ought to
|
|
marry some time, and she couldn't do better than a fine young
|
|
gentleman like you."
|
|
|
|
Baynes, who had at first felt inclined to take offense at the
|
|
mention of his private affairs by this common fellow, was
|
|
mollified by Hanson's final remark, and immediately commenced
|
|
to see in him a man of fine discrimination.
|
|
|
|
"He's a darned bounder," grumbled the Hon. Morison; "but
|
|
I'll get even with him. He may be the whole thing in Central
|
|
Africa but I'm as big as he is in London, and he'll find it out
|
|
when he comes home."
|
|
|
|
"If I was you," said Hanson, "I wouldn't let any man keep me from
|
|
gettin' the girl I want. Between you and me I ain't got no use
|
|
for him either, and if I can help you any way just call on me."
|
|
|
|
"It's mighty good of you, Hanson," replied Baynes, warming up a
|
|
bit; "but what can a fellow do here in this God-forsaken hole?"
|
|
|
|
"I know what I'd do," said Hanson. "I'd take the girl along
|
|
with me. If she loves you she'll go, all right."
|
|
|
|
"It can't be done," said Baynes. "He bosses this whole
|
|
blooming country for miles around. He'd be sure to catch us."
|
|
|
|
"No, he wouldn't, not with me running things," said Hanson.
|
|
"I've been trading and hunting here for ten years and I know
|
|
as much about the country as he does. If you want to take
|
|
the girl along I'll help you, and I'll guarantee that there won't
|
|
nobody catch up with us before we reach the coast. I'll tell you
|
|
what, you write her a note and I'll get it to her by my head man.
|
|
Ask her to meet you to say goodbye--she won't refuse that. In the
|
|
meantime we can be movin' camp a little further north all the
|
|
time and you can make arrangements with her to be all ready
|
|
on a certain night. Tell her I'll meet her then while you wait for
|
|
us in camp. That'll be better for I know the country well and
|
|
can cover it quicker than you. You can take care of the safari
|
|
and be movin' along slow toward the north and the girl and I'll
|
|
catch up to you."
|
|
|
|
"But suppose she won't come?" suggested Baynes.
|
|
|
|
"Then make another date for a last good-bye," said Hanson,
|
|
"and instead of you I'll be there and I'll bring her along anyway.
|
|
She'll have to come, and after it's all over she won't feel so bad
|
|
about it--especially after livin' with you for two months while
|
|
we're makin' the coast."
|
|
|
|
A shocked and angry protest rose to Baynes' lips; but he did
|
|
not utter it, for almost simultaneously came the realization
|
|
that this was practically the same thing he had been planning
|
|
upon himself. It had sounded brutal and criminal from the lips
|
|
of the rough trader; but nevertheless the young Englishman saw
|
|
that with Hanson's help and his knowledge of African travel the
|
|
possibilities of success would be much greater than as though the
|
|
Hon. Morison were to attempt the thing single handed. And so
|
|
he nodded a glum assent.
|
|
|
|
The balance of the long ride to Hanson's northerly camp was
|
|
made in silence, for both men were occupied with their own
|
|
thoughts, most of which were far from being either complimentary
|
|
or loyal to the other. As they rode through the wood the
|
|
sounds of their careless passage came to the ears of another
|
|
jungle wayfarer. The Killer had determined to come back to the
|
|
place where he had seen the white girl who took to the trees
|
|
with the ability of long habitude. There was a compelling
|
|
something in the recollection of her that drew him irresistibly
|
|
toward her. He wished to see her by the light of day, to see her
|
|
features, to see the color of her eyes and hair. It seemed to him
|
|
that she must bear a strong resemblance to his lost Meriem, and
|
|
yet he knew that the chances were that she did not. The fleeting
|
|
glimpse that he had had of her in the moonlight as she swung from
|
|
the back of her plunging pony into the branches of the tree above
|
|
her had shown him a girl of about the same height as his Meriem;
|
|
but of a more rounded and developed femininity.
|
|
|
|
Now he was moving lazily back in the direction of the spot
|
|
where he had seen the girl when the sounds of the approaching
|
|
horsemen came to his sharp ears. He moved stealthily through
|
|
the branches until he came within sight of the riders. The younger
|
|
man he instantly recognized as the same he had seen with his
|
|
arms about the girl in the moonlit glade just the instant before
|
|
Numa charged. The other he did not recognize though there was
|
|
a familiarity about his carriage and figure that puzzled Korak.
|
|
|
|
The ape-man decided that to find the girl again he would but
|
|
have to keep in touch with the young Englishman, and so he fell
|
|
in behind the pair, following them to Hanson's camp. Here the
|
|
Hon. Morison penned a brief note, which Hanson gave into the
|
|
keeping of one of his boys who started off forthwith toward
|
|
the south.
|
|
|
|
Korak remained in the vicinity of the camp, keeping a careful
|
|
watch upon the Englishman. He had half expected to find the
|
|
girl at the destination of the two riders and had been
|
|
disappointed when no sign of her materialized about the camp.
|
|
|
|
Baynes was restless, pacing back and forth beneath the trees
|
|
when he should have been resting against the forced marches of
|
|
the coming flight. Hanson lay in his hammock and smoked.
|
|
They spoke but little. Korak lay stretched upon a branch
|
|
among the dense foliage above them. Thus passed the balance
|
|
of the afternoon. Korak became hungry and thirsty. He doubted
|
|
that either of the men would leave camp now before morning, so he
|
|
withdrew, but toward the south, for there it seemed most likely
|
|
the girl still was.
|
|
|
|
In the garden beside the bungalow Meriem wandered thoughtfully
|
|
in the moonlight. She still smarted from Bwana's, to her,
|
|
unjust treatment of the Hon. Morison Baynes. Nothing had been
|
|
explained to her, for both Bwana and My Dear had wished to
|
|
spare her the mortification and sorrow of the true explanation
|
|
of Baynes' proposal. They knew, as Meriem did not, that the
|
|
man had no intention of marrying her, else he would have
|
|
come directly to Bwana, knowing full well that no objection
|
|
would be interposed if Meriem really cared for him.
|
|
|
|
Meriem loved them both and was grateful to them for all that
|
|
they had done for her; but deep in her little heart surged the
|
|
savage love of liberty that her years of untrammeled freedom in
|
|
the jungle had made part and parcel of her being. Now, for the
|
|
first time since she had come to them, Meriem felt like a prisoner
|
|
in the bungalow of Bwana and My Dear.
|
|
|
|
Like a caged tigress the girl paced the length of the enclosure.
|
|
Once she paused near the outer fence, her head upon one
|
|
side--listening. What was it she had heard? The pad of naked
|
|
human feet just beyond the garden. She listened for a moment.
|
|
The sound was not repeated. Then she resumed her restless walking.
|
|
Down to the opposite end of the garden she passed, turned and
|
|
retraced her steps toward the upper end. Upon the sward near
|
|
the bushes that hid the fence, full in the glare of the moonlight,
|
|
lay a white envelope that had not been there when she had turned
|
|
almost upon the very spot a moment before.
|
|
|
|
Meriem stopped short in her tracks, listening again, and
|
|
sniffing--more than ever the tigress; alert, ready. Beyond the
|
|
bushes a naked black runner squatted, peering through the foliage.
|
|
He saw her take a step closer to the letter. She had seen it.
|
|
He rose quietly and following the shadows of the bushes that ran
|
|
down to the corral was soon gone from sight.
|
|
|
|
Meriem's trained ears heard his every move. She made no
|
|
attempt to seek closer knowledge of his identity. Already she
|
|
had guessed that he was a messenger from the Hon. Morison.
|
|
She stooped and picked up the envelope. Tearing it open she
|
|
easily read the contents by the moon's brilliant light. It was, as
|
|
she had guessed, from Baynes.
|
|
|
|
"I cannot go without seeing you again," it read. "Come to
|
|
the clearing early tomorrow morning and say good-bye to me.
|
|
Come alone."
|
|
|
|
There was a little more--words that made her heart beat faster
|
|
and a happy flush mount her cheek.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 20
|
|
|
|
It was still dark when the Hon. Morison Baynes set forth for
|
|
the trysting place. He insisted upon having a guide, saying
|
|
that he was not sure that he could find his way back to the
|
|
little clearing. As a matter of fact the thought of that lonely
|
|
ride through the darkness before the sun rose had been too much
|
|
for his courage, and he craved company. A black, therefore,
|
|
preceded him on foot. Behind and above him came Korak, whom
|
|
the noise in the camp had awakened.
|
|
|
|
It was nine o'clock before Baynes drew rein in the clearing.
|
|
Meriem had not yet arrived. The black lay down to rest.
|
|
Baynes lolled in his saddle. Korak stretched himself comfortably
|
|
upon a lofty limb, where he could watch those beneath him without
|
|
being seen.
|
|
|
|
An hour passed. Baynes gave evidence of nervousness. Korak had
|
|
already guessed that the young Englishman had come here to meet
|
|
another, nor was he at all in doubt as to the identity of
|
|
that other. The Killer was perfectly satisfied that he was soon
|
|
again to see the nimble she who had so forcefully reminded him
|
|
of Meriem.
|
|
|
|
Presently the sound of an approaching horse came to Korak's ears.
|
|
She was coming! She had almost reached the clearing before
|
|
Baynes became aware of her presence, and then as he looked up,
|
|
the foliage parted to the head and shoulders of her mount and
|
|
Meriem rode into view. Baynes spurred to meet her. Korak looked
|
|
searchingly down upon her, mentally anathematizing the broad-brimmed
|
|
hat that hid her features from his eyes. She was abreast the
|
|
Englishman now. Korak saw the man take both her hands and draw
|
|
her close to his breast. He saw the man's face concealed for a
|
|
moment beneath the same broad brim that hid the girl's. He could
|
|
imagine their lips meeting, and a twinge of sorrow and sweet
|
|
recollection combined to close his eyes for an instant in that
|
|
involuntary muscular act with which we attempt to shut out from
|
|
the mind's eye harrowing reflections.
|
|
|
|
When he looked again they had drawn apart and were
|
|
conversing earnestly. Korak could see the man urging something.
|
|
It was equally evident that the girl was holding back. There were
|
|
many of her gestures, and the way in which she tossed her head
|
|
up and to the right, tip-tilting her chin, that reminded Korak
|
|
still more strongly of Meriem. And then the conversation was
|
|
over and the man took the girl in his arms again to kiss her
|
|
good-bye. She turned and rode toward the point from which she
|
|
had come. The man sat on his horse watching her. At the edge of
|
|
the jungle she turned to wave him a final farewell.
|
|
|
|
"Tonight!" she cried, throwing back her head as she called
|
|
the words to him across the little distance which separated
|
|
them--throwing back her head and revealing her face for the
|
|
first time to the eyes of The Killer in the tree above.
|
|
Korak started as though pierced through the heart with an arrow.
|
|
He trembled and shook like a leaf. He closed his eyes, pressing
|
|
his palms across them, and then he opened them again and looked
|
|
but the girl was gone--only the waving foliage of the jungle's
|
|
rim marked where she had disappeared. It was impossible! It could
|
|
not be true! And yet, with his own eyes he had seen his Meriem--
|
|
older a little, with figure more rounded by nearer maturity, and
|
|
subtly changed in other ways; more beautiful than ever, yet still
|
|
his little Meriem. Yes, he had seen the dead alive again;
|
|
he had seen his Meriem in the flesh. She lived! She had not died!
|
|
He had seen her--he had seen his Meriem--IN THE ARMS OF ANOTHER MAN!
|
|
And that man sat below him now, within easy reach. Korak, The Killer,
|
|
fondled his heavy spear. He played with the grass rope dangling
|
|
from his gee-string. He stroked the hunting knife at his hip.
|
|
And the man beneath him called to his drowsy guide,
|
|
bent the rein to his pony's neck and moved off toward the north.
|
|
Still sat Korak, The Killer, alone among the trees.
|
|
Now his hands hung idly at his sides. His weapons
|
|
and what he had intended were forgotten for the moment.
|
|
Korak was thinking. He had noted that subtle change in Meriem.
|
|
When last he had seen her she had been his little, half-naked
|
|
Mangani--wild, savage, and uncouth. She had not seemed uncouth
|
|
to him then; but now, in the change that had come over her,
|
|
he knew that such she had been; yet no more uncouth than he,
|
|
and he was still uncouth.
|
|
|
|
In her had taken place the change. In her he had just seen a
|
|
sweet and lovely flower of refinement and civilization, and he
|
|
shuddered as he recalled the fate that he himself had planned for
|
|
her--to be the mate of an ape-man, his mate, in the savage jungle.
|
|
Then he had seen no wrong in it, for he had loved her, and the
|
|
way he had planned had been the way of the jungle which they two
|
|
had chosen as their home; but now, after having seen the Meriem
|
|
of civilized attire, he realized the hideousness of his once
|
|
cherished plan, and he thanked God that chance and the blacks of
|
|
Kovudoo had thwarted him.
|
|
|
|
Yet he still loved her, and jealousy seared his soul as
|
|
he recalled the sight of her in the arms of the dapper
|
|
young Englishman. What were his intentions toward her?
|
|
Did he really love her? How could one not love her? And she
|
|
loved him, of that Korak had had ample proof. Had she not
|
|
loved him she would not have accepted his kisses. His Meriem
|
|
loved another! For a long time he let that awful truth sink deep,
|
|
and from it he tried to reason out his future plan of action.
|
|
In his heart was a great desire to follow the man and slay him;
|
|
but ever there rose in his consciousness the thought: She loves him.
|
|
Could he slay the creature Meriem loved? Sadly he shook his head.
|
|
No, he could not. Then came a partial decision to follow Meriem
|
|
and speak with her. He half started, and then glanced down at his
|
|
nakedness and was ashamed. He, the son of a British peer, had thus
|
|
thrown away his life, had thus degraded himself to the level of
|
|
a beast that he was ashamed to go to the woman he loved and
|
|
lay his love at her feet. He was ashamed to go to the little Arab
|
|
maid who had been his jungle playmate, for what had he to offer her?
|
|
|
|
For years circumstances had prevented a return to his father
|
|
and mother, and at last pride had stepped in and expunged from
|
|
his mind the last vestige of any intention to return. In a
|
|
spirit of boyish adventure he had cast his lot with the jungle ape.
|
|
The killing of the crook in the coast inn had filled his childish
|
|
mind with terror of the law, and driven him deeper into the wilds.
|
|
The rebuffs that he had met at the hands of men, both black and
|
|
white, had had their effect upon his mind while yet it was in a
|
|
formative state, and easily influenced.
|
|
|
|
He had come to believe that the hand of man was against him,
|
|
and then he had found in Meriem the only human association
|
|
he required or craved. When she had been snatched from him
|
|
his sorrow had been so deep that the thought of ever mingling
|
|
again with human beings grew still more unutterably distasteful.
|
|
Finally and for all time, he thought, the die was cast. Of his
|
|
own volition he had become a beast, a beast he had lived, a
|
|
beast he would die.
|
|
|
|
Now that it was too late, he regretted it. For now Meriem,
|
|
still living, had been revealed to him in a guise of progress and
|
|
advancement that had carried her completely out of his life.
|
|
Death itself could not have further removed her from him.
|
|
In her new world she loved a man of her own kind. And Korak
|
|
knew that it was right. She was not for him--not for the naked,
|
|
savage ape. No, she was not for him; but he still was hers. If he
|
|
could not have her and happiness, he would at least do all that
|
|
lay in his power to assure happiness to her. He would follow the
|
|
young Englishman. In the first place he would know that he
|
|
meant Meriem no harm, and after that, though jealously
|
|
wrenched his heart, he would watch over the man Meriem loved, for
|
|
Meriem's sake; but God help that man if he thought to wrong her!
|
|
|
|
Slowly he aroused himself. He stood erect and stretched his
|
|
great frame, the muscles of his arms gliding sinuously beneath
|
|
his tanned skin as he bent his clenched fists behind his head.
|
|
A movement on the ground beneath caught his eye. An antelope
|
|
was entering the clearing. Immediately Korak became aware
|
|
that he was empty--again he was a beast. For a moment love
|
|
had lifted him to sublime heights of honor and renunciation.
|
|
|
|
The antelope was crossing the clearing. Korak dropped to the
|
|
ground upon the opposite side of the tree, and so lightly that not
|
|
even the sensitive ears of the antelope apprehended his presence.
|
|
He uncoiled his grass rope--it was the latest addition to his
|
|
armament, yet he was proficient with it. Often he traveled with
|
|
nothing more than his knife and his rope--they were light and easy
|
|
to carry. His spear and bow and arrows were cumbersome and he
|
|
usually kept one or all of them hidden away in a private cache.
|
|
|
|
Now he held a single coil of the long rope in his right hand,
|
|
and the balance in his left. The antelope was but a few paces
|
|
from him. Silently Korak leaped from his hiding place swinging
|
|
the rope free from the entangling shrubbery. The antelope sprang
|
|
away almost instantly; but instantly, too, the coiled rope, with
|
|
its sliding noose, flew through the air above him. With unerring
|
|
precision it settled about the creature's neck. There was a quick
|
|
wrist movement of the thrower, the noose tightened. The Killer
|
|
braced himself with the rope across his hip, and as the antelope
|
|
tautened the singing strands in a last frantic bound for liberty
|
|
he was thrown over upon his back.
|
|
|
|
Then, instead of approaching the fallen animal as a roper of the
|
|
western plains might do, Korak dragged his captive to himself,
|
|
pulling him in hand over hand, and when he was within reach
|
|
leaping upon him even as Sheeta the panther might have done,
|
|
and burying his teeth in the animal's neck while he found its
|
|
heart with the point of his hunting knife. Recoiling his rope,
|
|
he cut a few generous strips from his kill and took to the trees
|
|
again, where he ate in peace. Later he swung off in the direction
|
|
of a nearby water hole, and then he slept.
|
|
|
|
In his mind, of course, was the suggestion of another meeting
|
|
between Meriem and the young Englishman that had been borne
|
|
to him by the girl's parting: "Tonight!"
|
|
|
|
He had not followed Meriem because he knew from the direction
|
|
from which she had come and in which she returned that
|
|
wheresoever she had found an asylum it lay out across the plains
|
|
and not wishing to be discovered by the girl he had not cared to
|
|
venture into the open after her. It would do as well to keep in
|
|
touch with the young man, and that was precisely what he intended doing.
|
|
|
|
To you or me the possibility of locating the Hon. Morison in
|
|
the jungle after having permitted him to get such a considerable
|
|
start might have seemed remote; but to Korak it was not at all so.
|
|
He guessed that the white man would return to his camp;
|
|
but should he have done otherwise it would be a simple matter
|
|
to The Killer to trail a mounted man accompanied by another
|
|
on foot. Days might pass and still such a spoor would be
|
|
sufficiently plain to lead Korak unfalteringly to its end;
|
|
while a matter of a few hours only left it as clear to him as
|
|
though the makers themselves were still in plain sight.
|
|
|
|
And so it came that a few minutes after the Hon. Morison
|
|
Baynes entered the camp to be greeted by Hanson, Korak slipped
|
|
noiselessly into a near-by tree. There he lay until late afternoon
|
|
and still the young Englishman made no move to leave camp.
|
|
Korak wondered if Meriem were coming there. A little later
|
|
Hanson and one of his black boys rode out of camp. Korak merely
|
|
noted the fact. He was not particularly interested in what
|
|
any other member of the company than the young Englishman did.
|
|
|
|
Darkness came and still the young man remained. He ate his evening
|
|
meal, afterward smoking numerous cigarettes. Presently he began
|
|
to pace back and forth before his tent. He kept his boy busy
|
|
replenishing the fire. A lion coughed and he went into his tent
|
|
to reappear with an express rifle. Again he admonished the boy to
|
|
throw more brush upon the fire. Korak saw that he was nervous
|
|
and afraid, and his lip curled in a sneer of contempt.
|
|
|
|
Was this the creature who had supplanted him in the heart of
|
|
his Meriem? Was this a man, who trembled when Numa coughed?
|
|
How could such as he protect Meriem from the countless dangers
|
|
of the jungle? Ah, but he would not have to. They would live
|
|
in the safety of European civilization, where men in uniforms
|
|
were hired to protect them. What need had a European of
|
|
prowess to protect his mate? Again the sneer curled Korak's lip.
|
|
|
|
Hanson and his boy had ridden directly to the clearing. It was
|
|
already dark when they arrived. Leaving the boy there Hanson rode
|
|
to the edge of the plain, leading the boy's horse. There he waited.
|
|
It was nine o'clock before he saw a solitary figure galloping
|
|
toward him from the direction of the bungalow. A few moments
|
|
later Meriem drew in her mount beside him. She was nervous
|
|
and flushed. When she recognized Hanson she drew back, startled.
|
|
|
|
"Mr. Baynes' horse fell on him and sprained his ankle,"
|
|
Hanson hastened to explain. "He couldn't very well come so he
|
|
sent me to meet you and bring you to camp."
|
|
|
|
The girl could not see in the darkness the gloating, triumphant
|
|
expression on the speaker's face.
|
|
|
|
"We had better hurry," continued Hanson, "for we'll have
|
|
to move along pretty fast if we don't want to be overtaken."
|
|
|
|
"Is he hurt badly?" asked Meriem.
|
|
|
|
"Only a little sprain," replied Hanson. "He can ride all right;
|
|
but we both thought he'd better lie up tonight, and rest, for he'll
|
|
have plenty hard riding in the next few weeks."
|
|
|
|
"Yes," agreed the girl.
|
|
|
|
Hanson swung his pony about and Meriem followed him. They rode
|
|
north along the edge of the jungle for a mile and then turned
|
|
straight into it toward the west. Meriem, following, payed
|
|
little attention to directions. She did not know exactly where
|
|
Hanson's camp lay and so she did not guess that he was not
|
|
leading her toward it. All night they rode, straight toward
|
|
the west. When morning came, Hanson permitted a short halt for
|
|
breakfast, which he had provided in well-filled saddle bags before
|
|
leaving his camp. Then they pushed on again, nor did they
|
|
halt a second time until in the heat of the day he stopped and
|
|
motioned the girl to dismount.
|
|
|
|
"We will sleep here for a time and let the ponies graze," he said.
|
|
|
|
"I had no idea the camp was so far away," said Meriem.
|
|
|
|
"I left orders that they were to move on at day break," explained
|
|
the trader, "so that we could get a good start. I knew that you
|
|
and I could easily overtake a laden safari. It may not be
|
|
until tomorrow that we'll catch up with them."
|
|
|
|
But though they traveled part of the night and all the following
|
|
day no sign of the safari appeared ahead of them. Meriem, an
|
|
adept in jungle craft, knew that none had passed ahead of them
|
|
for many days. Occasionally she saw indications of an old spoor,
|
|
a very old spoor, of many men. For the most part they followed
|
|
this well-marked trail along elephant paths and through park-
|
|
like groves. It was an ideal trail for rapid traveling.
|
|
|
|
Meriem at last became suspicious. Gradually the attitude of the
|
|
man at her side had begun to change. Often she surprised him
|
|
devouring her with his eyes. Steadily the former sensation of
|
|
previous acquaintanceship urged itself upon her. Somewhere, sometime
|
|
before she had known this man. It was evident that he had not
|
|
shaved for several days. A blonde stubble had commenced to cover
|
|
his neck and cheeks and chin, and with it the assurance that he was
|
|
no stranger continued to grow upon the girl.
|
|
|
|
It was not until the second day, however, that Meriem rebelled.
|
|
She drew in her pony at last and voiced her doubts. Hanson assured
|
|
her that the camp was but a few miles further on.
|
|
|
|
"We should have overtaken them yesterday," he said. "They must
|
|
have marched much faster than I had believed possible."
|
|
|
|
"They have not marched here at all," said Meriem. "The spoor
|
|
that we have been following is weeks old."
|
|
|
|
Hanson laughed.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, that's it, is it?" he cried. "Why didn't you say so before?
|
|
I could have easily explained. We are not coming by the same
|
|
route; but we'll pick up their trail sometime today, even if we
|
|
don't overtake them."
|
|
|
|
Now, at last, Meriem knew the man was lying to her. What a
|
|
fool he must be to think that anyone could believe such a
|
|
ridiculous explanation? Who was so stupid as to believe that
|
|
they could have expected to overtake another party, and he had
|
|
certainly assured her that momentarily he expected to do so, when
|
|
that party's route was not to meet theirs for several miles yet?
|
|
|
|
She kept her own counsel however, planning to escape at the
|
|
first opportunity when she might have a sufficient start of her
|
|
captor, as she now considered him, to give her some assurance
|
|
of outdistancing him. She watched his face continually when
|
|
she could without being observed. Tantalizingly the placing of
|
|
his familiar features persisted in eluding her. Where had she
|
|
known him? Under what conditions had they met before she had
|
|
seen him about the farm of Bwana? She ran over in her mind all
|
|
the few white men she ever had known. There were some who
|
|
had come to her father's douar in the jungle. Few it is
|
|
true, but there had been some. Ah, now she had it! She had
|
|
seen him there! She almost seized upon his identity and then
|
|
in an instant, it had slipped from her again.
|
|
|
|
It was mid afternoon when they suddenly broke out of the
|
|
jungle upon the banks of a broad and placid river. Beyond, upon
|
|
the opposite shore, Meriem described a camp surrounded by a
|
|
high, thorn boma.
|
|
|
|
"Here we are at last," said Hanson. He drew his revolver and
|
|
fired in the air. Instantly the camp across the river was astir.
|
|
Black men ran down the river's bank. Hanson hailed them. But there
|
|
was no sign of the Hon. Morison Baynes.
|
|
|
|
In accordance with their master's instructions the blacks
|
|
manned a canoe and rowed across. Hanson placed Meriem in
|
|
the little craft and entered it himself, leaving two boys to watch
|
|
the horses, which the canoe was to return for and swim across
|
|
to the camp side of the river.
|
|
|
|
Once in the camp Meriem asked for Baynes. For the moment
|
|
her fears had been allayed by the sight of the camp, which she
|
|
had come to look upon as more or less a myth. Hanson pointed
|
|
toward the single tent that stood in the center of the enclosure.
|
|
|
|
"There," he said, and preceded her toward it. At the entrance
|
|
he held the flap aside and motioned her within. Meriem entered
|
|
and looked about. The tent was empty. She turned toward Hanson.
|
|
There was a broad grin on his face.
|
|
|
|
"Where is Mr. Baynes?" she demanded.
|
|
|
|
"He ain't here," replied Hanson. "Leastwise I don't see him,
|
|
do you? But I'm here, and I'm a damned sight better man than
|
|
that thing ever was. You don't need him no more--you got me,"
|
|
and he laughed uproariously and reached for her.
|
|
|
|
Meriem struggled to free herself. Hanson encircled her arms
|
|
and body in his powerful grip and bore her slowly backward
|
|
toward the pile of blankets at the far end of the tent. His face
|
|
was bent close to hers. His eyes were narrowed to two slits of
|
|
heat and passion and desire. Meriem was looking full into his
|
|
face as she fought for freedom when there came over her a
|
|
sudden recollection of a similar scene in which she had been a
|
|
participant and with it full recognition of her assailant. He was
|
|
the Swede Malbihn who had attacked her once before, who had
|
|
shot his companion who would have saved her, and from whom
|
|
she had been rescued by Bwana. His smooth face had deceived
|
|
her; but now with the growing beard and the similarity of
|
|
conditions recognition came swift and sure.
|
|
|
|
But today there would be no Bwana to save her.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 21
|
|
|
|
The black boy whom Malbihn had left awaiting him in the
|
|
clearing with instructions to remain until he returned sat
|
|
crouched at the foot of a tree for an hour when he was suddenly
|
|
startled by the coughing grunt of a lion behind him. With celerity
|
|
born of the fear of death the boy clambered into the branches
|
|
of the tree, and a moment later the king of beasts entered the
|
|
clearing and approached the carcass of an antelope which, until
|
|
now, the boy had not seen.
|
|
|
|
Until daylight the beast fed, while the black clung, sleepless,
|
|
to his perch, wondering what had become of his master and the
|
|
two ponies. He had been with Malbihn for a year, and so was
|
|
fairly conversant with the character of the white. His knowledge
|
|
presently led him to believe that he had been purposely abandoned.
|
|
Like the balance of Malbihn's followers, this boy hated his master
|
|
cordially--fear being the only bond that held him to the white man.
|
|
His present uncomfortable predicament but added fuel to the fires
|
|
of his hatred.
|
|
|
|
As the sun rose the lion withdrew into the jungle and the black
|
|
descended from his tree and started upon his long journey back
|
|
to camp. In his primitive brain revolved various fiendish plans
|
|
for a revenge that he would not have the courage to put into
|
|
effect when the test came and he stood face to face with one of
|
|
the dominant race.
|
|
|
|
A mile from the clearing he came upon the spoor of two ponies
|
|
crossing his path at right angles. A cunning look entered the
|
|
black's eyes. He laughed uproariously and slapped his thighs.
|
|
|
|
Negroes are tireless gossipers, which, of course, is but a
|
|
roundabout way of saying that they are human. Malbihn's boys
|
|
had been no exception to the rule and as many of them had been
|
|
with him at various times during the past ten years there was
|
|
little about his acts and life in the African wilds that was not
|
|
known directly or by hearsay to them all.
|
|
|
|
And so, knowing his master and many of his past deeds, knowing,
|
|
too, a great deal about the plans of Malbihn and Baynes that had
|
|
been overheard by himself, or other servants; and knowing well
|
|
from the gossip of the head-men that half of Malbihn's party lay
|
|
in camp by the great river far to the west, it was not difficult
|
|
for the boy to put two and two together and arrive at four as the
|
|
sum--the four being represented by a firm conviction that his
|
|
master had deceived the other white man and taken the latter's
|
|
woman to his western camp, leaving the other to suffer capture
|
|
and punishment at the hands of the Big Bwana whom all feared.
|
|
Again the boy bared his rows of big, white teeth and laughed aloud.
|
|
Then he resumed his northward way, traveling at a dogged trot that
|
|
ate up the miles with marvelous rapidity.
|
|
|
|
In the Swede's camp the Hon. Morison had spent an almost
|
|
sleepless night of nervous apprehension and doubts and fears.
|
|
Toward morning he had slept, utterly exhausted. It was the
|
|
headman who awoke him shortly after sun rise to remind him that
|
|
they must at once take up their northward journey. Baynes hung back.
|
|
He wanted to wait for "Hanson" and Meriem. The headman urged
|
|
upon him the danger that lay in loitering. The fellow knew his
|
|
master's plans sufficiently well to understand that he had done
|
|
something to arouse the ire of the Big Bwana and that it would
|
|
fare ill with them all if they were overtaken in Big Bwana's country.
|
|
At the suggestion Baynes took alarm.
|
|
|
|
What if the Big Bwana, as the head-man called him, had
|
|
surprised "Hanson" in his nefarious work. Would he not guess
|
|
the truth and possibly be already on the march to overtake and
|
|
punish him? Baynes had heard much of his host's summary
|
|
method of dealing out punishment to malefactors great and
|
|
small who transgressed the laws or customs of his savage little
|
|
world which lay beyond the outer ramparts of what men are
|
|
pleased to call frontiers. In this savage world where there was
|
|
no law the Big Bwana was law unto himself and all who dwelt
|
|
about him. It was even rumored that he had extracted the death
|
|
penalty from a white man who had maltreated a native girl.
|
|
|
|
Baynes shuddered at the recollection of this piece of gossip
|
|
as he wondered what his host would exact of the man who had
|
|
attempted to steal his young, white ward. The thought brought
|
|
him to his feet.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," he said, nervously, "we must get away from here at once.
|
|
Do you know the trail to the north?"
|
|
|
|
The head-man did, and he lost no time in getting the safari
|
|
upon the march.
|
|
|
|
It was noon when a tired and sweat-covered runner overtook
|
|
the trudging little column. The man was greeted with shouts of
|
|
welcome from his fellows, to whom he imparted all that he knew
|
|
and guessed of the actions of their master, so that the entire
|
|
safari was aware of matters before Baynes, who marched close
|
|
to the head of the column, was reached and acquainted with the
|
|
facts and the imaginings of the black boy whom Malbihn had
|
|
deserted in the clearing the night before.
|
|
|
|
When the Hon. Morison had listened to all that the boy had
|
|
to say and realized that the trader had used him as a tool whereby
|
|
he himself might get Meriem into his possession, his blood ran hot
|
|
with rage and he trembled with apprehension for the girl's safety.
|
|
|
|
That another contemplated no worse a deed than he had contemplated
|
|
in no way palliated the hideousness of the other's offense.
|
|
At first it did not occur to him that he would have wronged
|
|
Meriem no less than he believed "Hanson" contemplated wronging her.
|
|
Now his rage was more the rage of a man beaten at his own game
|
|
and robbed of the prize that he had thought already his.
|
|
|
|
"Do you know where your master has gone?" he asked the black.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, Bwana," replied the boy. "He has gone to the other camp
|
|
beside the big afi that flows far toward the setting sun.
|
|
|
|
"Can you take me to him?" demanded Baynes.
|
|
|
|
The boy nodded affirmatively. Here he saw a method of revenging
|
|
himself upon his hated Bwana and at the same time of escaping
|
|
the wrath of the Big Bwana whom all were positive would first
|
|
follow after the northerly safari.
|
|
|
|
"Can you and I, alone, reach his camp?" asked the Hon. Morison.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, Bwana," assured the black.
|
|
|
|
Baynes turned toward the head-man. He was conversant with
|
|
"Hanson's" plans now. He understood why he had wished to
|
|
move the northern camp as far as possible toward the northern
|
|
boundary of the Big Bwana's country--it would give him far
|
|
more time to make his escape toward the West Coast while the
|
|
Big Bwana was chasing the northern contingent. Well, he would
|
|
utilize the man's plans to his own end. He, too, must keep out
|
|
of the clutches of his host.
|
|
|
|
"You may take the men north as fast as possible," he said to
|
|
the head-man. "I shall return and attempt to lead the Big Bwana
|
|
to the west."
|
|
|
|
The Negro assented with a grunt. He had no desire to follow
|
|
this strange white man who was afraid at night; he had less to
|
|
remain at the tender mercies of the Big Bwana's lusty warriors,
|
|
between whom and his people there was long-standing blood
|
|
feud; and he was more than delighted, into the bargain, for a
|
|
legitimate excuse for deserting his much hated Swede master.
|
|
He knew a way to the north and his own country that the white
|
|
men did not know--a short cut across an arid plateau where lay
|
|
water holes of which the white hunters and explorers that had
|
|
passed from time to time the fringe of the dry country had
|
|
never dreamed. He might even elude the Big Bwana should he follow
|
|
them, and with this thought uppermost in his mind he gathered
|
|
the remnants of Malbihn's safari into a semblance of order and
|
|
moved off toward the north. And toward the southwest the black
|
|
boy led the Hon. Morison Baynes into the jungles.
|
|
|
|
Korak had waited about the camp, watching the Hon. Morison
|
|
until the safari had started north. Then, assured that the
|
|
young Englishman was going in the wrong direction to meet
|
|
Meriem he had abandoned him and returned slowly to the point
|
|
where he had seen the girl, for whom his heart yearned, in the
|
|
arms of another.
|
|
|
|
So great had been his happiness at seeing Meriem alive that,
|
|
for the instant, no thought of jealousy had entered his mind.
|
|
Later these thoughts had come--dark, bloody thoughts that
|
|
would have made the flesh of the Hon. Morison creep could he
|
|
have guessed that they were revolving in the brain of a savage
|
|
creature creeping stealthily among the branches of the forest
|
|
giant beneath which he waited the coming of "Hanson" and the girl.
|
|
|
|
And with passing of the hours had come subdued reflection
|
|
in which he had weighed himself against the trimly clad English
|
|
gentleman and--found that he was wanting. What had he to offer
|
|
her by comparison with that which the other man might offer?
|
|
What was his "mess of pottage" to the birthright that the other
|
|
had preserved? How could he dare go, naked and unkempt, to that
|
|
fair thing who had once been his jungle-fellow and propose the
|
|
thing that had been in his mind when first the realization of his
|
|
love had swept over him? He shuddered as he thought of the
|
|
irreparable wrong that his love would have done the innocent
|
|
child but for the chance that had snatched her from him before
|
|
it was too late. Doubtless she knew now the horror that had
|
|
been in his mind. Doubtless she hated and loathed him as he
|
|
hated and loathed himself when he let his mind dwell upon it.
|
|
He had lost her. No more surely had she been lost when he
|
|
thought her dead than she was in reality now that he had seen
|
|
her living--living in the guise of a refinement that had
|
|
transfigured and sanctified her.
|
|
|
|
He had loved her before, now he worshipped her. He knew
|
|
that he might never possess her now, but at least he might
|
|
see her. From a distance he might look upon her. Perhaps he
|
|
might serve her; but never must she guess that he had found her
|
|
or that he lived.
|
|
|
|
He wondered if she ever thought of him--if the happy days
|
|
that they had spent together never recurred to her mind.
|
|
It seemed unbelievable that such could be the case, and yet,
|
|
too, it seemed almost equally unbelievable that this beautiful
|
|
girl was the same disheveled, half naked, little sprite who
|
|
skipped nimbly among the branches of the trees as they ran and
|
|
played in the lazy, happy days of the past. It could not be
|
|
that her memory held more of the past than did her new appearance.
|
|
|
|
It was a sad Korak who ranged the jungle near the plain's edge
|
|
waiting for the coming of his Meriem--the Meriem who never came.
|
|
|
|
But there came another--a tall, broad-shouldered man in khaki
|
|
at the head of a swarthy crew of ebon warriors. The man's face
|
|
was set in hard, stern lines and the marks of sorrow were writ
|
|
deep about his mouth and eyes--so deep that the set expression
|
|
of rage upon his features could not obliterate them.
|
|
|
|
Korak saw the man pass beneath him where he hid in the great
|
|
tree that had harbored him before upon the edge of that fateful
|
|
little clearing. He saw him come and he set rigid and frozen and
|
|
suffering above him. He saw him search the ground with his
|
|
keen eyes, and he only sat there watching with eyes that glazed
|
|
from the intensity of his gaze. He saw him sign to his men that
|
|
he had come upon that which he sought and he saw him pass
|
|
out of sight toward the north, and still Korak sat like a graven
|
|
image, with a heart that bled in dumb misery. An hour later
|
|
Korak moved slowly away, back into the jungle toward the west.
|
|
He went listlessly, with bent head and stooped shoulders, like
|
|
an old man who bore upon his back the weight of a great sorrow.
|
|
|
|
Baynes, following his black guide, battled his way through
|
|
the dense underbrush, riding stooped low over his horse's neck,
|
|
or often he dismounted where the low branches swept too close
|
|
to earth to permit him to remain in the saddle. The black was
|
|
taking him the shortest way, which was no way at all for a
|
|
horseman, and after the first day's march the young Englishman
|
|
was forced to abandon his mount, and follow his nimble guide
|
|
entirely on foot.
|
|
|
|
During the long hours of marching the Hon. Morison had
|
|
much time to devote to thought, and as he pictured the probable
|
|
fate of Meriem at the hands of the Swede his rage against the
|
|
man became the greater. But presently there came to him a
|
|
realization of the fact that his own base plans had led the girl
|
|
into this terrible predicament, and that even had she escaped
|
|
"Hanson" she would have found but little better deserts awaiting
|
|
her with him.
|
|
|
|
There came too, the realization that Meriem was infinitely
|
|
more precious to him than he had imagined. For the first time
|
|
he commenced to compare her with other women of his acquaintance--
|
|
women of birth and position--and almost to his surprise--he
|
|
discovered that the young Arab girl suffered less than they by
|
|
the comparison. And then from hating "Hanson" he came to look
|
|
upon himself with hate and loathing--to see himself and his
|
|
perfidious act in all their contemptible hideousness.
|
|
|
|
Thus, in the crucible of shame amidst the white heat of naked
|
|
truths, the passion that the man had felt for the girl he had
|
|
considered his social inferior was transmuted into love. And as
|
|
he staggered on there burned within him beside his newborn
|
|
love another great passion--the passion of hate urging him on
|
|
to the consummation of revenge.
|
|
|
|
A creature of ease and luxury, he had never been subjected
|
|
to the hardships and tortures which now were his constant
|
|
companionship, yet, his clothing torn, his flesh scratched
|
|
and bleeding, he urged the black to greater speed, though with
|
|
every dozen steps he himself fell from exhaustion.
|
|
|
|
It was revenge which kept him going--that and a feeling that
|
|
in his suffering he was partially expiating the great wrong he
|
|
had done the girl he loved--for hope of saving her from the fate
|
|
into which he had trapped her had never existed. "Too late!
|
|
Too late!" was the dismal accompaniment of thought to which
|
|
he marched. "Too late! Too late to save; but not too late
|
|
to avenge!" That kept him up.
|
|
|
|
Only when it became too dark to see would he permit of a halt.
|
|
A dozen times in the afternoon he had threatened the black
|
|
with instant death when the tired guide insisted upon resting.
|
|
The fellow was terrified. He could not understand the remarkable
|
|
change that had so suddenly come over the white man who had
|
|
been afraid in the dark the night before. He would have
|
|
deserted this terrifying master had he had the opportunity; but
|
|
Baynes guessed that some such thought might be in the other's
|
|
mind, and so gave the fellow none. He kept close to him by day
|
|
and slept touching him at night in the rude thorn boma they
|
|
constructed as a slight protection against prowling carnivora.
|
|
|
|
That the Hon. Morison could sleep at all in the midst of the
|
|
savage jungle was sufficient indication that he had changed
|
|
considerably in the past twenty-four hours, and that he could
|
|
lie close beside a none-too-fragrant black man spoke of
|
|
possibilities for democracy within him yet all undreamed of.
|
|
|
|
Morning found him stiff and lame and sore, but none the less
|
|
determined to push on in pursuit of "Hanson" as rapidly as possible.
|
|
With his rifle he brought down a buck at a ford in a small stream
|
|
shortly after they broke camp, breakfastless. Begrudgingly he
|
|
permitted a halt while they cooked and ate, and then on again
|
|
through the wilderness of trees and vines and underbrush.
|
|
|
|
And in the meantime Korak wandered slowly westward, coming
|
|
upon the trail of Tantor, the elephant, whom he overtook
|
|
browsing in the deep shade of the jungle. The ape-man, lonely
|
|
and sorrowing, was glad of the companionship of his huge friend.
|
|
Affectionately the sinuous trunk encircled him, and he was
|
|
swung to the mighty back where so often before he had lolled
|
|
and dreamed the long afternoon away.
|
|
|
|
Far to the north the Big Bwana and his black warriors clung
|
|
tenaciously to the trail of the fleeing safari that was
|
|
luring them further and further from the girl they sought to
|
|
save, while back at the bungalow the woman who had loved Meriem
|
|
as though she had been her own waited impatiently and in sorrow
|
|
for the return of the rescuing party and the girl she was positive
|
|
her invincible lord and master would bring back with him.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 22
|
|
|
|
As Meriem struggled with Malbihn, her hands pinioned to her
|
|
sides by his brawny grip, hope died within her. She did not
|
|
utter a sound for she knew that there was none to come to her
|
|
assistance, and, too, the jungle training of her earlier life
|
|
had taught her the futility of appeals for succor in the savage
|
|
world of her up-bringing.
|
|
|
|
But as she fought to free herself one hand came in contact with
|
|
the butt of Malbihn's revolver where it rested in the holster at
|
|
his hip. Slowly he was dragging her toward the blankets, and
|
|
slowly her fingers encircled the coveted prize and drew it from
|
|
its resting place.
|
|
|
|
Then, as Malbihn stood at the edge of the disordered pile of
|
|
blankets, Meriem suddenly ceased to draw away from him, and
|
|
as quickly hurled her weight against him with the result that
|
|
he was thrown backward, his feet stumbled against the bedding
|
|
and he was hurled to his back. Instinctively his hands flew out
|
|
to save himself and at the same instant Meriem leveled the
|
|
revolver at his breast and pulled the trigger.
|
|
|
|
But the hammer fell futilely upon an empty shell, and Malbihn
|
|
was again upon his feet clutching at her. For a moment she
|
|
eluded him, and ran toward the entrance to the tent, but at the
|
|
very doorway his heavy hand fell upon her shoulder and dragged
|
|
her back. Wheeling upon him with the fury of a wounded lioness
|
|
Meriem grasped the long revolver by the barrel, swung it high
|
|
above her head and crashed it down full in Malbihn's face.
|
|
|
|
With an oath of pain and rage the man staggered backward,
|
|
releasing his hold upon her and then sank unconscious to
|
|
the ground. Without a backward look Meriem turned and fled
|
|
into the open. Several of the blacks saw her and tried to
|
|
intercept her flight, but the menace of the empty weapon kept
|
|
them at a distance. And so she won beyond the encircling
|
|
boma and disappeared into the jungle to the south.
|
|
|
|
Straight into the branches of a tree she went, true to the
|
|
arboreal instincts of the little mangani she had been, and
|
|
here she stripped off her riding skirt, her shoes and her
|
|
stockings, for she knew that she had before her a journey and
|
|
a flight which would not brook the burden of these garments.
|
|
Her riding breeches and jacket would have to serve as protection
|
|
from cold and thorns, nor would they hamper her over much;
|
|
but a skirt and shoes were impossible among the trees.
|
|
|
|
She had not gone far before she commenced to realize how slight
|
|
were her chances for survival without means of defense or a
|
|
weapon to bring down meat. Why had she not thought to strip
|
|
the cartridge belt from Malbihn's waist before she had left
|
|
his tent! With cartridges for the revolver she might hope to
|
|
bag small game, and to protect herself from all but the most
|
|
ferocious of the enemies that would beset her way back to the
|
|
beloved hearthstone of Bwana and My Dear.
|
|
|
|
With the thought came determination to return and obtain
|
|
the coveted ammunition. She realized that she was taking
|
|
great chances of recapture; but without means of defense
|
|
and of obtaining meat she felt that she could never hope to
|
|
reach safety. And so she turned her face back toward the
|
|
camp from which she had but just escaped.
|
|
|
|
She thought Malbihn dead, so terrific a blow had she dealt him,
|
|
and she hoped to find an opportunity after dark to enter the
|
|
camp and search his tent for the cartridge belt; but scarcely
|
|
had she found a hiding place in a great tree at the edge of the
|
|
boma where she could watch without danger of being discovered,
|
|
when she saw the Swede emerge from his tent, wiping blood from
|
|
his face, and hurling a volley of oaths and questions at his
|
|
terrified followers.
|
|
|
|
Shortly after the entire camp set forth in search of her and
|
|
when Meriem was positive that all were gone she descended
|
|
from her hiding place and ran quickly across the clearing to
|
|
Malbihn's tent. A hasty survey of the interior revealed no
|
|
ammunition; but in one corner was a box in which were packed
|
|
the Swede's personal belongings that he had sent along by his
|
|
headman to this westerly camp.
|
|
|
|
Meriem seized the receptacle as the possible container of
|
|
extra ammunition. Quickly she loosed the cords that held the
|
|
canvas covering about the box, and a moment later had raised the
|
|
lid and was rummaging through the heterogeneous accumulation of
|
|
odds and ends within. There were letters and papers and cuttings
|
|
from old newspapers, and among other things the photograph of a
|
|
little girl upon the back of which was pasted a cutting from a
|
|
Paris daily--a cutting that she could not read, yellowed and
|
|
dimmed by age and handling--but something about the photograph
|
|
of the little girl which was also reproduced in the newspaper
|
|
cutting held her attention. Where had she seen that picture before?
|
|
And then, quite suddenly, it came to her that this was a picture
|
|
of herself as she had been years and years before.
|
|
|
|
Where had it been taken? How had it come into the possession of
|
|
this man? Why had it been reproduced in a newspaper? What was
|
|
the story that the faded type told of it?
|
|
|
|
Meriem was baffled by the puzzle that her search for ammunition
|
|
had revealed. She stood gazing at the faded photograph for a
|
|
time and then bethought herself of the ammunition for which she
|
|
had come. Turning again to the box she rummaged to the bottom
|
|
and there in a corner she came upon a little box of cartridges.
|
|
A single glance assured her that they were intended for the weapon
|
|
she had thrust inside the band of her riding breeches, and slipping
|
|
them into her pocket she turned once more for an examination of the
|
|
baffling likeness of herself that she held in her hand.
|
|
|
|
As she stood thus in vain endeavor to fathom this inexplicable
|
|
mystery the sound of voices broke upon her ears. Instantly she
|
|
was all alert. They were coming closer! A second later she
|
|
recognized the lurid profanity of the Swede. Malbihn, her
|
|
persecutor, was returning! Meriem ran quickly to the opening of
|
|
the tent and looked out. It was too late! She was fairly cornered!
|
|
The white man and three of his black henchmen were coming straight
|
|
across the clearing toward the tent. What was she to do? She slipped
|
|
the photograph into her waist. Quickly she slipped a cartridge
|
|
into each of the chambers of the revolver. Then she backed toward
|
|
the end of the tent, keeping the entrance covered by her weapon.
|
|
The man stopped outside, and Meriem could hear Malbihn profanely
|
|
issuing instructions. He was a long time about it, and while he
|
|
talked in his bellowing, brutish voice, the girl sought some
|
|
avenue of escape. Stooping, she raised the bottom of the canvas
|
|
and looked beneath and beyond. There was no one in sight upon
|
|
that side. Throwing herself upon her stomach she wormed beneath
|
|
the tent wall just as Malbihn, with a final word to his men,
|
|
entered the tent.
|
|
|
|
Meriem heard him cross the floor, and then she rose and, stooping
|
|
low, ran to a native hut directly behind. Once inside this she
|
|
turned and glanced back. There was no one in sight. She had not
|
|
been seen. And now from Malbihn's tent she heard a great cursing.
|
|
The Swede had discovered the rifling of his box. He was shouting
|
|
to his men, and as she heard them reply Meriem darted from the hut
|
|
and ran toward the edge of the boma furthest from Malbihn's tent.
|
|
Overhanging the boma at this point was a tree that had been too
|
|
large, in the eyes of the rest-loving blacks, to cut down. So they
|
|
had terminated the boma just short of it. Meriem was thankful
|
|
for whatever circumstance had resulted in the leaving of that
|
|
particular tree where it was, since it gave her the much-needed
|
|
avenue of escape which she might not otherwise have had.
|
|
|
|
From her hiding place she saw Malbihn again enter the jungle, this
|
|
time leaving a guard of three of his boys in the camp. He went
|
|
toward the south, and after he had disappeared, Meriem skirted
|
|
the outside of the enclosure and made her way to the river.
|
|
Here lay the canoes that had been used in bringing the party from
|
|
the opposite shore. They were unwieldy things for a lone girl to
|
|
handle, but there was no other way and she must cross the river.
|
|
|
|
The landing place was in full view of the guard at the camp.
|
|
To risk the crossing under their eyes would have meant
|
|
undoubted capture. Her only hope lay in waiting until
|
|
darkness had fallen, unless some fortuitous circumstance
|
|
should arise before. For an hour she lay watching the guard,
|
|
one of whom seemed always in a position where he would
|
|
immediately discover her should she attempt to launch one
|
|
of the canoes.
|
|
|
|
Presently Malbihn appeared, coming out of the jungle, hot
|
|
and puffing. He ran immediately to the river where the canoes
|
|
lay and counted them. It was evident that it had suddenly
|
|
occurred to him that the girl must cross here if she wished to
|
|
return to her protectors. The expression of relief on his face
|
|
when he found that none of the canoes was gone was ample evidence
|
|
of what was passing in his mind. He turned and spoke hurriedly
|
|
to the head man who had followed him out of the jungle and
|
|
with whom were several other blacks.
|
|
|
|
Following Malbihn's instructions they launched all the canoes
|
|
but one. Malbihn called to the guards in the camp and a moment
|
|
later the entire party had entered the boats and were paddling
|
|
up stream.
|
|
|
|
Meriem watched them until a bend in the river directly above
|
|
the camp hid them from her sight. They were gone! She was
|
|
alone, and they had left a canoe in which lay a paddle! She could
|
|
scarce believe the good fortune that had come to her. To delay
|
|
now would be suicidal to her hopes. Quickly she ran from her
|
|
hiding place and dropped to the ground. A dozen yards lay
|
|
between her and the canoe.
|
|
|
|
Up stream, beyond the bend, Malbihn ordered his canoes in
|
|
to shore. He landed with his head man and crossed the little
|
|
point slowly in search of a spot where he might watch the canoe
|
|
he had left at the landing place. He was smiling in anticipation
|
|
of the almost certain success of his stratagem--sooner or later
|
|
the girl would come back and attempt to cross the river in one
|
|
of their canoes. It might be that the idea would not occur to her
|
|
for some time. They might have to wait a day, or two days; but
|
|
that she would come if she lived or was not captured by the men
|
|
he had scouting the jungle for her Malbihn was sure. That she
|
|
would come so soon, however, he had not guessed, and so when
|
|
he topped the point and came again within sight of the river he
|
|
saw that which drew an angry oath from his lips--his quarry
|
|
already was half way across the river.
|
|
|
|
Turning, he ran rapidly back to his boats, the head man at
|
|
his heels. Throwing themselves in, Malbihn urged his paddlers
|
|
to their most powerful efforts. The canoes shot out into the
|
|
stream and down with the current toward the fleeing quarry.
|
|
She had almost completed the crossing when they came in sight
|
|
of her. At the same instant she saw them, and redoubled her
|
|
efforts to reach the opposite shore before they should
|
|
overtake her. Two minutes' start of them was all Meriem
|
|
cared for. Once in the trees she knew that she could
|
|
outdistance and elude them. Her hopes were high--they could
|
|
not overtake her now--she had had too good a start of them.
|
|
|
|
Malbihn, urging his men onward with a stream of hideous oaths
|
|
and blows from his fists, realized that the girl was again
|
|
slipping from his clutches. The leading canoe, in the bow of
|
|
which he stood, was yet a hundred yards behind the fleeing
|
|
Meriem when she ran the point of her craft beneath the
|
|
overhanging trees on the shore of safety.
|
|
|
|
Malbihn screamed to her to halt. He seemed to have gone mad
|
|
with rage at the realization that he could not overtake her,
|
|
and then he threw his rifle to his shoulder, aimed carefully at
|
|
the slim figure scrambling into the trees, and fired.
|
|
|
|
Malbihn was an excellent shot. His misses at so short a distance
|
|
were practically non-existent, nor would he have missed this time
|
|
but for an accident occurring at the very instant that his finger
|
|
tightened upon the trigger--an accident to which Meriem owed her
|
|
life--the providential presence of a water-logged tree trunk, one
|
|
end of which was embedded in the mud of the river bottom and the
|
|
other end of which floated just beneath the surface where the prow
|
|
of Malbihn's canoe ran upon it as he fired. The slight deviation
|
|
of the boat's direction was sufficient to throw the muzzle of the
|
|
rifle out of aim. The bullet whizzed harmlessly by Meriem's head
|
|
and an instant later she had disappeared into the foliage of the tree.
|
|
|
|
There was a smile on her lips as she dropped to the ground to
|
|
cross a little clearing where once had stood a native village
|
|
surrounded by its fields. The ruined huts still stood in
|
|
crumbling decay. The rank vegetation of the jungle overgrew the
|
|
cultivated ground. Small trees already had sprung up in what had
|
|
been the village street; but desolation and loneliness hung like a
|
|
pall above the scene. To Meriem, however, it presented but a place
|
|
denuded of large trees which she must cross quickly to regain the
|
|
jungle upon the opposite side before Malbihn should have landed.
|
|
|
|
The deserted huts were, to her, all the better because they were
|
|
deserted--she did not see the keen eyes watching her from a dozen
|
|
points, from tumbling doorways, from behind tottering granaries.
|
|
In utter unconsciousness of impending danger she started up the
|
|
village street because it offered the clearest pathway to the jungle.
|
|
|
|
A mile away toward the east, fighting his way through the
|
|
jungle along the trail taken by Malbihn when he had brought
|
|
Meriem to his camp, a man in torn khaki--filthy, haggard,
|
|
unkempt--came to a sudden stop as the report of Malbihn's rifle
|
|
resounded faintly through the tangled forest. The black man just
|
|
ahead of him stopped, too.
|
|
|
|
"We are almost there, Bwana," he said. There was awe and
|
|
respect in his tone and manner.
|
|
|
|
The white man nodded and motioned his ebon guide forward
|
|
once more. It was the Hon. Morison Baynes--the fastidious--
|
|
the exquisite. His face and hands were scratched and smeared
|
|
with dried blood from the wounds he had come by in thorn
|
|
and thicket. His clothes were tatters. But through the blood
|
|
and the dirt and the rags a new Baynes shone forth--a handsomer
|
|
Baynes than the dandy and the fop of yore.
|
|
|
|
In the heart and soul of every son of woman lies the germ of
|
|
manhood and honor. Remorse for a scurvy act, and an honorable
|
|
desire to right the wrong he had done the woman he now knew he
|
|
really loved had excited these germs to rapid growth in Morison
|
|
Baynes--and the metamorphosis had taken place.
|
|
|
|
Onward the two stumbled toward the point from which the single
|
|
rifle shot had come. The black was unarmed--Baynes, fearing his
|
|
loyalty had not dared trust him even to carry the rifle which
|
|
the white man would have been glad to be relieved of many times
|
|
upon the long march; but now that they were approaching their goal,
|
|
and knowing as he did that hatred of Malbihn burned hot in the
|
|
black man's brain, Baynes handed him the rifle, for he guessed
|
|
that there would be fighting--he intended that there should, or
|
|
he had come to avenge. Himself, an excellent revolver shot,
|
|
would depend upon the smaller weapon at his side.
|
|
|
|
As the two forged ahead toward their goal they were startled
|
|
by a volley of shots ahead of them. Then came a few scattering
|
|
reports, some savage yells, and silence. Baynes was frantic in
|
|
his endeavors to advance more rapidly, but there the jungle
|
|
seemed a thousand times more tangled than before. A dozen
|
|
times he tripped and fell. Twice the black followed a blind trail
|
|
and they were forced to retrace their steps; but at last they came
|
|
out into a little clearing near the big afi--a clearing that once
|
|
held a thriving village, but lay somber and desolate in decay and ruin.
|
|
|
|
In the jungle vegetation that overgrew what had once been the
|
|
main village street lay the body of a black man, pierced through
|
|
the heart with a bullet, and still warm. Baynes and his companion
|
|
looked about in all directions; but no sign of living being
|
|
could they discover. They stood in silence listening intently.
|
|
|
|
What was that! Voices and the dip of paddles out upon the river?
|
|
|
|
Baynes ran across the dead village toward the fringe of jungle
|
|
upon the river's brim. The black was at his side. Together they
|
|
forced their way through the screening foliage until they could
|
|
obtain a view of the river, and there, almost to the other shore,
|
|
they saw Malbihn's canoes making rapidly for camp. The black
|
|
recognized his companions immediately.
|
|
|
|
"How can we cross?" asked Baynes.
|
|
|
|
The black shook his head. There was no canoe and the crocodiles
|
|
made it equivalent to suicide to enter the water in an attempt to
|
|
swim across. Just then the fellow chanced to glance downward.
|
|
Beneath him, wedged among the branches of a tree, lay the canoe
|
|
in which Meriem had escaped. The Negro grasped Baynes' arm and
|
|
pointed toward his find. The Hon. Morison could scarce repress
|
|
a shout of exultation. Quickly the two slid down the drooping
|
|
branches into the boat. The black seized the paddle and Baynes
|
|
shoved them out from beneath the tree. A second later the canoe
|
|
shot out upon the bosom of the river and headed toward the
|
|
opposite shore and the camp of the Swede. Baynes squatted in
|
|
the bow, straining his eyes after the men pulling the other
|
|
canoes upon the bank across from him. He saw Malbihn step from
|
|
the bow of the foremost of the little craft. He saw him turn
|
|
and glance back across the river. He could see his start of
|
|
surprise as his eyes fell upon the pursuing canoe, and called
|
|
the attention of his followers to it.
|
|
|
|
Then he stood waiting, for there was but one canoe and
|
|
two men--little danger to him and his followers in that.
|
|
Malbihn was puzzled. Who was this white man? He did not
|
|
recognize him though Baynes' canoe was now in mid stream
|
|
and the features of both its occupants plainly discernible
|
|
to those on shore. One of Malbihn's blacks it was who first
|
|
recognized his fellow black in the person of Baynes' companion.
|
|
Then Malbihn guessed who the white man must be, though he could
|
|
scarce believe his own reasoning. It seemed beyond the pale
|
|
of wildest conjecture to suppose that the Hon. Morison Baynes
|
|
had followed him through the jungle with but a single companion--
|
|
and yet it was true. Beneath the dirt and dishevelment he
|
|
recognized him at last, and in the necessity of admitting that
|
|
it was he, Malbihn was forced to recognize the incentive that
|
|
had driven Baynes, the weakling and coward, through the savage
|
|
jungle upon his trail.
|
|
|
|
The man had come to demand an accounting and to avenge.
|
|
It seemed incredible, and yet there could be no other explanation.
|
|
Malbihn shrugged. Well, others had sought Malbihn for similar
|
|
reasons in the course of a long and checkered career. He fingered
|
|
his rifle, and waited.
|
|
|
|
Now the canoe was within easy speaking distance of the shore.
|
|
|
|
"What do you want?" yelled Malbihn, raising his weapon threateningly.
|
|
|
|
The Hon. Morison Baynes leaped to his feet.
|
|
|
|
"You, damn you!" he shouted, whipping out his revolver and
|
|
firing almost simultaneously with the Swede.
|
|
|
|
As the two reports rang out Malbihn dropped his rifle, clutched
|
|
frantically at his breast, staggered, fell first to his knees
|
|
and then lunged upon his face. Baynes stiffened. His head flew
|
|
back spasmodically. For an instant he stood thus, and then
|
|
crumpled very gently into the bottom of the boat.
|
|
|
|
The black paddler was at a loss as to what to do. If Malbihn
|
|
really were dead he could continue on to join his fellows without
|
|
fear; but should the Swede only be wounded he would be safer
|
|
upon the far shore. Therefore he hesitated, holding the canoe
|
|
in mid stream. He had come to have considerable respect for his
|
|
new master and was not unmoved by his death. As he sat gazing
|
|
at the crumpled body in the bow of the boat he saw it move.
|
|
Very feebly the man essayed to turn over. He still lived.
|
|
The black moved forward and lifted him to a sitting position.
|
|
He was standing in front of him, his paddle in one hand, asking
|
|
Baynes where he was hit when there was another shot from
|
|
shore and the Negro pitched head long overboard, his paddle
|
|
still clutched in his dead fingers--shot through the forehead.
|
|
|
|
Baynes turned weakly in the direction of the shore to see
|
|
Malbihn drawn up upon his elbows levelling his rifle at him.
|
|
The Englishman slid to the bottom of the canoe as a bullet
|
|
whizzed above him. Malbihn, sore hit, took longer in aiming,
|
|
nor was his aim as sure as formerly. With difficulty Baynes
|
|
turned himself over on his belly and grasping his revolver in his
|
|
right hand drew himself up until he could look over the edge of
|
|
the canoe.
|
|
|
|
Malbihn saw him instantly and fired; but Baynes did not flinch
|
|
or duck. With painstaking care he aimed at the target upon the
|
|
shore from which he now was drifting with the current. His finger
|
|
closed upon the trigger--there was a flash and a report, and
|
|
Malbihn's giant frame jerked to the impact of another bullet.
|
|
|
|
But he was not yet dead. Again he aimed and fired, the bullet
|
|
splintering the gunwale of the canoe close by Baynes' face.
|
|
Baynes fired again as his canoe drifted further down stream and
|
|
Malbihn answered from the shore where he lay in a pool of his
|
|
own blood. And thus, doggedly, the two wounded men continued
|
|
to carry on their weird duel until the winding African river
|
|
had carried the Hon. Morison Baynes out of sight around a
|
|
wooded point.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 23
|
|
|
|
Meriem had traversed half the length of the village street
|
|
when a score of white-robed Negroes and half-castes leaped
|
|
out upon her from the dark interiors of surrounding huts.
|
|
She turned to flee, but heavy hands seized her, and when she
|
|
turned at last to plead with them her eyes fell upon the face
|
|
of a tall, grim, old man glaring down upon her from beneath
|
|
the folds of his burnous.
|
|
|
|
At sight of him she staggered back in shocked and terrified surprise.
|
|
It was The Sheik!
|
|
|
|
Instantly all the old fears and terrors of her childhood returned
|
|
upon her. She stood trembling before this horrible old man,
|
|
as a murderer before the judge about to pass sentence of death
|
|
upon him. She knew that The Sheik recognized her. The years
|
|
and the changed raiment had not altered her so much but what one
|
|
who had known her features so well in childhood would know her now.
|
|
|
|
"So you have come back to your people, eh?" snarled The Sheik.
|
|
"Come back begging for food and protection, eh?"
|
|
|
|
"Let me go," cried the girl. "I ask nothing of you, but that
|
|
you let me go back to the Big Bwana."
|
|
|
|
"The Big Bwana?" almost screamed The Sheik, and then followed
|
|
a stream of profane, Arabic invective against the white man
|
|
whom all the transgressors of the jungle feared and hated.
|
|
"You would go back to the Big Bwana, would you? So that is
|
|
where you have been since you ran away from me, is it? And who
|
|
comes now across the river after you--the Big Bwana?"
|
|
|
|
"The Swede whom you once chased away from your country
|
|
when he and his companion conspired with Nbeeda to steal me
|
|
from you," replied Meriem.
|
|
|
|
The Sheik's eyes blazed, and he called his men to approach
|
|
the shore and hide among the bushes that they might ambush
|
|
and annihilate Malbihn and his party; but Malbihn already had
|
|
landed and crawling through the fringe of jungle was at that very
|
|
moment looking with wide and incredulous eyes upon the scene
|
|
being enacted in the street of the deserted village. He recognized
|
|
The Sheik the moment his eyes fell upon him. There were two
|
|
men in the world that Malbihn feared as he feared the devil.
|
|
One was the Big Bwana and the other The Sheik. A single glance
|
|
he took at that gaunt, familiar figure and then he turned tail
|
|
and scurried back to his canoe calling his followers after him.
|
|
And so it happened that the party was well out in the stream before
|
|
The Sheik reached the shore, and after a volley and a few parting
|
|
shots that were returned from the canoes the Arab called his
|
|
men off and securing his prisoner set off toward the South.
|
|
|
|
One of the bullets from Malbihn's force had struck a black
|
|
standing in the village street where he had been left with
|
|
another to guard Meriem, and his companions had left him where
|
|
he had fallen, after appropriating his apparel and belongings.
|
|
His was the body that Baynes had discovered when he had entered
|
|
the village.
|
|
|
|
The Sheik and his party had been marching southward along
|
|
the river when one of them, dropping out of line to fetch water,
|
|
had seen Meriem paddling desperately from the opposite shore.
|
|
The fellow had called The Sheik's attention to the strange sight--
|
|
a white woman alone in Central Africa and the old Arab had hidden
|
|
his men in the deserted village to capture her when she landed,
|
|
for thoughts of ransom were always in the mind of The Sheik.
|
|
More than once before had glittering gold filtered through
|
|
his fingers from a similar source. It was easy money and The
|
|
Sheik had none too much easy money since the Big Bwana had
|
|
so circumscribed the limits of his ancient domain that he dared
|
|
not even steal ivory from natives within two hundred miles of
|
|
the Big Bwana's douar. And when at last the woman had walked
|
|
into the trap he had set for her and he had recognized her as the
|
|
same little girl he had brutalized and mal-treated years before
|
|
his gratification had been huge. Now he lost no time in
|
|
establishing the old relations of father and daughter that had
|
|
existed between them in the past. At the first opportunity he
|
|
struck her a heavy blow across the face. He forced her to walk
|
|
when he might have dismounted one of his men instead, or had her
|
|
carried on a horse's rump. He seemed to revel in the discovery of
|
|
new methods for torturing or humiliating her, and among all his
|
|
followers she found no single one to offer her sympathy, or who
|
|
dared defend her, even had they had the desire to do so.
|
|
|
|
A two days' march brought them at last to the familiar scenes
|
|
of her childhood, and the first face upon which she set her eyes
|
|
as she was driven through the gates into the strong stockade was
|
|
that of the toothless, hideous Mabunu, her one time nurse. It was
|
|
as though all the years that had intervened were but a dream.
|
|
Had it not been for her clothing and the fact that she had grown in
|
|
stature she might well have believed it so. All was there as she
|
|
had left it--the new faces which supplanted some of the old were
|
|
of the same bestial, degraded type. There were a few young Arabs
|
|
who had joined The Sheik since she had been away. Otherwise all
|
|
was the same--all but one. Geeka was not there, and she found
|
|
herself missing Geeka as though the ivory-headed one had been a
|
|
flesh and blood intimate and friend. She missed her ragged little
|
|
confidante, into whose deaf ears she had been wont to pour her
|
|
many miseries and her occasional joys--Geeka, of the splinter limbs
|
|
and the ratskin torso--Geeka the disreputable--Geeka the beloved.
|
|
|
|
For a time the inhabitants of The Sheik's village who had not
|
|
been upon the march with him amused themselves by inspecting
|
|
the strangely clad white girl, whom some of them had known as a
|
|
little child. Mabunu pretended great joy at her return, baring
|
|
her toothless gums in a hideous grimace that was intended to be
|
|
indicative of rejoicing. But Meriem could but shudder as she
|
|
recalled the cruelties of this terrible old hag in the years gone by.
|
|
|
|
Among the Arabs who had come in her absence was a tall young
|
|
fellow of twenty--a handsome, sinister looking youth--who
|
|
stared at her in open admiration until The Sheik came and
|
|
ordered him away, and Abdul Kamak went, scowling.
|
|
|
|
At last, their curiosity satisfied, Meriem was alone. As of old,
|
|
she was permitted the freedom of the village, for the stockade
|
|
was high and strong and the only gates were well-guarded by day
|
|
and by night; but as of old she cared not for the companionship
|
|
of the cruel Arabs and the degraded blacks who formed the
|
|
following of The Sheik, and so, as had been her wont in the
|
|
sad days of her childhood, she slunk down to an unfrequented
|
|
corner of the enclosure where she had often played at house-
|
|
keeping with her beloved Geeka beneath the spreading branches
|
|
of the great tree that had overhung the palisade; but now the tree
|
|
was gone, and Meriem guessed the reason. It was from this tree
|
|
that Korak had descended and struck down The Sheik the day
|
|
that he had rescued her from the life of misery and torture that
|
|
had been her lot for so long that she could remember no other.
|
|
|
|
There were low bushes growing within the stockade, however,
|
|
and in the shade of these Meriem sat down to think. A little
|
|
glow of happiness warmed her heart as she recalled her first
|
|
meeting with Korak and then the long years that he had cared
|
|
for and protected her with the solicitude and purity of an
|
|
elder brother. For months Korak had not so occupied her
|
|
thoughts as he did today. He seemed closer and dearer now
|
|
than ever he had before, and she wondered that her heart had
|
|
drifted so far from loyalty to his memory. And then came the
|
|
image of the Hon. Morison, the exquisite, and Meriem was troubled.
|
|
Did she really love the flawless young Englishman? She thought
|
|
of the glories of London, of which he had told her in such
|
|
glowing language. She tried to picture herself admired and
|
|
honored in the midst of the gayest society of the great capital.
|
|
The pictures she drew were the pictures that the Hon. Morison
|
|
had drawn for her. They were alluring pictures, but through them
|
|
all the brawny, half-naked figure of the giant Adonis of the jungle
|
|
persisted in obtruding itself.
|
|
|
|
Meriem pressed her hand above her heart as she stifled a sigh,
|
|
and as she did so she felt the hard outlines of the photograph
|
|
she had hidden there as she slunk from Malbihn's tent. Now she
|
|
drew it forth and commenced to re-examine it more carefully than
|
|
she had had time to do before. She was sure that the baby face
|
|
was hers. She studied every detail of the picture. Half hidden
|
|
in the lace of the dainty dress rested a chain and locket.
|
|
Meriem puckered her brows. What tantalizing half-memories
|
|
it awakened! Could this flower of evident civilization be the
|
|
little Arab Meriem, daughter of The Sheik? It was impossible,
|
|
and yet that locket? Meriem knew it. She could not refute the
|
|
conviction of her memory. She had seen that locket before and it
|
|
had been hers. What strange mystery lay buried in her past?
|
|
|
|
As she sat gazing at the picture she suddenly became aware that
|
|
she was not alone--that someone was standing close behind her--
|
|
some one who had approached her noiselessly. Guiltily she thrust
|
|
the picture back into her waist. A hand fell upon her shoulder.
|
|
She was sure that it was The Sheik and she awaited in dumb terror
|
|
the blow that she knew would follow.
|
|
|
|
No blow came and she looked upward over her shoulder--into the
|
|
eyes of Abdul Kamak, the young Arab.
|
|
|
|
"I saw," he said, "the picture that you have just hidden. It is
|
|
you when you were a child--a very young child. May I see it again?"
|
|
|
|
Meriem drew away from him.
|
|
|
|
"I will give it back," he said. "I have heard of you and
|
|
I know that you have no love for The Sheik, your father.
|
|
Neither have I. I will not betray you. Let me see the picture."
|
|
|
|
Friendless among cruel enemies, Meriem clutched at the straw
|
|
that Abdul Kamak held out to her. Perhaps in him she might
|
|
find the friend she needed. Anyway he had seen the picture and
|
|
if he was not a friend he could tell The Sheik about it and it
|
|
would be taken away from her. So she might as well grant his
|
|
request and hope that he had spoken fairly, and would deal fairly.
|
|
She drew the photograph from its hiding place and handed it to him.
|
|
|
|
Abdul Kamak examined it carefully, comparing it, feature by feature
|
|
with the girl sitting on the ground looking up into his face.
|
|
Slowly he nodded his head.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," he said, "it is you, but where was it taken? How does
|
|
it happen that The Sheik's daughter is clothed in the garments
|
|
of the unbeliever?"
|
|
|
|
"I do not know," replied Meriem. "I never saw the picture
|
|
until a couple of days ago, when I found it in the tent of the
|
|
Swede, Malbihn."
|
|
|
|
Abdul Kamak raised his eyebrows. He turned the picture over and
|
|
as his eyes fell upon the old newspaper cutting they went wide.
|
|
He could read French, with difficulty, it is true; but he could
|
|
read it. He had been to Paris. He had spent six months there
|
|
with a troupe of his desert fellows, upon exhibition, and he had
|
|
improved his time, learning many of the customs, some of the
|
|
language, and most of the vices of his conquerors. Now he
|
|
put his learning to use. Slowly, laboriously he read the
|
|
yellowed cutting. His eyes were no longer wide. Instead they
|
|
narrowed to two slits of cunning. When he had done he looked at
|
|
the girl.
|
|
|
|
"You have read this?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"It is French," she replied, "and I do not read French."
|
|
|
|
Abdul Kamak stood long in silence looking at the girl. She was
|
|
very beautiful. He desired her, as had many other men who had
|
|
seen her. At last he dropped to one knee beside her.
|
|
|
|
A wonderful idea had sprung to Abdul Kamak's mind. It was an
|
|
idea that might be furthered if the girl were kept in ignorance
|
|
of the contents of that newspaper cutting. It would certainly be
|
|
doomed should she learn its contents.
|
|
|
|
"Meriem," he whispered, "never until today have my eyes
|
|
beheld you, yet at once they told my heart that it must ever be
|
|
your servant. You do not know me, but I ask that you trust me.
|
|
I can help you. You hate The Sheik--so do I. Let me take you
|
|
away from him. Come with me, and we will go back to the
|
|
great desert where my father is a sheik mightier than is yours.
|
|
Will you come?"
|
|
|
|
Meriem sat in silence. She hated to wound the only one who
|
|
had offered her protection and friendship; but she did not want
|
|
Abdul Kamak's love. Deceived by her silence the man seized
|
|
her and strained her to him; but Meriem struggled to free herself.
|
|
|
|
"I do not love you," she cried. "Oh, please do not make me
|
|
hate you. You are the only one who has shown kindness toward
|
|
me, and I want to like you, but I cannot love you."
|
|
|
|
Abdul Kamak drew himself to his full height.
|
|
|
|
"You will learn to love me," he said, "for I shall take you
|
|
whether you will or no. You hate The Sheik and so you will not
|
|
tell him, for if you do I will tell him of the picture. I hate
|
|
The Sheik, and--"
|
|
|
|
"You hate The Sheik?" came a grim voice from behind them.
|
|
|
|
Both turned to see The Sheik standing a few paces from them.
|
|
Abdul still held the picture in his hand. Now he thrust it
|
|
within his burnous.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," he said, "I hate the Sheik," and as he spoke he sprang
|
|
toward the older man, felled him with a blow and dashed on
|
|
across the village to the line where his horse was picketed,
|
|
saddled and ready, for Abdul Kamak had been about to ride
|
|
forth to hunt when he had seen the stranger girl alone by
|
|
the bushes.
|
|
|
|
Leaping into the saddle Abdul Kamak dashed for the village gates.
|
|
The Sheik, momentarily stunned by the blow that had felled him,
|
|
now staggered to his feet, shouting lustily to his followers to
|
|
stop the escaped Arab. A dozen blacks leaped forward to intercept
|
|
the horseman, only to be ridden down or brushed aside by the muzzle
|
|
of Abdul Kamak's long musket, which he lashed from side to side
|
|
about him as he spurred on toward the gate. But here he must
|
|
surely be intercepted. Already the two blacks stationed there
|
|
were pushing the unwieldy portals to. Up flew the barrel of the
|
|
fugitive's weapon. With reins flying loose and his horse at a mad
|
|
gallop the son of the desert fired once--twice; and both the keepers
|
|
of the gate dropped in their tracks. With a wild whoop of exultation,
|
|
twirling his musket high above his head and turning in his saddle
|
|
to laugh back into the faces of his pursuers Abdul Kamak dashed
|
|
out of the village of The Sheik and was swallowed up by the jungle.
|
|
|
|
Foaming with rage The Sheik ordered immediate pursuit, and
|
|
then strode rapidly back to where Meriem sat huddled by the
|
|
bushes where he had left her.
|
|
|
|
"The picture!" he cried. "What picture did the dog speak of?
|
|
Where is it? Give it to me at once!"
|
|
|
|
"He took it," replied Meriem, dully.
|
|
|
|
"What was it?" again demanded The Sheik, seizing the girl
|
|
roughly by the hair and dragging her to her feet, where he shook
|
|
her venomously. "What was it a picture of?"
|
|
|
|
"Of me," said Meriem, "when I was a little girl. I stole it
|
|
from Malbihn, the Swede--it had printing on the back cut from
|
|
an old newspaper."
|
|
|
|
The Sheik went white with rage.
|
|
|
|
"What said the printing?" he asked in a voice so low that she
|
|
but barely caught his words.
|
|
|
|
"I do not know. It was in French and I cannot read French."
|
|
|
|
The Sheik seemed relieved. He almost smiled, nor did he
|
|
again strike Meriem before he turned and strode away with the
|
|
parting admonition that she speak never again to any other than
|
|
Mabunu and himself. And along the caravan trail galloped Abdul
|
|
Kamak toward the north.
|
|
|
|
|
|
As his canoe drifted out of sight and range of the wounded
|
|
Swede the Hon. Morison sank weakly to its bottom where he
|
|
lay for long hours in partial stupor.
|
|
|
|
It was night before he fully regained consciousness. And then
|
|
he lay for a long time looking up at the stars and trying to
|
|
recollect where he was, what accounted for the gently rocking
|
|
motion of the thing upon which he lay, and why the position of
|
|
the stars changed so rapidly and miraculously. For a while
|
|
he thought he was dreaming, but when he would have moved to
|
|
shake sleep from him the pain of his wound recalled to him the
|
|
events that had led up to his present position. Then it was
|
|
that he realized that he was floating down a great African river
|
|
in a native canoe--alone, wounded, and lost.
|
|
|
|
Painfully he dragged himself to a sitting position. He noticed
|
|
that the wound pained him less than he had imagined it would.
|
|
He felt of it gingerly--it had ceased to bleed. Possibly it
|
|
was but a flesh wound after all, and nothing serious. If it
|
|
totally incapacitated him even for a few days it would mean
|
|
death, for by that time he would be too weakened by hunger and
|
|
pain to provide food for himself.
|
|
|
|
From his own troubles his mind turned to Meriem's. That she
|
|
had been with the Swede at the time he had attempted to reach
|
|
the fellow's camp he naturally believed; but he wondered what
|
|
would become of her now. Even if Hanson died of his wounds
|
|
would Meriem be any better off? She was in the power of equally
|
|
villainous men--brutal savages of the lowest order. Baynes buried
|
|
his face in his hands and rocked back and forth as the hideous
|
|
picture of her fate burned itself into his consciousness. And it
|
|
was he who had brought this fate upon her! His wicked desire
|
|
had snatched a pure and innocent girl from the protection of
|
|
those who loved her to hurl her into the clutches of the bestial
|
|
Swede and his outcast following! And not until it had become
|
|
too late had he realized the magnitude of the crime he himself
|
|
had planned and contemplated. Not until it had become too late
|
|
had he realized that greater than his desire, greater than his lust,
|
|
greater than any passion he had ever felt before was the newborn
|
|
love that burned within his breast for the girl he would have ruined.
|
|
|
|
The Hon. Morison Baynes did not fully realize the change
|
|
that had taken place within him. Had one suggested that he ever
|
|
had been aught than the soul of honor and chivalry he would
|
|
have taken umbrage forthwith. He knew that he had done a vile
|
|
thing when he had plotted to carry Meriem away to London, yet
|
|
he excused it on the ground of his great passion for the girl
|
|
having temporarily warped his moral standards by the intensity
|
|
of its heat. But, as a matter of fact, a new Baynes had been born.
|
|
Never again could this man be bent to dishonor by the intensity
|
|
of a desire. His moral fiber had been strengthened by the mental
|
|
suffering he had endured. His mind and his soul had been purged
|
|
by sorrow and remorse.
|
|
|
|
His one thought now was to atone--win to Meriem's side and
|
|
lay down his life, if necessary, in her protection. His eyes
|
|
sought the length of the canoe in search of the paddle, for a
|
|
determination had galvanized him to immediate action despite
|
|
his weakness and his wound. But the paddle was gone. He turned
|
|
his eyes toward the shore. Dimly through the darkness of a
|
|
moonless night he saw the awful blackness of the jungle, yet it
|
|
touched no responsive chord of terror within him now as it had
|
|
done in the past. He did not even wonder that he was unafraid, for
|
|
his mind was entirely occupied with thoughts of another's danger.
|
|
|
|
Drawing himself to his knees he leaned over the edge of the
|
|
canoe and commenced to paddle vigorously with his open palm.
|
|
Though it tired and hurt him he kept assiduously at his self
|
|
imposed labor for hours. Little by little the drifting canoe moved
|
|
nearer and nearer the shore. The Hon. Morison could hear a
|
|
lion roaring directly opposite him and so close that he felt he
|
|
must be almost to the shore. He drew his rifle closer to his side;
|
|
but he did not cease to paddle.
|
|
|
|
After what seemed to the tired man an eternity of time he felt
|
|
the brush of branches against the canoe and heard the swirl of
|
|
the water about them. A moment later he reached out and
|
|
clutched a leafy limb. Again the lion roared--very near it
|
|
seemed now, and Baynes wondered if the brute could have been
|
|
following along the shore waiting for him to land.
|
|
|
|
He tested the strength of the limb to which he clung. It seemed
|
|
strong enough to support a dozen men. Then he reached down
|
|
and lifted his rifle from the bottom of the canoe, slipping the
|
|
sling over his shoulder. Again he tested the branch, and then
|
|
reaching upward as far as he could for a safe hold he drew
|
|
himself painfully and slowly upward until his feet swung clear
|
|
of the canoe, which, released, floated silently from beneath him
|
|
to be lost forever in the blackness of the dark shadows down stream.
|
|
|
|
He had burned his bridges behind him. He must either climb aloft
|
|
or drop back into the river; but there had been no other way.
|
|
He struggled to raise one leg over the limb, but found himself
|
|
scarce equal to the effort, for he was very weak. For a time
|
|
he hung there feeling his strength ebbing. He knew that he
|
|
must gain the branch above at once or it would be too late.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly the lion roared almost in his ear. Baynes glanced up.
|
|
He saw two spots of flame a short distance from and above him.
|
|
The lion was standing on the bank of the river glaring at him,
|
|
and--waiting for him. Well, thought the Hon. Morison, let
|
|
him wait. Lions can't climb trees, and if I get into this
|
|
one I shall be safe enough from him.
|
|
|
|
The young Englishman's feet hunt almost to the surface of the
|
|
water--closer than he knew, for all was pitch dark below as
|
|
above him. Presently he heard a slight commotion in the river
|
|
beneath him and something banged against one of his feet,
|
|
followed almost instantly by a sound that he felt he could not
|
|
have mistaken--the click of great jaws snapping together.
|
|
|
|
"By George!" exclaimed the Hon. Morison, aloud. "The beggar
|
|
nearly got me," and immediately he struggled again to climb
|
|
higher and to comparative safety; but with that final effort
|
|
he knew that it was futile. Hope that had survived persistently
|
|
until now began to wane. He felt his tired, numbed fingers
|
|
slipping from their hold--he was dropping back into the river--
|
|
into the jaws of the frightful death that awaited him there.
|
|
|
|
And then he heard the leaves above him rustle to the movement of
|
|
a creature among them. The branch to which he clung bent beneath
|
|
an added weight--and no light weight, from the way it sagged; but
|
|
still Baynes clung desperately--he would not give up voluntarily
|
|
either to the death above or the death below.
|
|
|
|
He felt a soft, warm pad upon the fingers of one of his hands
|
|
where they circled the branch to which he clung, and then
|
|
something reached down out of the blackness above and dragged
|
|
him up among the branches of the tree.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 24
|
|
|
|
Sometimes lolling upon Tantor's back, sometimes roaming the
|
|
jungle in solitude, Korak made his way slowly toward the West
|
|
and South. He made but a few miles a day, for he had a whole
|
|
lifetime before him and no place in particular to go. Possibly he
|
|
would have moved more rapidly but for the thought which continually
|
|
haunted him that each mile he traversed carried him further and
|
|
further away from Meriem--no longer his Meriem, as of yore, it
|
|
is true! but still as dear to him as ever.
|
|
|
|
Thus he came upon the trail of The Sheik's band as it traveled
|
|
down river from the point where The Sheik had captured Meriem
|
|
to his own stockaded village. Korak pretty well knew who it was
|
|
that had passed, for there were few in the great jungle with whom
|
|
he was not familiar, though it had been years since he had come
|
|
this far north. He had no particular business, however, with the
|
|
old Sheik and so he did not propose following him--the further
|
|
from men he could stay the better pleased he would be--he wished
|
|
that he might never see a human face again. Men always brought
|
|
him sorrow and misery.
|
|
|
|
The river suggested fishing and so he waddled upon its shores,
|
|
catching fish after a fashion of his own devising and eating
|
|
them raw. When night came he curled up in a great tree beside
|
|
the stream--the one from which he had been fishing during the
|
|
afternoon--and was soon asleep. Numa, roaring beneath him,
|
|
awoke him. He was about to call out in anger to his noisy
|
|
neighbor when something else caught his attention. He listened.
|
|
Was there something in the tree beside himself? Yes, he heard
|
|
the noise of something below him trying to clamber upward.
|
|
Presently he heard the click of a crocodile's jaws in the waters
|
|
beneath, and then, low but distinct: "By George! The beggar nearly
|
|
got me." The voice was familiar.
|
|
|
|
Korak glanced downward toward the speaker. Outlined against
|
|
the faint luminosity of the water he saw the figure of a man
|
|
clinging to a lower branch of the tree. Silently and swiftly the
|
|
ape-man clambered downward. He felt a hand beneath his foot.
|
|
He reached down and clutched the figure beneath him and dragged
|
|
it up among the branches. It struggled weakly and struck
|
|
at him; but Korak paid no more attention than Tantor to an ant.
|
|
He lugged his burden to the higher safety and greater comfort
|
|
of a broad crotch, and there he propped it in a sitting position
|
|
against the bole of the tree. Numa still was roaring beneath
|
|
them, doubtless in anger that he had been robbed of his prey.
|
|
Korak shouted down at him, calling him, in the language of the
|
|
great apes, "Old green-eyed eater of carrion," "Brother of Dango,"
|
|
the hyena, and other choice appellations of jungle opprobrium.
|
|
|
|
The Hon. Morison Baynes, listening, felt assured that a gorilla
|
|
had seized upon him. He felt for his revolver, and as he was
|
|
drawing it stealthily from its holster a voice asked in perfectly
|
|
good English, "Who are you?"
|
|
|
|
Baynes started so that he nearly fell from the branch.
|
|
|
|
"My God!" he exclaimed. "Are you a man?"
|
|
|
|
"What did you think I was?" asked Korak.
|
|
|
|
"A gorilla," replied Baynes, honestly.
|
|
|
|
Korak laughed.
|
|
|
|
"Who are you?" he repeated.
|
|
|
|
"I'm an Englishman by the name of Baynes; but who the devil
|
|
are you?" asked the Hon. Morison.
|
|
|
|
"They call me The Killer," replied Korak, giving the English
|
|
translation of the name that Akut had given him. And then after
|
|
a pause during which the Hon. Morison attempted to pierce the
|
|
darkness and catch a glimpse of the features of the strange being
|
|
into whose hands he had fallen, "You are the same whom I saw
|
|
kissing the girl at the edge of the great plain to the East,
|
|
that time that the lion charged you?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes," replied Baynes.
|
|
|
|
"What are you doing here?"
|
|
|
|
"The girl was stolen--I am trying to rescue her."
|
|
|
|
"Stolen!" The word was shot out like a bullet from a gun.
|
|
"Who stole her?"
|
|
|
|
"The Swede trader, Hanson," replied Baynes.
|
|
|
|
"Where is he?"
|
|
|
|
Baynes related to Korak all that had transpired since he had
|
|
come upon Hanson's camp. Before he was done the first gray
|
|
dawn had relieved the darkness. Korak made the Englishman
|
|
comfortable in the tree. He filled his canteen from the river
|
|
and fetched him fruits to eat. Then he bid him good-bye.
|
|
|
|
"I am going to the Swede's camp," he announced. "I will
|
|
bring the girl back to you here."
|
|
|
|
"I shall go, too, then," insisted Baynes. "It is my right and
|
|
my duty, for she was to have become my wife."
|
|
|
|
Korak winced. "You are wounded. You could not make the trip,"
|
|
he said. "I can go much faster alone."
|
|
|
|
"Go, then," replied Baynes; "but I shall follow. It is my
|
|
right and duty."
|
|
|
|
"As you will," replied Korak, with a shrug. If the man wanted
|
|
to be killed it was none of his affair. He wanted to kill him
|
|
himself, but for Meriem's sake he would not. If she loved him
|
|
then he must do what he could to preserve him, but he could
|
|
not prevent his following him, more than to advise him against
|
|
it, and this he did, earnestly.
|
|
|
|
And so Korak set out rapidly toward the North, and limping
|
|
slowly and painfully along, soon far to the rear, came the tired
|
|
and wounded Baynes. Korak had reached the river bank opposite
|
|
Malbihn's camp before Baynes had covered two miles. Late in the
|
|
afternoon the Englishman was still plodding wearily along,
|
|
forced to stop often for rest when he heard the sound of the
|
|
galloping feet of a horse behind him. Instinctively he drew into
|
|
the concealing foliage of the underbrush and a moment later a
|
|
white-robed Arab dashed by. Baynes did not hail the rider.
|
|
He had heard of the nature of the Arabs who penetrate thus far
|
|
to the South, and what he had heard had convinced him that a
|
|
snake or a panther would as quickly befriend him as one of these
|
|
villainous renegades from the Northland.
|
|
|
|
When Abdul Kamak had passed out of sight toward the North Baynes
|
|
resumed his weary march. A half hour later he was again surprised
|
|
by the unmistakable sound of galloping horses. This time there
|
|
were many. Once more he sought a hiding place; but it chanced
|
|
that he was crossing a clearing which offered little opportunity
|
|
for concealment. He broke into a slow trot--the best that he
|
|
could do in his weakened condition; but it did not suffice to
|
|
carry him to safety and before he reached the opposite side of
|
|
the clearing a band of white-robed horsemen dashed into view
|
|
behind him.
|
|
|
|
At sight of him they shouted in Arabic, which, of course, he
|
|
could not understand, and then they closed about him, threatening
|
|
and angry. Their questions were unintelligible to him, and
|
|
no more could they interpret his English. At last, evidently out
|
|
of patience, the leader ordered two of his men to seize him,
|
|
which they lost no time in doing. They disarmed him and ordered
|
|
him to climb to the rump of one of the horses, and then the two
|
|
who had been detailed to guard him turned and rode back toward
|
|
the South, while the others continued their pursuit of Abdul Kamak.
|
|
|
|
As Korak came out upon the bank of the river across from
|
|
which he could see the camp of Malbihn he was at a loss as to
|
|
how he was to cross. He could see men moving about among the
|
|
huts inside the boma--evidently Hanson was still there.
|
|
Korak did not know the true identity of Meriem's abductor.
|
|
|
|
How was he to cross. Not even he would dare the perils of
|
|
the river--almost certain death. For a moment he thought, then
|
|
wheeled and sped away into the jungle, uttering a peculiar cry,
|
|
shrill and piercing. Now and again he would halt to listen as
|
|
though for an answer to his weird call, then on again, deeper
|
|
and deeper into the wood.
|
|
|
|
At last his listening ears were rewarded by the sound they
|
|
craved--the trumpeting of a bull elephant, and a few moments
|
|
later Korak broke through the trees into the presence of Tantor,
|
|
standing with upraised trunk, waving his great ears.
|
|
|
|
"Quick, Tantor!" shouted the ape-man, and the beast swung
|
|
him to his head. "Hurry!" and the mighty pachyderm lumbered
|
|
off through the jungle, guided by kicking of naked heels against
|
|
the sides of his head.
|
|
|
|
Toward the northwest Korak guided his huge mount, until they
|
|
came out upon the river a mile or more above the Swede's camp,
|
|
at a point where Korak knew that there was an elephant ford.
|
|
Never pausing the ape-man urged the beast into the river, and with
|
|
trunk held high Tantor forged steadily toward the opposite bank.
|
|
Once an unwary crocodile attacked him but the sinuous trunk dove
|
|
beneath the surface and grasping the amphibian about the middle
|
|
dragged it to light and hurled it a hundred feet down stream.
|
|
And so, in safety, they made the opposite shore, Korak perched
|
|
high and dry above the turgid flood.
|
|
|
|
Then back toward the South Tantor moved, steadily, relentlessly,
|
|
and with a swinging gait which took no heed of any obstacle other
|
|
than the larger jungle trees. At times Korak was forced to
|
|
abandon the broad head and take to the trees above, so close
|
|
the branches raked the back of the elephant; but at last they
|
|
came to the edge of the clearing where lay the camp of the
|
|
renegade Swede, nor even then did they hesitate or halt.
|
|
The gate lay upon the east side of the camp, facing the river.
|
|
Tantor and Korak approached from the north. There was no gate
|
|
there; but what cared Tantor or Korak for gates.
|
|
|
|
At a word from the ape man and raising his tender trunk high
|
|
above the thorns Tantor breasted the boma, walking through it
|
|
as though it had not existed. A dozen blacks squatted before
|
|
their huts looked up at the noise of his approach. With sudden
|
|
howls of terror and amazement they leaped to their feet and fled
|
|
for the open gates. Tantor would have pursued. He hated man,
|
|
and he thought that Korak had come to hunt these; but the ape
|
|
man held him back, guiding him toward a large, canvas tent that
|
|
rose in the center of the clearing--there should be the girl and
|
|
her abductor.
|
|
|
|
Malbihn lay in a hammock beneath canopy before his tent.
|
|
His wounds were painful and he had lost much blood. He was
|
|
very weak. He looked up in surprise as he heard the screams of
|
|
his men and saw them running toward the gate. And then from
|
|
around the corner of his tent loomed a huge bulk, and Tantor,
|
|
the great tusker, towered above him. Malbihn's boy, feeling
|
|
neither affection nor loyalty for his master, broke and ran at the
|
|
first glimpse of the beast, and Malbihn was left alone and helpless.
|
|
|
|
The elephant stopped a couple of paces from the wounded
|
|
man's hammock. Malbihn cowered, moaning. He was too weak
|
|
to escape. He could only lie there with staring eyes gazing in
|
|
horror into the blood rimmed, angry little orbs fixed upon him,
|
|
and await his death.
|
|
|
|
Then, to his astonishment, a man slid to the ground from the
|
|
elephant's back. Almost at once Malbihn recognized the strange
|
|
figure as that of the creature who consorted with apes and
|
|
baboons--the white warrior of the jungle who had freed the king
|
|
baboon and led the whole angry horde of hairy devils upon him
|
|
and Jenssen. Malbihn cowered still lower.
|
|
|
|
"Where is the girl?" demanded Korak, in English.
|
|
|
|
"What girl?" asked Malbihn. "There is no girl here--only
|
|
the women of my boys. Is it one of them you want?"
|
|
|
|
"The white girl," replied Korak. "Do not lie to me--you
|
|
lured her from her friends. You have her. Where is she?"
|
|
|
|
"It was not I," cried Malbihn. "It was an Englishman who hired
|
|
me to steal her. He wished to take her to London with him.
|
|
She was willing to go. His name is Baynes. Go to him, if you
|
|
want to know where the girl is."
|
|
|
|
"I have just come from him," said Korak. "He sent me to you.
|
|
The girl is not with him. Now stop your lying and tell me
|
|
the truth. Where is she?" Korak took a threatening step toward
|
|
the Swede.
|
|
|
|
Malbihn shrank from the anger in the other's face.
|
|
|
|
"I will tell you," he cried. "Do not harm me and I will tell
|
|
you all that I know. I had the girl here; but it was Baynes who
|
|
persuaded her to leave her friends--he had promised to marry her.
|
|
He does not know who she is; but I do, and I know that there is
|
|
a great reward for whoever takes her back to her people. It was
|
|
the only reward I wanted. But she escaped and crossed the river
|
|
in one of my canoes. I followed her, but The Sheik was there,
|
|
God knows how, and he captured her and attacked me and drove
|
|
me back. Then came Baynes, angry because he had lost the girl,
|
|
and shot me. If you want her, go to The Sheik and ask him for
|
|
her--she has passed as his daughter since childhood."
|
|
|
|
"She is not The Sheik's daughter?" asked Korak.
|
|
|
|
"She is not," replied Malbihn.
|
|
|
|
"Who is she then?" asked Korak.
|
|
|
|
Here Malbihn saw his chance. Possibly he could make use of his
|
|
knowledge after all--it might even buy back his life for him.
|
|
He was not so credulous as to believe that this savage ape-man
|
|
would have any compunctions about slaying him.
|
|
|
|
"When you find her I will tell you," he said, "if you will
|
|
promise to spare my life and divide the reward with me. If you
|
|
kill me you will never know, for only The Sheik knows and he
|
|
will never tell. The girl herself is ignorant of her origin."
|
|
|
|
"If you have told me the truth I will spare you," said Korak.
|
|
"I shall go now to The Sheik's village and if the girl is not there
|
|
I shall return and slay you. As for the other information you
|
|
have, if the girl wants it when we have found her we will find a
|
|
way to purchase it from you."
|
|
|
|
The look in the Killer's eyes and his emphasis of the word "purchase"
|
|
were none too reassuring to Malbihn. Evidently, unless he found
|
|
means to escape, this devil would have both his secret and his
|
|
life before he was done with him. He wished he would be gone
|
|
and take his evil-eyed companion away with him. The swaying bulk
|
|
towering high above him, and the ugly little eyes of the elephant
|
|
watching his every move made Malbihn nervous.
|
|
|
|
Korak stepped into the Swede's tent to assure himself that
|
|
Meriem was not hid there. As he disappeared from view Tantor,
|
|
his eyes still fixed upon Malbihn, took a step nearer the man.
|
|
An elephant's eyesight is none too good; but the great tusker
|
|
evidently had harbored suspicions of this yellow-bearded white
|
|
man from the first. Now he advanced his snake-like trunk toward
|
|
the Swede, who shrank still deeper into his hammock.
|
|
|
|
The sensitive member felt and smelled back and forth along
|
|
the body of the terrified Malbihn. Tantor uttered a low,
|
|
rumbling sound. His little eyes blazed. At last he had
|
|
recognized the creature who had killed his mate long
|
|
years before. Tantor, the elephant, never forgets and
|
|
never forgives. Malbihn saw in the demoniacal visage above
|
|
him the murderous purpose of the beast. He shrieked aloud
|
|
to Korak. "Help! Help! The devil is going to kill me!"
|
|
|
|
Korak ran from the tent just in time to see the enraged
|
|
elephant's trunk encircle the beast's victim, and then hammock,
|
|
canopy and man were swung high over Tantor's head. Korak leaped
|
|
before the animal, commanding him to put down his prey unharmed;
|
|
but as well might he have ordered the eternal river to reverse
|
|
its course. Tantor wheeled around like a cat, hurled Malbihn
|
|
to the earth and kneeled upon him with the quickness of a cat.
|
|
Then he gored the prostrate thing through and through with his
|
|
mighty tusks, trumpeting and roaring in his rage, and at last,
|
|
convinced that no slightest spark of life remained in the crushed
|
|
and lacerated flesh, he lifted the shapeless clay that had been
|
|
Sven Malbihn far aloft and hurled the bloody mass, still
|
|
entangled in canopy and hammock, over the boma and out into
|
|
the jungle.
|
|
|
|
Korak stood looking sorrowfully on at the tragedy he gladly
|
|
would have averted. He had no love for the Swede, in fact only
|
|
hatred; but he would have preserved the man for the sake of the
|
|
secret he possessed. Now that secret was gone forever unless
|
|
The Sheik could be made to divulge it; but in that possibility
|
|
Korak placed little faith.
|
|
|
|
The ape-man, as unafraid of the mighty Tantor as though he
|
|
had not just witnessed his shocking murder of a human being,
|
|
signalled the beast to approach and lift him to its head, and
|
|
Tantor came as he was bid, docile as a kitten, and hoisted The
|
|
Killer tenderly aloft.
|
|
|
|
From the safety of their hiding places in the jungle Malbihn's
|
|
boys had witnessed the killing of their master, and now, with
|
|
wide, frightened eyes, they saw the strange white warrior,
|
|
|
|
mounted upon the head of his ferocious charger, disappear into
|
|
the jungle at the point from which he had emerged upon their
|
|
terrified vision.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 25
|
|
|
|
The Sheik glowered at the prisoner which his two men brought
|
|
back to him from the North. He had sent the party after Abdul
|
|
Kamak, and he was wroth that instead of his erstwhile lieutenant
|
|
they had sent back a wounded and useless Englishman. Why had
|
|
they not dispatched him where they had found him? He was some
|
|
penniless beggar of a trader who had wandered from his own
|
|
district and became lost. He was worthless. The Sheik scowled
|
|
terribly upon him.
|
|
|
|
"Who are you?" he asked in French.
|
|
|
|
"I am the Hon. Morison Baynes of London," replied his prisoner.
|
|
|
|
The title sounded promising, and at once the wily old robber
|
|
had visions of ransom. His intentions, if not his attitude toward
|
|
the prisoner underwent a change--he would investigate further.
|
|
|
|
"What were you doing poaching in my country?" growled he.
|
|
|
|
"I was not aware that you owned Africa," replied the Hon. Morison.
|
|
"I was searching for a young woman who had been abducted from the
|
|
home of a friend. The abductor wounded me and I drifted down river
|
|
in a canoe--I was on my back to his camp when your men seized me."
|
|
|
|
"A young woman?" asked The Sheik. "Is that she?" and he pointed
|
|
to his left over toward a clump of bushes near the stockade.
|
|
|
|
Baynes looked in the direction indicated and his eyes went
|
|
wide, for there, sitting cross-legged upon the ground, her back
|
|
toward them, was Meriem.
|
|
|
|
"Meriem!" he shouted, starting toward her; but one of his
|
|
guards grasped his arm and jerked him back. The girl leaped to
|
|
her feet and turned toward him as she heard her name.
|
|
|
|
"Morison!" she cried.
|
|
|
|
"Be still, and stay where you are," snapped The Sheik, and
|
|
then to Baynes. "So you are the dog of a Christian who stole
|
|
my daughter from me?"
|
|
|
|
"Your daughter?" ejaculated Baynes. "She is your daughter?"
|
|
|
|
"She is my daughter," growled the Arab, "and she is not for
|
|
any unbeliever. You have earned death, Englishman, but if you
|
|
can pay for your life I will give it to you."
|
|
|
|
Baynes' eyes were still wide at the unexpected sight of
|
|
Meriem here in the camp of the Arab when he had thought her
|
|
in Hanson's power. What had happened? How had she escaped
|
|
the Swede? Had the Arab taken her by force from him, or had she
|
|
escaped and come voluntarily back to the protection of the man
|
|
who called her "daughter"? He would have given much for a
|
|
word with her. If she was safe here he might only harm her by
|
|
antagonizing the Arab in an attempt to take her away and return
|
|
her to her English friends. No longer did the Hon. Morison
|
|
harbor thoughts of luring the girl to London.
|
|
|
|
"Well?" asked The Sheik.
|
|
|
|
"Oh," exclaimed Baynes; "I beg your pardon--I was thinking
|
|
of something else. Why yes, of course, glad to pay, I'm sure.
|
|
How much do you think I'm worth?"
|
|
|
|
The Sheik named a sum that was rather less exorbitant than
|
|
the Hon. Morison had anticipated. The latter nodded his head
|
|
in token of his entire willingness to pay. He would have
|
|
promised a sum far beyond his resources just as readily, for
|
|
he had no intention of paying anything--his one reason for
|
|
seeming to comply with The Sheik's demands was that the wait
|
|
for the coming of the ransom money would give him the time and
|
|
the opportunity to free Meriem if he found that she wished to
|
|
be freed. The Arab's statement that he was her father naturally
|
|
raised the question in the Hon. Morison's mind as to precisely
|
|
what the girl's attitude toward escape might be. It seemed, of
|
|
course, preposterous that this fair and beautiful young woman
|
|
should prefer to remain in the filthy douar of an illiterate
|
|
old Arab rather than return to the comforts, luxuries, and
|
|
congenial associations of the hospitable African bungalow from
|
|
which the Hon. Morison had tricked her. The man flushed at the
|
|
thought of his duplicity which these recollections aroused--
|
|
thoughts which were interrupted by The Sheik, who instructed
|
|
the Hon. Morison to write a letter to the British consul at
|
|
Algiers, dictating the exact phraseology of it with a fluency
|
|
that indicated to his captive that this was not the first time
|
|
the old rascal had had occasion to negotiate with English
|
|
relatives for the ransom of a kinsman. Baynes demurred when
|
|
he saw that the letter was addressed to the consul at Algiers,
|
|
saying that it would require the better part of a year to get
|
|
the money back to him; but The Sheik would not listen to Baynes'
|
|
plan to send a messenger directly to the nearest coast town,
|
|
and from there communicate with the nearest cable state, sending
|
|
the Hon. Morison's request for funds straight to his own solicitors.
|
|
No, The Sheik was cautious and wary. He knew his own plan had
|
|
worked well in the past. In the other were too many untried elements.
|
|
He was in no hurry for the money--he could wait a year, or two
|
|
years if necessary; but it should not require over six months.
|
|
He turned to one of the Arabs who had been standing behind him
|
|
and gave the fellow instructions in relation to the prisoner.
|
|
|
|
Baynes could not understand the words, spoken in Arabic, but
|
|
the jerk of the thumb toward him showed that he was the subject
|
|
of conversation. The Arab addressed by The Sheik bowed to his
|
|
master and beckoned Baynes to follow him. The Englishman looked
|
|
toward The Sheik for confirmation. The latter nodded impatiently,
|
|
and the Hon. Morison rose and followed his guide toward a native
|
|
hut which lay close beside one of the outside goatskin tents.
|
|
In the dark, stifling interior his guard led him, then stepped
|
|
to the doorway and called to a couple of black boys squatting
|
|
before their own huts. They came promptly and in accordance
|
|
with the Arab's instructions bound Baynes' wrists and
|
|
ankles securely. The Englishman objected strenuously; but
|
|
as neither the blacks nor the Arab could understand a word he
|
|
said his pleas were wasted. Having bound him they left the hut.
|
|
The Hon. Morison lay for a long time contemplating the frightful
|
|
future which awaited him during the long months which must
|
|
intervene before his friends learned of his predicament and
|
|
could get succor to him. Now he hoped that they would send
|
|
the ransom--he would gladly pay all that he was worth to be out
|
|
of this hole. At first it had been his intention to cable his
|
|
solicitors to send no money but to communicate with the British
|
|
West African authorities and have an expedition sent to his aid.
|
|
|
|
His patrician nose wrinkled in disgust as his nostrils were
|
|
assailed by the awful stench of the hut. The nasty grasses upon
|
|
which he lay exuded the effluvium of sweaty bodies, of decayed
|
|
animal matter and of offal. But worse was yet to come. He had
|
|
lain in the uncomfortable position in which they had thrown him
|
|
but for a few minutes when he became distinctly conscious of
|
|
an acute itching sensation upon his hands, his neck and scalp.
|
|
He wriggled to a sitting posture horrified and disgusted.
|
|
The itching rapidly extended to other parts of his body--it
|
|
was torture, and his hands were bound securely at his back!
|
|
|
|
He tugged and pulled at his bonds until he was exhausted; but
|
|
not entirely without hope, for he was sure that he was working
|
|
enough slack out of the knot to eventually permit of his
|
|
withdrawing one of his hands. Night came. They brought him
|
|
neither food nor drink. He wondered if they expected him to
|
|
live on nothing for a year. The bites of the vermin grew less
|
|
annoying though not less numerous. The Hon. Morison saw a ray of
|
|
hope in this indication of future immunity through inoculation.
|
|
He still worked weakly at his bonds, and then the rats came.
|
|
If the vermin were disgusting the rats were terrifying.
|
|
They scurried over his body, squealing and fighting.
|
|
Finally one commenced to chew at one of his ears. With an
|
|
oath, the Hon. Morison struggled to a sitting posture.
|
|
The rats retreated. He worked his legs beneath him and
|
|
came to his knees, and then, by superhuman effort, rose to
|
|
his feet. There he stood, reeling drunkenly, dripping with
|
|
cold sweat.
|
|
|
|
"God!" he muttered, "what have I done to deserve--" He paused.
|
|
What had he done? He thought of the girl in another tent in that
|
|
accursed village. He was getting his deserts. He set his jaws
|
|
firmly with the realization. He would never complain again!
|
|
At that moment he became aware of voices raised angrily in the
|
|
goatskin tent close beside the hut in which he lay. One of
|
|
them was a woman's. Could it be Meriem's? The language was
|
|
probably Arabic--he could not understand a word of it; but the
|
|
tones were hers.
|
|
|
|
He tried to think of some way of attracting her attention to his
|
|
near presence. If she could remove his bonds they might escape
|
|
together--if she wished to escape. That thought bothered him.
|
|
He was not sure of her status in the village. If she were the
|
|
petted child of the powerful Sheik then she would probably not
|
|
care to escape. He must know, definitely.
|
|
|
|
At the bungalow he had often heard Meriem sing God Save
|
|
the King, as My Dear accompanied her on the piano. Raising his
|
|
voice he now hummed the tune. Immediately he heard Meriem's
|
|
voice from the tent. She spoke rapidly.
|
|
|
|
"Good bye, Morison," she cried. "If God is good I shall be
|
|
dead before morning, for if I still live I shall be worse than
|
|
dead after tonight."
|
|
|
|
Then he heard an angry exclamation in a man's voice, followed
|
|
by the sounds of a scuffle. Baynes went white with horror.
|
|
He struggled frantically again with his bonds. They were giving.
|
|
A moment later one hand was free. It was but the work of an
|
|
instant then to loose the other. Stooping, he untied the rope from
|
|
his ankles, then he straightened and started for the hut doorway
|
|
bent on reaching Meriem's side. As he stepped out into the night
|
|
the figure of a huge black rose and barred his progress.
|
|
|
|
|
|
When speed was required of him Korak depended upon no
|
|
other muscles than his own, and so it was that the moment
|
|
Tantor had landed him safely upon the same side of the river as
|
|
lay the village of The Sheik, the ape-man deserted his bulky
|
|
comrade and took to the trees in a rapid race toward the south
|
|
and the spot where the Swede had told him Meriem might be.
|
|
It was dark when he came to the palisade, strengthened
|
|
considerably since the day that he had rescued Meriem from her
|
|
pitiful life within its cruel confines. No longer did the giant
|
|
tree spread its branches above the wooden rampart; but ordinary
|
|
man-made defenses were scarce considered obstacles by Korak.
|
|
Loosening the rope at his waist he tossed the noose over one of
|
|
the sharpened posts that composed the palisade. A moment later
|
|
his eyes were above the level of the obstacle taking in all within
|
|
their range beyond. There was no one in sight close by, and Korak
|
|
drew himself to the top and dropped lightly to the ground within
|
|
the enclosure.
|
|
|
|
Then he commenced his stealthy search of the village.
|
|
First toward the Arab tents he made his way, sniffing
|
|
and listening. He passed behind them searching for some
|
|
sign of Meriem. Not even the wild Arab curs heard his
|
|
passage, so silently he went--a shadow passing through shadows.
|
|
The odor of tobacco told him that the Arabs were smoking before
|
|
their tents. The sound of laughter fell upon his ears, and then
|
|
from the opposite side of the village came the notes of a once
|
|
familiar tune: God Save the King. Korak halted in perplexity.
|
|
Who might it be--the tones were those of a man. He recalled
|
|
the young Englishman he had left on the river trail and who had
|
|
disappeared before he returned. A moment later there came to him
|
|
a woman's voice in reply--it was Meriem's, and The Killer,
|
|
quickened into action, slunk rapidly in the direction of these
|
|
two voices.
|
|
|
|
The evening meal over Meriem had gone to her pallet in the
|
|
women's quarters of The Sheik's tent, a little corner screened
|
|
off in the rear by a couple of priceless Persian rugs to form
|
|
a partition. In these quarters she had dwelt with Mabunu alone,
|
|
for The Sheik had no wives. Nor were conditions altered now
|
|
after the years of her absence--she and Mabunu were alone in
|
|
the women's quarters.
|
|
|
|
Presently The Sheik came and parted the rugs. He glared
|
|
through the dim light of the interior.
|
|
|
|
"Meriem!" he called. "Come hither."
|
|
|
|
The girl arose and came into the front of the tent. There the
|
|
light of a fire illuminated the interior. She saw Ali ben Kadin,
|
|
The Sheik's half brother, squatted upon a rug, smoking. The Sheik
|
|
was standing. The Sheik and Ali ben Kadin had had the same father,
|
|
but Ali ben Kadin's mother had been a slave--a West Coast Negress.
|
|
Ali ben Kadin was old and hideous and almost black. His nose and
|
|
part of one cheek were eaten away by disease. He looked up and
|
|
grinned as Meriem entered.
|
|
|
|
The Sheik jerked his thumb toward Ali ben Kadin and addressed Meriem.
|
|
|
|
"I am getting old," he said, "I shall not live much longer.
|
|
Therefore I have given you to Ali ben Kadin, my brother."
|
|
|
|
That was all. Ali ben Kadin rose and came toward her.
|
|
Meriem shrank back, horrified. The man seized her wrist.
|
|
|
|
"Come!" he commanded, and dragged her from The Sheik's tent
|
|
and to his own.
|
|
|
|
After they had gone The Sheik chuckled. "When I send her
|
|
north in a few months," he soliloquized, "they will know the
|
|
reward for slaying the son of the sister of Amor ben Khatour."
|
|
|
|
And in Ali ben Kadin's tent Meriem pleaded and threatened, but
|
|
all to no avail. The hideous old halfcaste spoke soft words
|
|
at first, but when Meriem loosed upon him the vials of her horror
|
|
and loathing he became enraged, and rushing upon her seized
|
|
her in his arms. Twice she tore away from him, and in one of
|
|
the intervals during which she managed to elude him she heard
|
|
Baynes' voice humming the tune that she knew was meant for
|
|
her ears. At her reply Ali ben Kadin rushed upon her once again.
|
|
This time he dragged her back into the rear apartment of his tent
|
|
where three Negresses looked up in stolid indifference to the
|
|
tragedy being enacted before them.
|
|
|
|
As the Hon. Morison saw his way blocked by the huge frame of
|
|
the giant black his disappointment and rage filled him with a
|
|
bestial fury that transformed him into a savage beast. With an
|
|
oath he leaped upon the man before him, the momentum of his body
|
|
hurling the black to the ground. There they fought, the black
|
|
to draw his knife, the white to choke the life from the black.
|
|
|
|
Baynes' fingers shut off the cry for help that the other would
|
|
have been glad to voice; but presently the Negro succeeded in
|
|
drawing his weapon and an instant later Baynes felt the sharp
|
|
steel in his shoulder. Again and again the weapon fell. The white
|
|
man removed one hand from its choking grip upon the black throat.
|
|
He felt around upon the ground beside him searching for some
|
|
missile, and at last his fingers touched a stone and closed
|
|
upon it. Raising it above his antagonist's head the Hon. Morison
|
|
drove home a terrific blow. Instantly the black relaxed--stunned.
|
|
Twice more Baynes struck him. Then he leaped to his feet and
|
|
ran for the goat skin tent from which he had heard the voice of
|
|
Meriem in distress.
|
|
|
|
But before him was another. Naked but for his leopard skin
|
|
and his loin cloth, Korak, The Killer, slunk into the shadows at
|
|
the back of Ali ben Kadin's tent. The half-caste had just dragged
|
|
Meriem into the rear chamber as Korak's sharp knife slit a six
|
|
foot opening in the tent wall, and Korak, tall and mighty, sprang
|
|
through upon the astonished visions of the inmates.
|
|
|
|
Meriem saw and recognized him the instant that he entered
|
|
the apartment. Her heart leaped in pride and joy at the sight
|
|
of the noble figure for which it had hungered for so long.
|
|
|
|
"Korak!" she cried.
|
|
|
|
"Meriem!" He uttered the single word as he hurled himself
|
|
upon the astonished Ali ben Kadin. The three Negresses leaped
|
|
from their sleeping mats, screaming. Meriem tried to prevent
|
|
them from escaping; but before she could succeed the terrified
|
|
blacks had darted through the hole in the tent wall made by
|
|
Korak's knife, and were gone screaming through the village.
|
|
|
|
The Killer's fingers closed once upon the throat of the hideous Ali.
|
|
Once his knife plunged into the putrid heart--and Ali ben Kadin
|
|
lay dead upon the floor of his tent. Korak turned toward Meriem
|
|
and at the same moment a bloody and disheveled apparition leaped
|
|
into the apartment.
|
|
|
|
"Morison!" cried the girl.
|
|
|
|
Korak turned and looked at the new comer. He had been about
|
|
to take Meriem in his arms, forgetful of all that might have
|
|
transpired since last he had seen her. Then the coming of the
|
|
young Englishman recalled the scene he had witnessed in the
|
|
little clearing, and a wave of misery swept over the ape man.
|
|
|
|
Already from without came the sounds of the alarm that the
|
|
three Negresses had started. Men were running toward the tent
|
|
of Ali ben Kadin. There was no time to be lost.
|
|
|
|
"Quick!" cried Korak, turning toward Baynes, who had scarce
|
|
yet realized whether he was facing a friend or foe. "Take her
|
|
to the palisade, following the rear of the tents. Here is
|
|
my rope. With it you can scale the wall and make your escape."
|
|
|
|
"But you, Korak?" cried Meriem.
|
|
|
|
"I will remain," replied the ape-man. "I have business with
|
|
The Sheik."
|
|
|
|
Meriem would have demurred, but The Killer seized them both
|
|
by the shoulders and hustled them through the slit wall and
|
|
out into the shadows beyond.
|
|
|
|
"Now run for it," he admonished, and turned to meet and
|
|
hold those who were pouring into the tent from the front.
|
|
|
|
The ape-man fought well--fought as he had never fought before;
|
|
but the odds were too great for victory, though he won that which
|
|
he most craved--time for the Englishman to escape with Meriem.
|
|
Then he was overwhelmed by numbers, and a few minutes later,
|
|
bound and guarded, he was carried to The Sheik's tent.
|
|
|
|
The old men eyed him in silence for a long time. He was
|
|
trying to fix in his own mind some form of torture that would
|
|
gratify his rage and hatred toward this creature who twice had
|
|
been the means of his losing possession of Meriem. The killing
|
|
of Ali ben Kadin caused him little anger--always had he hated
|
|
the hideous son of his father's hideous slave. The blow that this
|
|
naked white warrior had once struck him added fuel to his rage.
|
|
He could think of nothing adequate to the creature's offense.
|
|
|
|
And as he sat there looking upon Korak the silence was broken by
|
|
the trumpeting of an elephant in the jungle beyond the palisade.
|
|
A half smile touched Korak's lips. He turned his head a trifle
|
|
in the direction from which the sound had come and then there
|
|
broke from his lips, a low, weird call. One of the blacks
|
|
guarding him struck him across the mouth with the haft of his
|
|
spear; but none there knew the significance of his cry.
|
|
|
|
In the jungle Tantor cocked his ears as the sound of Korak's
|
|
voice fell upon them. He approached the palisade and lifting his
|
|
trunk above it, sniffed. Then he placed his head against the
|
|
wooden logs and pushed; but the palisade was strong and only
|
|
gave a little to the pressure.
|
|
|
|
In The Sheik's tent The Sheik rose at last, and, pointing
|
|
toward the bound captive, turned to one of his lieutenants.
|
|
|
|
"Burn him," he commanded. "At once. The stake is set."
|
|
|
|
The guard pushed Korak from The Sheik's presence. They dragged
|
|
him to the open space in the center of the village, where a high
|
|
stake was set in the ground. It had not been intended for
|
|
burnings, but offered a convenient place to tie up refractory
|
|
slaves that they might be beaten--ofttimes until death relieved
|
|
their agonies.
|
|
|
|
To this stake they bound Korak. Then they brought brush and
|
|
piled about him, and The Sheik came and stood by that he might
|
|
watch the agonies of his victim. But Korak did not wince even
|
|
after they had fetched a brand and the flames had shot up among
|
|
the dry tinder.
|
|
|
|
Once, then, he raised his voice in the low call that he had
|
|
given in The Sheik's tent, and now, from beyond the palisade,
|
|
came again the trumpeting of an elephant.
|
|
|
|
Old Tantor had been pushing at the palisade in vain. The sound
|
|
of Korak's voice calling him, and the scent of man, his enemy,
|
|
filled the great beast with rage and resentment against the
|
|
dumb barrier that held him back. He wheeled and shuffled
|
|
back a dozen paces, then he turned, lifted his trunk and gave
|
|
voice to a mighty roaring, trumpet-call of anger, lowered his
|
|
head and charged like a huge battering ram of flesh and bone
|
|
and muscle straight for the mighty barrier.
|
|
|
|
The palisade sagged and splintered to the impact, and through
|
|
the breach rushed the infuriated bull. Korak heard the sounds
|
|
that the others heard, and he interpreted them as the others
|
|
did not. The flames were creeping closer to him when one of the
|
|
blacks, hearing a noise behind him turned to see the enormous
|
|
bulk of Tantor lumbering toward them. The man screamed and
|
|
fled, and then the bull elephant was among them tossing Negroes
|
|
and Arabs to right and left as he tore through the flames he
|
|
feared to the side of the comrade he loved.
|
|
|
|
The Sheik, calling orders to his followers, ran to his tent to get
|
|
his rifle. Tantor wrapped his trunk about the body of Korak and
|
|
the stake to which it was bound, and tore it from the ground.
|
|
The flames were searing his sensitive hide--sensitive for all its
|
|
thickness--so that in his frenzy to both rescue his friend and
|
|
escape the hated fire he had all but crushed the life from the ape-man.
|
|
|
|
Lifting his burden high above his head the giant beast wheeled
|
|
and raced for the breach that he had just made in the palisade.
|
|
The Sheik, rifle in hand, rushed from his tent directly into the
|
|
path of the maddened brute. He raised his weapon and fired
|
|
once, the bullet missed its mark, and Tantor was upon him,
|
|
crushing him beneath those gigantic feet as he raced over him
|
|
as you and I might crush out the life of an ant that chanced to
|
|
be in our pathway.
|
|
|
|
And then, bearing his burden carefully, Tantor, the elephant,
|
|
entered the blackness of the jungle.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 26
|
|
|
|
Meriem, dazed by the unexpected sight of Korak whom she had
|
|
long given up as dead, permitted herself to be led away
|
|
by Baynes. Among the tents he guided her safely to the
|
|
palisade, and there, following Korak's instructions, the
|
|
Englishman pitched a noose over the top of one of the
|
|
upright logs that formed the barrier. With difficulty he
|
|
reached the top and then lowered his hand to assist Meriem
|
|
to his side.
|
|
|
|
"Come!" he whispered. "We must hurry." And then, as
|
|
though she had awakened from a sleep, Meriem came to herself.
|
|
Back there, fighting her enemies, alone, was Korak--her Korak.
|
|
Her place was by his side, fighting with him and for him.
|
|
She glanced up at Baynes.
|
|
|
|
"Go!" she called. "Make your way back to Bwana and bring help.
|
|
My place is here. You can do no good remaining. Get away
|
|
while you can and bring the Big Bwana back with you."
|
|
|
|
Silently the Hon. Morison Baynes slid to the ground inside
|
|
the palisade to Meriem's side.
|
|
|
|
"It was only for you that I left him," he said, nodding toward
|
|
the tents they had just left. "I knew that he could hold them
|
|
longer than I and give you a chance to escape that I might not be
|
|
able to have given you. It was I though who should have remained.
|
|
I heard you call him Korak and so I know now who he is.
|
|
He befriended you. I would have wronged you. No--don't interrupt.
|
|
I'm going to tell you the truth now and let you know just what
|
|
a beast I have been. I planned to take you to London, as you know;
|
|
but I did not plan to marry you. Yes, shrink from me--I deserve it.
|
|
I deserve your contempt and loathing; but I didn't know then what
|
|
love was. Since I have learned that I have learned something
|
|
else--what a cad and what a coward I have been all my life.
|
|
I looked down upon those whom I considered my social inferiors.
|
|
I did not think you good enough to bear my name. Since Hanson
|
|
tricked me and took you for himself I have been through hell;
|
|
but it has made a man of me, though too late. Now I can come to
|
|
you with an offer of honest love, which will realize the honor of
|
|
having such as you share my name with me."
|
|
|
|
For a moment Meriem was silent, buried in thought. Her first
|
|
question seemed irrelevant.
|
|
|
|
"How did you happen to be in this village?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
He told her all that had transpired since the black had told
|
|
him of Hanson's duplicity.
|
|
|
|
"You say that you are a coward," she said, "and yet you have
|
|
done all this to save me? The courage that it must have taken to
|
|
tell me the things that you told me but a moment since, while
|
|
courage of a different sort, proves that you are no moral coward,
|
|
and the other proves that you are not a physical coward. I could
|
|
not love a coward."
|
|
|
|
"You mean that you love me?" he gasped in astonishment, taking
|
|
a step toward her as though to gather her into his arms; but
|
|
she placed her hand against him and pushed him gently away,
|
|
as much as to say, not yet. What she did mean she scarcely knew.
|
|
She thought that she loved him, of that there can be no question;
|
|
nor did she think that love for this young Englishman was
|
|
disloyalty to Korak, for her love for Korak was undiminished--the
|
|
love of a sister for an indulgent brother. As they stood
|
|
there for the moment of their conversation the sounds of tumult
|
|
in the village subsided.
|
|
|
|
"They have killed him," whispered Meriem.
|
|
|
|
The statement brought Baynes to a realization of the cause of
|
|
their return.
|
|
|
|
"Wait here," he said. "I will go and see. If he is dead we
|
|
can do him no good. If he lives I will do my best to free him."
|
|
|
|
"We will go together," replied Meriem. "Come!" And she led
|
|
the way back toward the tent in which they last had seen Korak.
|
|
As they went they were often forced to throw themselves to the
|
|
ground in the shadow of a tent or hut, for people were passing
|
|
hurriedly to and fro now--the whole village was aroused and
|
|
moving about. The return to the tent of Ali ben Kadin took
|
|
much longer than had their swift flight to the palisade.
|
|
Cautiously they crept to the slit that Korak's knife had made in
|
|
the rear wall. Meriem peered within--the rear apartment was empty.
|
|
She crawled through the aperture, Baynes at her heels, and then
|
|
silently crossed the space to the rugs that partitioned the tent
|
|
into two rooms. Parting the hangings Meriem looked into the
|
|
front room. It, too, was deserted. She crossed to the door of
|
|
the tent and looked out. Then she gave a little gasp of horror.
|
|
Baynes at her shoulder looked past her to the sight that had
|
|
startled her, and he, too, exclaimed; but his was an oath of anger.
|
|
|
|
A hundred feet away they saw Korak bound to a stake--the
|
|
brush piled about him already alight. The Englishman pushed
|
|
Meriem to one side and started to run for the doomed man.
|
|
What he could do in the face of scores of hostile blacks and
|
|
Arabs he did not stop to consider. At the same instant Tantor
|
|
broke through the palisade and charged the group. In the face
|
|
of the maddened beast the crowd turned and fled, carrying
|
|
Baynes backward with them. In a moment it was all over, and
|
|
the elephant had disappeared with his prize; but pandemonium
|
|
reigned throughout the village. Men, women and children ran
|
|
helter skelter for safety. Curs fled, yelping. The horses and
|
|
camels and donkeys, terrorized by the trumpeting of the pachyderm,
|
|
kicked and pulled at their tethers. A dozen or more broke loose,
|
|
and it was the galloping of these past him that brought a sudden
|
|
idea into Baynes' head. He turned to search for Meriem only to
|
|
find her at his elbow.
|
|
|
|
"The horses!" he cried. "If we can get a couple of them!"
|
|
|
|
Filled with the idea Meriem led him to the far end of the village.
|
|
|
|
"Loosen two of them," she said, "and lead them back into the
|
|
shadows behind those huts. I know where there are saddles.
|
|
I will bring them and the bridles," and before he could stop
|
|
her she was gone.
|
|
|
|
Baynes quickly untied two of the restive animals and led them
|
|
to the point designated by Meriem. Here he waited impatiently
|
|
for what seemed an hour; but was, in reality, but a few minutes.
|
|
Then he saw the girl approaching beneath the burden of two saddles.
|
|
Quickly they placed these upon the horses. They could see by the
|
|
light of the torture fire that still burned that the blacks and
|
|
Arabs were recovering from their panic. Men were running about
|
|
gathering in the loose stock, and two or three were already
|
|
leading their captives back to the end of the village where
|
|
Meriem and Baynes were busy with the trappings of their mounts.
|
|
|
|
Now the girl flung herself into the saddle.
|
|
|
|
"Hurry!" she whispered. "We shall have to run for it.
|
|
Ride through the gap that Tantor made," and as she saw Baynes
|
|
swing his leg over the back of his horse, she shook the reins
|
|
free over her mount's neck. With a lunge, the nervous beast
|
|
leaped forward. The shortest path led straight through the
|
|
center of the village, and this Meriem took. Baynes was close
|
|
behind her, their horses running at full speed.
|
|
|
|
So sudden and impetuous was their dash for escape that it
|
|
carried them half-way across the village before the surprised
|
|
inhabitants were aware of what was happening. Then an Arab
|
|
recognized them, and, with a cry of alarm, raised his rifle
|
|
and fired. The shot was a signal for a volley, and amid the
|
|
rattle of musketry Meriem and Baynes leaped their flying mounts
|
|
through the breach in the palisade and were gone up the well-worn
|
|
trail toward the north.
|
|
|
|
And Korak?
|
|
|
|
Tantor carried him deep into the jungle, nor paused until no
|
|
sound from the distant village reached his keen ears. Then he
|
|
laid his burden gently down. Korak struggled to free himself
|
|
from his bonds, but even his great strength was unable to cope
|
|
with the many strands of hard-knotted cord that bound him.
|
|
While he lay there, working and resting by turns, the elephant
|
|
stood guard above him, nor was there jungle enemy with the
|
|
hardihood to tempt the sudden death that lay in that mighty bulk.
|
|
|
|
Dawn came, and still Korak was no nearer freedom than before.
|
|
He commenced to believe that he should die there of thirst
|
|
and starvation with plenty all about him, for he knew that
|
|
Tantor could not unloose the knots that held him.
|
|
|
|
And while he struggled through the night with his bonds, Baynes
|
|
and Meriem were riding rapidly northward along the river.
|
|
The girl had assured Baynes that Korak was safe in the jungle
|
|
with Tantor. It had not occurred to her that the ape-man
|
|
might not be able to burst his bonds. Baynes had been wounded
|
|
by a shot from the rifle of one of the Arabs, and the girl wanted
|
|
to get him back to Bwana's home, where he could be properly
|
|
cared for.
|
|
|
|
"Then," she said, "I shall get Bwana to come with me and
|
|
search for Korak. He must come and live with us."
|
|
|
|
All night they rode, and the day was still young when they came
|
|
suddenly upon a party hurrying southward. It was Bwana himself
|
|
and his sleek, black warriors. At sight of Baynes the big
|
|
Englishman's brows contracted in a scowl; but he waited to hear
|
|
Meriem's story before giving vent to the long anger in his breast.
|
|
When she had finished he seemed to have forgotten Baynes.
|
|
His thoughts were occupied with another subject.
|
|
|
|
"You say that you found Korak?" he asked. "You really saw him?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes," replied Meriem; "as plainly as I see you, and I want
|
|
you to come with me, Bwana, and help me find him again."
|
|
|
|
"Did you see him?" He turned toward the Hon. Morison.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, sir," replied Baynes; "very plainly."
|
|
|
|
"What sort of appearing man is he?" continued Bwana.
|
|
"About how old, should you say?"
|
|
|
|
"I should say he was an Englishman, about my own age,"
|
|
replied Baynes; "though he might be older. He is remarkably
|
|
muscled, and exceedingly tanned."
|
|
|
|
"His eyes and hair, did you notice them?" Bwana spoke
|
|
rapidly, almost excitedly. It was Meriem who answered him.
|
|
|
|
"Korak's hair is black and his eyes are gray," she said.
|
|
|
|
Bwana turned to his headman.
|
|
|
|
"Take Miss Meriem and Mr. Baynes home," he said. "I am going
|
|
into the jungle."
|
|
|
|
"Let me go with you, Bwana," cried Meriem. "You are going to
|
|
search for Korak. Let me go, too."
|
|
|
|
Bwana turned sadly but firmly upon the girl.
|
|
|
|
"Your place," he said, "is beside the man you love."
|
|
|
|
Then he motioned to his head-man to take his horse and commence
|
|
the return journey to the farm. Meriem slowly mounted the tired
|
|
Arab that had brought her from the village of The Sheik. A litter
|
|
was rigged for the now feverish Baynes, and the little cavalcade
|
|
was soon slowly winding off along the river trail.
|
|
|
|
Bwana stood watching them until they were out of sight.
|
|
Not once had Meriem turned her eyes backward. She rode with
|
|
bowed head and drooping shoulders. Bwana sighed. He loved
|
|
the little Arab girl as he might have loved an own daughter.
|
|
He realized that Baynes had redeemed himself, and so he could
|
|
interpose no objections now if Meriem really loved the man;
|
|
but, somehow, some way, Bwana could not convince himself that
|
|
the Hon. Morison was worthy of his little Meriem. Slowly he
|
|
turned toward a nearby tree. Leaping upward he caught a
|
|
lower branch and drew himself up among the branches.
|
|
His movements were cat-like and agile. High into the trees
|
|
he made his way and there commenced to divest himself of
|
|
his clothing. From the game bag slung across one shoulder he
|
|
drew a long strip of doe-skin, a neatly coiled rope, and a
|
|
wicked looking knife. The doe-skin, he fashioned into a loin
|
|
cloth, the rope he looped over one shoulder, and the knife he
|
|
thrust into the belt formed by his gee string.
|
|
|
|
When he stood erect, his head thrown back and his great chest
|
|
expanded a grim smile touched his lips for a moment. His nostrils
|
|
dilated as he sniffed the jungle odors. His gray eyes narrowed.
|
|
He crouched and leaped to a lower limb and was away through the
|
|
trees toward the southeast, bearing away from the river. He moved
|
|
swiftly, stopping only occasionally to raise his voice in a weird
|
|
and piercing scream, and to listen for a moment after for a reply.
|
|
|
|
He had traveled thus for several hours when, ahead of him
|
|
and a little to his left, he heard, far off in the jungle, a faint
|
|
response--the cry of a bull ape answering his cry. His nerves
|
|
tingled and his eyes lighted as the sound fell upon his ears.
|
|
Again he voiced his hideous call, and sped forward in the
|
|
new direction.
|
|
|
|
Korak, finally becoming convinced that he must die if he
|
|
remained where he was, waiting for the succor that could not
|
|
come, spoke to Tantor in the strange tongue that the great
|
|
beast understood. He commanded the elephant to lift him and
|
|
carry him toward the northeast. There, recently, Korak had seen
|
|
both white men and black. If he could come upon one of the latter
|
|
it would be a simple matter to command Tantor to capture the
|
|
fellow, and then Korak could get him to release him from the stake.
|
|
It was worth trying at least--better than lying there in the jungle
|
|
until he died. As Tantor bore him along through the forest
|
|
Korak called aloud now and then in the hope of attracting Akut's
|
|
band of anthropoids, whose wanderings often brought them into
|
|
their neighborhood. Akut, he thought, might possibly be able
|
|
to negotiate the knots--he had done so upon that other occasion
|
|
when the Russian had bound Korak years before; and Akut, to
|
|
the south of him, heard his calls faintly, and came. There was
|
|
another who heard them, too.
|
|
|
|
After Bwana had left his party, sending them back toward the
|
|
farm, Meriem had ridden for a short distance with bowed head.
|
|
What thoughts passed through that active brain who may say?
|
|
Presently she seemed to come to a decision. She called the
|
|
headman to her side.
|
|
|
|
"I am going back with Bwana," she announced.
|
|
|
|
The black shook his head. "No!" he announced. "Bwana says I
|
|
take you home. So I take you home."
|
|
|
|
"You refuse to let me go?" asked the girl.
|
|
|
|
The black nodded, and fell to the rear where he might better
|
|
watch her. Meriem half smiled. Presently her horse passed
|
|
beneath a low-hanging branch, and the black headman found
|
|
himself gazing at the girl's empty saddle. He ran forward to
|
|
the tree into which she had disappeared. He could see nothing
|
|
of her. He called; but there was no response, unless it might
|
|
have been a low, taunting laugh far to the right. He sent his
|
|
men into the jungle to search for her; but they came back
|
|
empty handed. After a while he resumed his march toward the
|
|
farm, for Baynes, by this time, was delirious with fever.
|
|
|
|
Meriem raced straight back toward the point she imagined
|
|
Tantor would make for--a point where she knew the elephants
|
|
often gathered deep in the forest due east of The Sheik's village.
|
|
She moved silently and swiftly. From her mind she had expunged
|
|
all thoughts other than that she must reach Korak and bring him
|
|
back with her. It was her place to do that. Then, too, had
|
|
come the tantalizing fear that all might not be well with him.
|
|
She upbraided herself for not thinking of that before--of letting
|
|
her desire to get the wounded Morison back to the bungalow blind
|
|
her to the possibilities of Korak's need for her. She had been
|
|
traveling rapidly for several hours without rest when she heard
|
|
ahead of her the familiar cry of a great ape calling to his kind.
|
|
|
|
She did not reply, only increased her speed until she almost flew.
|
|
Now there came to her sensitive nostrils the scent of Tantor
|
|
and she knew that she was on the right trail and close to him
|
|
she sought. She did not call out because she wished to surprise
|
|
him, and presently she did, breaking into sight of them as the
|
|
great elephant shuffled ahead balancing the man and the heavy
|
|
stake upon his head, holding them there with his upcurled trunk.
|
|
|
|
"Korak!" cried Meriem from the foliage above him.
|
|
|
|
Instantly the bull swung about, lowered his burden to the
|
|
ground and, trumpeting savagely, prepared to defend his comrade.
|
|
The ape-man, recognizing the girl's voice, felt a sudden lump
|
|
in his throat.
|
|
|
|
"Meriem!" he called back to her.
|
|
|
|
Happily the girl clambered to the ground and ran forward to
|
|
release Korak; but Tantor lowered his head ominously and
|
|
trumpeted a warning.
|
|
|
|
"Go back! Go back!" cried Korak. "He will kill you."
|
|
|
|
Meriem paused. "Tantor!" she called to the huge brute.
|
|
"Don't you remember me? I am little Meriem. I used to ride
|
|
on your broad back;" but the bull only rumbled in his throat
|
|
and shook his tusks in angry defiance. Then Korak tried to
|
|
placate him. Tried to order him away, that the girl might
|
|
approach and release him; but Tantor would not go. He saw in
|
|
every human being other than Korak an enemy. He thought the
|
|
girl bent upon harming his friend and he would take no chances.
|
|
For an hour the girl and the man tried to find some means
|
|
whereby they might circumvent the beast's ill directed
|
|
guardianship, but all to no avail; Tantor stood his ground
|
|
in grim determination to let no one approach Korak.
|
|
|
|
Presently the man hit upon a scheme. "Pretend to go away,"
|
|
he called to the girl. "Keep down wind from us so that Tantor
|
|
won't get your scent, then follow us. After a while I'll have
|
|
him put me down, and find some pretext for sending him away.
|
|
While he is gone you can slip up and cut my bonds--have you
|
|
a knife?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I have a knife," she replied. "I'll go now--I think we may
|
|
be able to fool him; but don't be too sure--Tantor invented cunning."
|
|
|
|
Korak smiled, for he knew that the girl was right. Presently she
|
|
had disappeared. The elephant listened, and raised his trunk
|
|
to catch her scent. Korak commanded him to raise him to his
|
|
head once more and proceed upon their way. After a moment's
|
|
hesitation he did as he was bid. It was then that Korak heard
|
|
the distant call of an ape.
|
|
|
|
"Akut!" he thought. "Good! Tantor knew Akut well. He would
|
|
let him approach." Raising his voice Korak replied to the call
|
|
of the ape; but he let Tantor move off with him through the
|
|
jungle; it would do no harm to try the other plan. They had
|
|
come to a clearing and plainly Korak smelled water. Here was
|
|
a good place and a good excuse. He ordered Tantor to lay him
|
|
down, and go and fetch him water in his trunk. The big beast
|
|
deposited him upon the grass in the center of the clearing, then
|
|
he stood with cocked ears and attentive trunk, searching for the
|
|
slightest indication of danger--there seemed to be none and he
|
|
moved away in the direction of the little brook that Korak knew
|
|
was some two or three hundred yards away. The ape-man could
|
|
scarce help smiling as he thought how cleverly he had tricked
|
|
his friend; but well as he knew Tantor he little guessed the guile
|
|
of his cunning brain. The animal ambled off across the clearing
|
|
and disappeared in the jungle beyond in the direction of the
|
|
stream; but scarce had his great bulk been screened by the dense
|
|
foliage than he wheeled about and came cautiously back to the
|
|
edge of the clearing where he could see without being seen.
|
|
Tantor, by nature, is suspicious. Now he still feared the return
|
|
of the she Tarmangani who had attempted to attack his Korak.
|
|
He would just stand there for a moment and assure himself that
|
|
all was well before he continued on toward the water. Ah! It
|
|
was well that he did! There she was now dropping from the
|
|
branches of a tree across the clearing and running swiftly toward
|
|
the ape-man. Tantor waited. He would let her reach Korak before
|
|
he charged--that would ensure that she had no chance of escape.
|
|
His little eyes blazed savagely. His tail was elevated stiffly.
|
|
He could scarce restrain a desire to trumpet forth his rage
|
|
to the world. Meriem was almost at Korak's side when Tantor
|
|
saw the long knife in her hand, and then he broke forth from the
|
|
jungle, bellowing horribly, and charged down upon the frail girl.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 27
|
|
|
|
Korak screamed commands to his huge protector, in an effort
|
|
to halt him; but all to no avail. Meriem raced toward the
|
|
bordering trees with all the speed that lay in her swift, little
|
|
feet; but Tantor, for all his huge bulk, drove down upon her with
|
|
the rapidity of an express train.
|
|
|
|
Korak lay where he could see the whole frightful tragedy.
|
|
The cold sweat broke out upon his body. His heart seemed to
|
|
have stopped its beating. Meriem might reach the trees before
|
|
Tantor overtook her, but even her agility would not carry her
|
|
beyond the reach of that relentless trunk--she would be dragged
|
|
down and tossed. Korak could picture the whole frightful scene.
|
|
Then Tantor would follow her up, goring the frail, little body
|
|
with his relentless tusks, or trampling it into an unrecognizable
|
|
mass beneath his ponderous feet.
|
|
|
|
He was almost upon her now. Korak wanted to close his eyes,
|
|
but could not. His throat was dry and parched. Never in all his
|
|
savage existence had he suffered such blighting terror--never
|
|
before had he known what terror meant. A dozen more strides
|
|
and the brute would seize her. What was that? Korak's eyes
|
|
started from their sockets. A strange figure had leaped from the
|
|
tree the shade of which Meriem already had reached--leaped
|
|
beyond the girl straight into the path of the charging elephant.
|
|
It was a naked white giant. Across his shoulder a coil of rope
|
|
was looped. In the band of his gee string was a hunting knife.
|
|
Otherwise he was unarmed. With naked hands he faced the
|
|
maddening Tantor. A sharp command broke from the stranger's
|
|
lips--the great beast halted in his tracks--and Meriem swung
|
|
herself upward into the tree to safety. Korak breathed a sigh
|
|
of relief not unmixed with wonder. He fastened his eyes upon the
|
|
face of Meriem's deliverer and as recognition slowly filtered into
|
|
his understanding they went wide in incredulity and surprise.
|
|
|
|
Tantor, still rumbling angrily, stood swaying to and fro close
|
|
before the giant white man. Then the latter stepped straight
|
|
beneath the upraised trunk and spoke a low word of command.
|
|
The great beast ceased his muttering. The savage light died from
|
|
his eyes, and as the stranger stepped forward toward Korak,
|
|
Tantor trailed docilely at his heels.
|
|
|
|
Meriem was watching, too, and wondering. Suddenly the man
|
|
turned toward her as though recollecting her presence after a
|
|
moment of forgetfulness. "Come! Meriem," he called, and then
|
|
she recognized him with a startled: "Bwana!" Quickly the girl
|
|
dropped from the tree and ran to his side. Tantor cocked a
|
|
questioning eye at the white giant, but receiving a warning
|
|
word let Meriem approach. Together the two walked to where
|
|
Korak lay, his eyes wide with wonder and filled with a pathetic
|
|
appeal for forgiveness, and, mayhap, a glad thankfulness for the
|
|
miracle that had brought these two of all others to his side.
|
|
|
|
"Jack!" cried the white giant, kneeling at the ape-man's side.
|
|
|
|
"Father!" came chokingly from The Killer's lips. "Thank God
|
|
that it was you. No one else in all the jungle could have
|
|
stopped Tantor."
|
|
|
|
Quickly the man cut the bonds that held Korak, and as the
|
|
youth leaped to his feet and threw his arms about his father,
|
|
the older man turned toward Meriem.
|
|
|
|
"I thought," he said, sternly, "that I told you to return to
|
|
the farm."
|
|
|
|
Korak was looking at them wonderingly. In his heart was a
|
|
great yearning to take the girl in his arms; but in time he
|
|
remembered the other--the dapper young English gentleman--
|
|
and that he was but a savage, uncouth ape-man.
|
|
|
|
Meriem looked up pleadingly into Bwana's eyes.
|
|
|
|
"You told me," she said, in a very small voice, "that my
|
|
place was beside the man I loved," and she turned her eyes
|
|
toward Korak all filled with the wonderful light that no other
|
|
man had yet seen in them, and that none other ever would.
|
|
|
|
The Killer started toward her with outstretched arms; but
|
|
suddenly he fell upon one knee before her, instead, and lifting
|
|
her hand to his lips kissed it more reverently than he could have
|
|
kissed the hand of his country's queen.
|
|
|
|
A rumble from Tantor brought the three, all jungle bred, to
|
|
instant alertness. Tantor was looking toward the trees behind
|
|
them, and as their eyes followed his gaze the head and shoulders
|
|
of a great ape appeared amidst the foliage. For a moment the
|
|
creature eyed them, and then from its throat rose a loud scream
|
|
of recognition and of joy, and a moment later the beast had
|
|
leaped to the ground, followed by a score of bulls like himself,
|
|
and was waddling toward them, shouting in the primordial tongue
|
|
of the anthropoid:
|
|
|
|
"Tarzan has returned! Tarzan, Lord of the Jungle!"
|
|
|
|
It was Akut, and instantly he commenced leaping and bounding
|
|
about the trio, uttering hideous shrieks and mouthings that
|
|
to any other human beings might have indicated the most
|
|
ferocious rage; but these three knew that the king of the
|
|
apes was doing homage to a king greater than himself. In his
|
|
wake leaped his shaggy bulls, vying with one another as to
|
|
which could spring the highest and which utter the most
|
|
uncanny sounds.
|
|
|
|
Korak laid his hand affectionately upon his father's shoulder.
|
|
|
|
"There is but one Tarzan," he said. "There can never be another."
|
|
|
|
|
|
Two days later the three dropped from the trees on the edge
|
|
of the plain across which they could see the smoke rising from
|
|
the bungalow and the cook house chimneys. Tarzan of the Apes
|
|
had regained his civilized clothing from the tree where he had
|
|
hidden it, and as Korak refused to enter the presence of his
|
|
mother in the savage half-raiment that he had worn so long and
|
|
as Meriem would not leave him, for fear, as she explained, that
|
|
he would change his mind and run off into the jungle again, the
|
|
father went on ahead to the bungalow for horses and clothes.
|
|
|
|
My Dear met him at the gate, her eyes filled with questioning
|
|
and sorrow, for she saw that Meriem was not with him.
|
|
|
|
"Where is she?" she asked, her voice trembling. "Muviri told
|
|
me that she disobeyed your instructions and ran off into the
|
|
jungle after you had left them. Oh, John, I cannot bear to lose
|
|
her, too!" And Lady Greystoke broke down and wept, as she
|
|
pillowed her head upon the broad breast where so often before
|
|
she had found comfort in the great tragedies of her life.
|
|
|
|
Lord Greystoke raised her head and looked down into her
|
|
eyes, his own smiling and filled with the light of happiness.
|
|
|
|
"What is it, John?" she cried. "You have good news--do not
|
|
keep me waiting for it."
|
|
|
|
"I want to be quite sure that you can stand hearing the best
|
|
news that ever came to either of us," he said.
|
|
|
|
"Joy never kills," she cried. "You have found--her?" She could
|
|
not bring herself to hope for the impossible.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, Jane," he said, and his voice was husky with emotion;
|
|
"I have found her, and--HIM!"
|
|
|
|
"Where is he? Where are they?" she demanded.
|
|
|
|
"Out there at the edge of the jungle. He wouldn't come to
|
|
you in his savage leopard skin and his nakedness--he sent me
|
|
to fetch him civilized clothing."
|
|
|
|
She clapped her hands in ecstasy, and turned to run toward
|
|
the bungalow. "Wait!" she cried over her shoulder. "I have all
|
|
his little suits--I have saved them all. I will bring one to you."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan laughed and called to her to stop.
|
|
|
|
"The only clothing on the place that will fit him," he said,
|
|
"is mine--if it isn't too small for him--your little boy has
|
|
grown, Jane."
|
|
|
|
She laughed, too; she felt like laughing at everything, or
|
|
at nothing. The world was all love and happiness and joy once
|
|
more--the world that had been shrouded in the gloom of her
|
|
great sorrow for so many years. So great was her joy that for
|
|
the moment she forgot the sad message that awaited Meriem.
|
|
She called to Tarzan after he had ridden away to prepare her
|
|
for it, but he did not hear and rode on without knowing himself
|
|
what the event was to which his wife referred.
|
|
|
|
And so, an hour later, Korak, The Killer, rode home to his
|
|
mother--the mother whose image had never faded in his boyish
|
|
heart--and found in her arms and her eyes the love and
|
|
forgiveness that he plead for.
|
|
|
|
And then the mother turned toward Meriem, an expression of
|
|
pitying sorrow erasing the happiness from her eyes.
|
|
|
|
"My little girl," she said, "in the midst of our happiness a
|
|
great sorrow awaits you--Mr. Baynes did not survive his wound."
|
|
|
|
The expression of sorrow in Meriem's eyes expressed only
|
|
what she sincerely felt; but it was not the sorrow of a woman
|
|
bereft of her best beloved.
|
|
|
|
"I am sorry," she said, quite simply. "He would have done
|
|
me a great wrong; but he amply atoned before he died. Once I
|
|
thought that I loved him. At first it was only fascination for
|
|
a type that was new to me--then it was respect for a brave man
|
|
who had the moral courage to admit a sin and the physical courage
|
|
to face death to right the wrong he had committed. But it was
|
|
not love. I did not know what love was until I knew that
|
|
Korak lived," and she turned toward The Killer with a smile.
|
|
|
|
Lady Greystoke looked quickly up into the eyes of her son--
|
|
the son who one day would be Lord Greystoke. No thought of
|
|
the difference in the stations of the girl and her boy entered
|
|
her mind. To her Meriem was fit for a king. She only wanted to
|
|
know that Jack loved the little Arab waif. The look in his eyes
|
|
answered the question in her heart, and she threw her arms about
|
|
them both and kissed them each a dozen times.
|
|
|
|
"Now," she cried, "I shall really have a daughter!"
|
|
|
|
It was several weary marches to the nearest mission; but they
|
|
only waited at the farm a few days for rest and preparation for
|
|
the great event before setting out upon the journey, and after
|
|
the marriage ceremony had been performed they kept on to the
|
|
coast to take passage for England. Those days were the most
|
|
wonderful of Meriem's life. She had not dreamed even vaguely of
|
|
the marvels that civilization held in store for her. The great
|
|
ocean and the commodious steamship filled her with awe. The noise,
|
|
and bustle and confusion of the English railway station frightened her.
|
|
|
|
"If there was a good-sized tree at hand," she confided to Korak,
|
|
"I know that I should run to the very top of it in terror of my life."
|
|
|
|
"And make faces and throw twigs at the engine?" he laughed back.
|
|
|
|
"Poor old Numa," sighed the girl. "What will he do without us?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, there are others to tease him, my little Mangani," assured Korak.
|
|
|
|
The Greystoke town house quite took Meriem's breath away;
|
|
but when strangers were about none might guess that she had
|
|
not been to the manner born.
|
|
|
|
They had been home but a week when Lord Greystoke received
|
|
a message from his friend of many years, D'Arnot.
|
|
|
|
It was in the form of a letter of introduction brought by one
|
|
General Armand Jacot. Lord Greystoke recalled the name, as
|
|
who familiar with modern French history would not, for Jacot
|
|
was in reality the Prince de Cadrenet--that intense republican
|
|
who refused to use, even by courtesy, a title that had belonged
|
|
to his family for four hundred years.
|
|
|
|
"There is no place for princes in a republic," he was wont
|
|
to say.
|
|
|
|
Lord Greystoke received the hawk-nosed, gray mustached
|
|
soldier in his library, and after a dozen words the two men had
|
|
formed a mutual esteem that was to endure through life.
|
|
|
|
"I have come to you," explained General Jacot, "because our
|
|
dear Admiral tells me that there is no one in all the world
|
|
who is more intimately acquainted with Central Africa than you.
|
|
|
|
"Let me tell you my story from the beginning. Many years
|
|
ago my little daughter was stolen, presumably by Arabs, while
|
|
I was serving with the Foreign Legion in Algeria. We did all
|
|
that love and money and even government resources could do to
|
|
discover her; but all to no avail. Her picture was published in
|
|
the leading papers of every large city in the world, yet never
|
|
did we find a man or woman who ever had seen her since the day
|
|
she mysteriously disappeared.
|
|
|
|
"A week since there came to me in Paris a swarthy Arab, who called
|
|
himself Abdul Kamak. He said that he had found my daughter and
|
|
could lead me to her. I took him at once to Admiral d'Arnot,
|
|
whom I knew had traveled some in Central Africa. The man's story
|
|
led the Admiral to believe that the place where the white girl
|
|
the Arab supposed to be my daughter was held in captivity was not
|
|
far from your African estates, and he advised that I come at once
|
|
and call upon you--that you would know if such a girl were in
|
|
your neighborhood."
|
|
|
|
"What proof did the Arab bring that she was your daughter?"
|
|
asked Lord Greystoke.
|
|
|
|
"None," replied the other. "That is why we thought best to
|
|
consult you before organizing an expedition. The fellow had only
|
|
an old photograph of her on the back of which was pasted a
|
|
newspaper cutting describing her and offering a reward. We feared
|
|
that having found this somewhere it had aroused his cupidity and
|
|
led him to believe that in some way he could obtain the reward,
|
|
possibly by foisting upon us a white girl on the chance that so
|
|
many years had elapsed that we would not be able to recognize an
|
|
imposter as such."
|
|
|
|
"Have you the photograph with you?" asked Lord Greystoke.
|
|
|
|
The General drew an envelope from his pocket, took a yellowed
|
|
photograph from it and handed it to the Englishman.
|
|
|
|
Tears dimmed the old warrior's eyes as they fell again upon
|
|
the pictured features of his lost daughter.
|
|
|
|
Lord Greystoke examined the photograph for a moment. A queer
|
|
expression entered his eyes. He touched a bell at his elbow,
|
|
and an instant later a footman entered.
|
|
|
|
"Ask my son's wife if she will be so good as to come to the
|
|
library," he directed.
|
|
|
|
The two men sat in silence. General Jacot was too well bred
|
|
to show in any way the chagrin and disappointment he felt in
|
|
the summary manner in which Lord Greystoke had dismissed the
|
|
subject of his call. As soon as the young lady had come and
|
|
he had been presented he would make his departure. A moment
|
|
later Meriem entered.
|
|
|
|
Lord Greystoke and General Jacot rose and faced her.
|
|
The Englishman spoke no word of introduction--he wanted to
|
|
mark the effect of the first sight of the girl's face on
|
|
the Frenchman, for he had a theory--a heaven-born theory that
|
|
had leaped into his mind the moment his eyes had rested on the
|
|
baby face of Jeanne Jacot.
|
|
|
|
General Jacot took one look at Meriem, then he turned toward
|
|
Lord Greystoke.
|
|
|
|
"How long have you known it?" he asked, a trifle accusingly.
|
|
|
|
"Since you showed me that photograph a moment ago," replied
|
|
the Englishman.
|
|
|
|
"It is she," said Jacot, shaking with suppressed emotion;
|
|
"but she does not recognize me--of course she could not."
|
|
Then he turned to Meriem. "My child," he said, "I am your--"
|
|
|
|
But she interrupted him with a quick, glad cry, as she ran
|
|
toward him with outstretched arms.
|
|
|
|
"I know you! I know you!" she cried. "Oh, now I remember,"
|
|
and the old man folded her in his arms.
|
|
|
|
Jack Clayton and his mother were summoned, and when the story
|
|
had been told them they were only glad that little Meriem had
|
|
found a father and a mother.
|
|
|
|
"And really you didn't marry an Arab waif after all," said Meriem.
|
|
"Isn't it fine!"
|
|
|
|
"You are fine," replied The Killer. "I married my little Meriem,
|
|
and I don't care, for my part, whether she is an Arab, or just a
|
|
little Tarmangani."
|
|
|
|
"She is neither, my son," said General Armand Jacot. "She is
|
|
a princess in her own right."
|
|
|
|
|
|
End of The Project Gutenberg Etext of The Son of Tarzan
|
|
|
|
|